17098 lines
691 KiB
Plaintext
17098 lines
691 KiB
Plaintext
*****The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Republic by Plato******
|
|
|
|
Please take a look at the important information in this header.
|
|
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
|
|
electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
|
|
|
|
|
|
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
|
|
|
|
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
|
|
|
|
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
|
|
|
|
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
|
|
further information is included below. We need your donations.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Plato's Republic
|
|
|
|
July, 1994 [Etext #150]
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
****The Project Gutenberg Etext of The Republic, by Plato*****
|
|
*****This file should be named repub13.txt or repub13.zip*****
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, repub14.txt
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, repub13a.txt
|
|
|
|
We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
|
|
of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
|
|
|
|
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
|
|
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
|
|
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
|
|
and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
|
|
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
|
|
in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
|
|
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
|
|
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
|
|
new copy has at least one byte more or less.
|
|
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
|
|
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce 2
|
|
million dollars per hour this year we, will have to do four text
|
|
files per month: thus upping our productivity from one million.
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
|
|
which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
|
|
of the year 2001.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg
|
|
P. O. Box 2782
|
|
Champaign, IL 61825
|
|
|
|
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
|
|
Director:
|
|
hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
|
|
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext91
|
|
or cd etext92
|
|
or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
get INDEX100.GUT
|
|
get INDEX200.GUT
|
|
for a list of books
|
|
and
|
|
get NEW.GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
mget GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
|
|
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
|
|
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
|
|
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
|
|
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
|
|
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
|
|
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
|
|
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
|
|
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
|
|
distribute it in the United States without permission and
|
|
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
|
|
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
|
|
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
|
|
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
|
|
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
|
|
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
|
|
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
|
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
|
|
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
|
|
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
|
|
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
|
|
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
|
|
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
|
|
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
|
|
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
|
|
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
|
|
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
|
|
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
|
|
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
|
|
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
|
|
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive it electronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
|
|
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
|
|
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
|
|
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
|
|
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
|
|
or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
|
|
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
|
|
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
|
|
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
|
|
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
|
|
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
|
|
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
|
|
*EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
|
|
does *not* contain characters other than those
|
|
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
|
|
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
|
|
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
|
|
author, and additional characters may be used to
|
|
indicate hypertext links; OR
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
|
|
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
|
|
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
|
|
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
|
|
OR
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
|
|
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
|
|
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
|
|
or other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
|
|
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
|
|
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
|
|
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
|
|
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
|
|
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
|
|
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE REPUBLIC
|
|
|
|
by Plato
|
|
(360 B.C.)
|
|
|
|
translated by Benjamin Jowett
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
THE INTRODUCTION
|
|
|
|
THE Republic of Plato is the longest of his works with the exception
|
|
of the Laws, and is certainly the greatest of them. There are nearer
|
|
approaches to modern metaphysics in the Philebus and in the Sophist;
|
|
the Politicus or Statesman is more ideal; the form and institutions
|
|
of the State are more clearly drawn out in the Laws; as works of art,
|
|
the Symposium and the Protagoras are of higher excellence. But no
|
|
other Dialogue of Plato has the same largeness of view and the same
|
|
perfection of style; no other shows an equal knowledge of the world,
|
|
or contains more of those thoughts which are new as well as old,
|
|
and not of one age only but of all. Nowhere in Plato is there a deeper
|
|
irony or a greater wealth of humor or imagery, or more dramatic power.
|
|
Nor in any other of his writings is the attempt made to interweave
|
|
life and speculation, or to connect politics with philosophy.
|
|
The Republic is the centre around which the other Dialogues may
|
|
be grouped; here philosophy reaches the highest point to which ancient
|
|
thinkers ever attained. Plato among the Greeks, like Bacon among
|
|
the moderns, was the first who conceived a method of knowledge,
|
|
although neither of them always distinguished the bare outline
|
|
or form from the substance of truth; and both of them had to be
|
|
content with an abstraction of science which was not yet realized.
|
|
He was the greatest metaphysical genius whom the world has seen;
|
|
and in him, more than in any other ancient thinker, the germs of future
|
|
knowledge are contained. The sciences of logic and psychology,
|
|
which have supplied so many instruments of thought to after-ages, are based
|
|
upon the analyses of Socrates and Plato. The principles of definition,
|
|
the law of contradiction, the fallacy of arguing in a circle,
|
|
the distinction between the essence and accidents of a thing or notion,
|
|
between means and ends, between causes and conditions; also the division
|
|
of the mind into the rational, concupiscent, and irascible elements,
|
|
or of pleasures and desires into necessary and unnecessary--
|
|
these and other great forms of thought are all of them to be found
|
|
in the Republic, and were probably first invented by Plato.
|
|
The greatest of all logical truths, and the one of which writers
|
|
on philosophy are most apt to lose sight, the difference between
|
|
words and things, has been most strenuously insisted on by him,
|
|
although he has not always avoided the confusion of them in his
|
|
own writings. But he does not bind up truth in logical formulae,--
|
|
logic is still veiled in metaphysics; and the science which he
|
|
imagines to "contemplate all truth and all existence" is very unlike
|
|
the doctrine of the syllogism which Aristotle claims to have
|
|
discovered.
|
|
|
|
Neither must we forget that the Republic is but the third part
|
|
of a still larger design which was to have included an ideal
|
|
history of Athens, as well as a political and physical philosophy.
|
|
The fragment of the Critias has given birth to a world-famous fiction,
|
|
second only in importance to the tale of Troy and the legend of Arthur;
|
|
and is said as a fact to have inspired some of the early navigators
|
|
of the sixteenth century. This mythical tale, of which the subject
|
|
was a history of the wars of the Athenians against the Island
|
|
of Atlantis, is supposed to be founded upon an unfinished poem
|
|
of Solon, to which it would have stood in the same relation
|
|
as the writings of the logographers to the poems of Homer.
|
|
It would have told of a struggle for Liberty, intended to represent
|
|
the conflict of Persia and Hellas. We may judge from the noble
|
|
commencement of the Timaeus, from the fragment of the Critias itself,
|
|
and from the third book of the Laws, in what manner Plato would
|
|
have treated this high argument. We can only guess why the great
|
|
design was abandoned; perhaps because Plato became sensible of some
|
|
incongruity in a fictitious history, or because he had lost his
|
|
interest in it, or because advancing years forbade the completion
|
|
of it; and we may please ourselves with the fancy that had this
|
|
imaginary narrative ever been finished, we should have found Plato
|
|
himself sympathizing with the struggle for Hellenic independence,
|
|
singing a hymn of triumph over Marathon and Salamis, perhaps making
|
|
the reflection of Herodotus where he contemplates the growth
|
|
of the Athenian empire--"How brave a thing is freedom of speech,
|
|
which has made the Athenians so far exceed every other state
|
|
of Hellas in greatness!" or, more probably, attributing the victory
|
|
to the ancient good order of Athens and to the favor of Apollo
|
|
and Athene.
|
|
|
|
Again, Plato may be regarded as the "captain" ('arhchegoz') or leader
|
|
of a goodly band of followers; for in the Republic is to be found
|
|
the original of Cicero's De Republica, of St. Augustine's City
|
|
of God, of the Utopia of Sir Thomas More, and of the numerous
|
|
other imaginary States which are framed upon the same model.
|
|
The extent to which Aristotle or the Aristotelian school were indebted
|
|
to him in the Politics has been little recognized, and the recognition
|
|
is the more necessary because it is not made by Aristotle himself.
|
|
The two philosophers had more in common than they were conscious of;
|
|
and probably some elements of Plato remain still undetected in Aristotle.
|
|
In English philosophy too, many affinities may be traced, not only
|
|
in the works of the Cambridge Platonists, but in great original
|
|
writers like Berkeley or Coleridge, to Plato and his ideas.
|
|
That there is a truth higher than experience, of which the mind bears
|
|
witness to herself, is a conviction which in our own generation has
|
|
been enthusiastically asserted, and is perhaps gaining ground.
|
|
Of the Greek authors who at the Renaissance brought a new
|
|
life into the world Plato has had the greatest influence.
|
|
The Republic of Plato is also the first treatise upon education,
|
|
of which the writings of Milton and Locke, Rousseau, Jean Paul,
|
|
and Goethe are the legitimate descendants. Like Dante or Bunyan,
|
|
he has a revelation of another life; like Bacon, he is profoundly
|
|
impressed with the unity of knowledge; in the early Church
|
|
he exercised a real influence on theology, and at the Revival
|
|
of Literature on politics. Even the fragments of his words when
|
|
"repeated at second-hand" have in all ages ravished the hearts
|
|
of men, who have seen reflected in them their own higher nature.
|
|
He is the father of idealism in philosophy, in politics,
|
|
in literature. And many of the latest conceptions of modern thinkers
|
|
and statesmen, such as the unity of knowledge, the reign of law,
|
|
and the equality of the sexes, have been anticipated in a dream
|
|
by him.
|
|
|
|
ARGUMENT
|
|
|
|
The argument of the Republic is the search after Justice, the nature
|
|
of which is first hinted at by Cephalus, the just and blameless old man--
|
|
then discussed on the basis of proverbial morality by Socrates
|
|
and Polemarchus--then caricatured by Thrasymachus and partially
|
|
explained by Socrates--reduced to an abstraction by Glaucon
|
|
and Adeimantus, and having become invisible in the individual reappears
|
|
at length in the ideal State which is constructed by Socrates.
|
|
The first care of the rulers is to be education, of which an outline
|
|
is drawn after the old Hellenic model, providing only for an improved
|
|
religion and morality, and more simplicity in music and gymnastic,
|
|
a manlier strain of poetry, and greater harmony of the individual
|
|
and the State. We are thus led on to the conception of a higher State,
|
|
in which "no man calls anything his own," and in which there is neither
|
|
"marrying nor giving in marriage," and "kings are philosophers"
|
|
and "philosophers are kings;" and there is another and higher education,
|
|
intellectual as well as moral and religious, of science as well as of art,
|
|
and not of youth only but of the whole of life. Such a State is
|
|
hardly to be realized in this world and would quickly degenerate.
|
|
To the perfect ideal succeeds the government of the soldier
|
|
and the lover of honor, this again declining into democracy,
|
|
and democracy into tyranny, in an imaginary but regular order having
|
|
not much resemblance to the actual facts. When "the wheel has come
|
|
full circle" we do not begin again with a new period of human life;
|
|
but we have passed from the best to the worst, and there we end.
|
|
The subject is then changed and the old quarrel of poetry and
|
|
philosophy which had been more lightly treated in the earlier books
|
|
of the Republic is now resumed and fought out to a conclusion.
|
|
Poetry is discovered to be an imitation thrice removed from the truth,
|
|
and Homer, as well as the dramatic poets, having been condemned
|
|
as an imitator, is sent into banishment along with them.
|
|
And the idea of the State is supplemented by the revelation of a
|
|
future life.
|
|
|
|
The division into books, like all similar divisions, is probably later
|
|
than the age of Plato. The natural divisions are five in number;--( 1)
|
|
Book I and the first half of Book II down to the paragraph beginning,
|
|
"I had always admired the genius of Glaucon and Adeimantus,"
|
|
which is introductory; the first book containing a refutation
|
|
of the popular and sophistical notions of justice, and concluding,
|
|
like some of the earlier Dialogues, without arriving at any
|
|
definite result. To this is appended a restatement of the nature
|
|
of justice according to common opinion, and an answer is demanded
|
|
to the question--What is justice, stripped of appearances?
|
|
The second division (2) includes the remainder of the second and
|
|
the whole of the third and fourth books, which are mainly occupied
|
|
with the construction of the first State and the first education.
|
|
The third division (3) consists of the fifth, sixth, and seventh books,
|
|
in which philosophy rather than justice is the subject of inquiry,
|
|
and the second State is constructed on principles of communism
|
|
and ruled by philosophers, and the contemplation of the idea
|
|
of good takes the place of the social and political virtues.
|
|
In the eighth and ninth books (4) the perversions of States and of
|
|
the individuals who correspond to them are reviewed in succession;
|
|
and the nature of pleasure and the principle of tyranny are
|
|
further analyzed in the individual man. The tenth book (5) is
|
|
the conclusion of the whole, in which the relations of philosophy
|
|
to poetry are finally determined, and the happiness of the citizens
|
|
in this life, which has now been assured, is crowned by the vision
|
|
of another.
|
|
|
|
Or a more general division into two parts may be adopted; the first
|
|
(Books I - IV) containing the description of a State framed generally
|
|
in accordance with Hellenic notions of religion and morality,
|
|
while in the second (Books V - X) the Hellenic State is transformed
|
|
into an ideal kingdom of philosophy, of which all other governments
|
|
are the perversions. These two points of view are really opposed,
|
|
and the opposition is only veiled by the genius of Plato.
|
|
The Republic, like the Phaedrus, is an imperfect whole; the higher light
|
|
of philosophy breaks through the regularity of the Hellenic temple,
|
|
which at last fades away into the heavens. Whether this imperfection
|
|
of structure arises from an enlargement of the plan; or from the
|
|
imperfect reconcilement in the writer's own mind of the struggling
|
|
elements of thought which are now first brought together by him;
|
|
or, perhaps, from the composition of the work at different times--
|
|
are questions, like the similar question about the Iliad and the Odyssey,
|
|
which are worth asking, but which cannot have a distinct answer.
|
|
In the age of Plato there was no regular mode of publication,
|
|
and an author would have the less scruple in altering or adding
|
|
to a work which was known only to a few of his friends.
|
|
There is no absurdity in supposing that he may have laid his
|
|
labors aside for a time, or turned from one work to another;
|
|
and such interruptions would be more likely to occur in the case
|
|
of a long than of a short writing. In all attempts to determine
|
|
the chronological he order of the Platonic writings on internal evidence,
|
|
this uncertainty about any single Dialogue being composed at one time
|
|
is a disturbing element, which must be admitted to affect longer works,
|
|
such as the Republic and the Laws, more than shorter ones.
|
|
But, on the other hand, the seeming discrepancies of the Republic
|
|
may only arise out of the discordant elements which the philosopher
|
|
has attempted to unite in a single whole, perhaps without being
|
|
himself able to recognize the inconsistency which is obvious to us.
|
|
For there is a judgment of after ages which few great writers have
|
|
ever been able to anticipate for themselves. They do not perceive
|
|
the want of connection in their own writings, or the gaps in their
|
|
systems which are visible enough to those who come after them.
|
|
In the beginnings of literature and philosophy, amid the first
|
|
efforts of thought and language, more inconsistencies occur than now,
|
|
when the paths of speculation are well worn and the meaning of words
|
|
precisely defined. For consistency, too, is the growth of time;
|
|
and some of the greatest creations of the human mind have been wanting
|
|
in unity. Tried by this test, several of the Platonic Dialogues,
|
|
according to our modern ideas, appear to be defective, but the
|
|
deficiency is no proof that they were composed at different times
|
|
or by different hands. And the supposition that the Republic was
|
|
written uninterruptedly and by a continuous effort is in some degree
|
|
confirmed by the numerous references from one part of the work
|
|
to another.
|
|
|
|
The second title, "Concerning Justice," is not the one by
|
|
which the Republic is quoted, either by Aristotle or generally
|
|
in antiquity, and, like the other second titles of the Platonic
|
|
Dialogues, may therefore be assumed to be of later date.
|
|
Morgenstern and others have asked whether the definition of justice,
|
|
which is the professed aim, or the construction of the State
|
|
is the principal argument of the work. The answer is,
|
|
that the two blend in one, and are two faces of the same truth;
|
|
for justice is the order of the State, and the State is the visible
|
|
embodiment of justice under the conditions of human society.
|
|
The one is the soul and the other is the body, and the Greek ideal
|
|
of the State, as of the individual, is a fair mind in a fair body.
|
|
In Hegelian phraseology the State is the reality of which justice
|
|
is the ideal. Or, described in Christian language, the kingdom
|
|
of God is within, and yet develops into a Church or external kingdom;
|
|
"the house not made with hands, eternal in the heavens,"
|
|
is reduced to the proportions of an earthly building. Or, to use
|
|
a Platonic image, justice and the State are the warp and the woof
|
|
which run through the whole texture. And when the constitution
|
|
of the State is completed, the conception of justice is not dismissed,
|
|
but reappears under the same or different names throughout the work,
|
|
both as the inner law of the individual soul, and finally
|
|
as the principle of rewards and punishments in another life.
|
|
The virtues are based on justice, of which common honesty in buying
|
|
and selling is the shadow, and justice is based on the idea of good,
|
|
which is the harmony of the world, and is reflected both in
|
|
the institutions of States and in motions of the heavenly bodies.
|
|
The Timaeus, which takes up the political rather than the ethical
|
|
side of the Republic, and is chiefly occupied with hypotheses
|
|
concerning the outward world, yet contains many indications that
|
|
the same law is supposed to reign over the State, over nature,
|
|
and over man.
|
|
|
|
Too much, however, has been made of this question both in ancient
|
|
and in modern times. There is a stage of criticism in which
|
|
all works, whether of nature or of art, are referred to design.
|
|
Now in ancient writings, and indeed in literature generally,
|
|
there remains often a large element which was not comprehended
|
|
in the original design. For the plan grows under the author's hand;
|
|
new thoughts occur to him in the act of writing; he has not worked
|
|
out the argument to the end before he begins. The reader who seeks
|
|
to find some one idea under which the whole may be conceived,
|
|
must necessarily seize on the vaguest and most general.
|
|
Thus Stallbaum, who is dissatisfied with the ordinary explanations
|
|
of the argument of the Republic, imagines himself to have found
|
|
the true argument "in the representation of human life in a State
|
|
perfected by justice and governed according to the idea of good."
|
|
There may be some use in such general descriptions, but they can
|
|
hardly be said to express the design of the writer. The truth is,
|
|
that we may as well speak of many designs as of one; nor need
|
|
anything be excluded from the plan of a great work to which the mind
|
|
is naturally led by the association of ideas, and which does not
|
|
interfere with the general purpose. What kind or degree of unity
|
|
is to be sought after in a building, in the plastic arts, in poetry,
|
|
in prose, is a problem which has to be determined relatively to the
|
|
subject-matter. To Plato himself, the inquiry "what was the intention
|
|
of the writer," or "what was the principal argument of the Republic"
|
|
would have been hardly intelligible, and therefore had better be at
|
|
once dismissed.
|
|
|
|
Is not the Republic the vehicle of three or four great truths which,
|
|
to Plato's own mind, are most naturally represented in the form
|
|
of the State? Just as in the Jewish prophets the reign of Messiah,
|
|
or "the day of the Lord," or the suffering Servant or people
|
|
of God, or the "Sun of righteousness with healing in his wings"
|
|
only convey, to us at least, their great spiritual ideals,
|
|
so through the Greek State Plato reveals to us his own thoughts
|
|
about divine perfection, which is the idea of good--like the sun
|
|
in the visible world;--about human perfection, which is justice--
|
|
about education beginning in youth and continuing in later years--
|
|
about poets and sophists and tyrants who are the false teachers
|
|
and evil rulers of mankind--about "the world" which is the embodiment
|
|
of them--about a kingdom which exists nowhere upon earth but is
|
|
laid up in heaven to be the pattern and rule of human life.
|
|
No such inspired creation is at unity with itself, any more
|
|
than the clouds of heaven when the sun pierces through them.
|
|
Every shade of light and dark, of truth, and of fiction which is
|
|
the veil of truth, is allowable in a work of philosophical imagination.
|
|
It is not all on the same plane; it easily passes from ideas
|
|
to myths and fancies, from facts to figures of speech. It is not
|
|
prose but poetry, at least a great part of it, and ought not to be
|
|
judged by the rules of logic or the probabilities of history.
|
|
The writer is not fashioning his ideas into an artistic whole;
|
|
they take possession of him and are too much for him.
|
|
We have no need therefore to discuss whether a State such as Plato
|
|
has conceived is practicable or not, or whether the outward form
|
|
or the inward life came first into the mind of the writer.
|
|
For the practicability of his ideas has nothing to do with their truth;
|
|
and the highest thoughts to which he attains may be truly said to bear
|
|
the greatest "marks of design"--justice more than the external frame-work
|
|
of the State, the idea of good more than justice. The great science
|
|
of dialectic or the organization of ideas has no real content;
|
|
but is only a type of the method or spirit in which the higher knowledge
|
|
is to be pursued by the spectator of all time and all existence.
|
|
It is in the fifth, sixth, and seventh books that Plato reaches
|
|
the "summit of speculation," and these, although they fail to satisfy
|
|
the requirements of a modern thinker, may therefore be regarded
|
|
as the most important, as they are also the most original, portions of
|
|
the work.
|
|
|
|
It is not necessary to discuss at length a minor question which has
|
|
been raised by Boeckh, respecting the imaginary date at which
|
|
the conversation was held (the year 411 B. C. which is proposed
|
|
by him will do as well as any other); for a writer of fiction,
|
|
and especially a writer who, like Plato, is notoriously careless
|
|
of chronology, only aims at general probability. Whether all the persons
|
|
mentioned in the Republic could ever have met at any one time is
|
|
not a difficulty which would have occurred to an Athenian reading
|
|
the work forty years later, or to Plato himself at the time of writing
|
|
(any more than to Shakespeare respecting one of his own dramas);
|
|
and need not greatly trouble us now. Yet this may be a question having
|
|
no answer "which is still worth asking," because the investigation
|
|
shows that we can not argue historically from the dates in Plato;
|
|
it would be useless therefore to waste time in inventing far-fetched
|
|
reconcilements of them in order avoid chronological difficulties,
|
|
such, for example, as the conjecture of C. F. Hermann, that Glaucon
|
|
and Adeimantus are not the brothers but the uncles of Plato,
|
|
or the fancy of Stallbaum that Plato intentionally left anachronisms
|
|
indicating the dates at which some of his Dialogues were written.
|
|
|
|
CHARACTERS
|
|
|
|
The principal characters in the Republic are Cephalus,
|
|
Polemarchus, Thrasymachus, Socrates, Glaucon, and Adeimantus.
|
|
Cephalus appears in the introduction only, Polemarchus drops at
|
|
the end of the first argument, and Thrasymachus is reduced to silence
|
|
at the close of the first book. The main discussion is carried on
|
|
by Socrates, Glaucon, and Adeimantus. Among the company are Lysias
|
|
(the orator) and Euthydemus, the sons of Cephalus and brothers
|
|
of Polemarchus, an unknown Charmantides--these are mute auditors;
|
|
also there is Cleitophon, who once interrupts, where, as in the Dialogue
|
|
which bears his name, he appears as the friend and ally of Thrasymachus.
|
|
|
|
Cephalus, the patriarch of house, has been appropriately engaged in
|
|
offering a sacrifice. He is the pattern of an old man who has almost
|
|
done with life, and is at peace with himself and with all mankind.
|
|
He feels that he is drawing nearer to the world below, and seems
|
|
to linger around the memory of the past. He is eager that Socrates
|
|
should come to visit him, fond of the poetry of the last generation,
|
|
happy in the consciousness of a well-spent life, glad at having
|
|
escaped from the tyranny of youthful lusts. His love of conversation,
|
|
his affection, his indifference to riches, even his garrulity,
|
|
are interesting traits of character. He is not one of those who have
|
|
nothing to say, because their whole mind has been absorbed in making money.
|
|
Yet he acknowledges that riches have the advantage of placing men
|
|
above the temptation to dishonesty or falsehood. The respectful
|
|
attention shown to him by Socrates, whose love of conversation,
|
|
no less than the mission imposed upon him by the Oracle, leads him
|
|
to ask questions of all men, young and old alike, should also be noted.
|
|
Who better suited to raise the question of justice than Cephalus,
|
|
whose life might seem to be the expression of it? The moderation
|
|
with which old age is pictured by Cephalus as a very tolerable
|
|
portion of existence is characteristic, not only of him, but of Greek
|
|
feeling generally, and contrasts with the exaggeration of Cicero
|
|
in the De Senectute. The evening of life is described by Plato
|
|
in the most expressive manner, yet with the fewest possible touches.
|
|
As Cicero remarks (Ep. ad Attic. iv. 16), the aged Cephalus would
|
|
have been out of place in the discussion which follows, and which he
|
|
could neither have understood nor taken part in without a violation of
|
|
dramatic propriety.
|
|
|
|
His "son and heir" Polemarchus has the frankness and impetuousness
|
|
of youth; he is for detaining Socrates by force in the opening scene,
|
|
and will not "let him off" on the subject of women and children.
|
|
Like Cephalus, he is limited in his point of view, and represents
|
|
the proverbial stage of morality which has rules of life rather
|
|
than principles; and he quotes Simonides as his father had quoted Pindar.
|
|
But after this he has no more to say; the answers which he
|
|
makes are only elicited from him by the dialectic of Socrates.
|
|
He has not yet experienced the influence of the Sophists like Glaucon
|
|
and Adeimantus, nor is he sensible of the necessity of refuting them;
|
|
he belongs to the pre-Socratic or pre-dialectical age.
|
|
He is incapable of arguing, and is bewildered by Socrates
|
|
to such a degree that he does not know what he is saying.
|
|
He is made to admit that justice is a thief, and that the virtues
|
|
follow the analogy of the arts. From his brother Lysias we learn
|
|
that he fell a victim to the Thirty Tyrants, but no allusion
|
|
is here made to his fate, nor to the circumstance that Cephalus
|
|
and his family were of Syracusan origin, and had migrated from Thurii
|
|
to Athens.
|
|
|
|
The "Chalcedonian giant," Thrasymachus, of whom we have already heard
|
|
in the Phaedrus, is the personification of the Sophists, according to
|
|
Plato's conception of them, in some of their worst characteristics.
|
|
He is vain and blustering, refusing to discourse unless he
|
|
is paid, fond of making an oration, and hoping thereby to escape
|
|
the inevitable Socrates; but a mere child in argument, and unable
|
|
to foresee that the next "move" (to use a Platonic expression)
|
|
will "shut him up." He has reached the stage of framing general notions,
|
|
and in this respect is in advance of Cephalus and Polemarchus.
|
|
But he is incapable of defending them in a discussion,
|
|
and vainly tries to cover his confusion in banter and insolence.
|
|
Whether such doctrines as are attributed to him by Plato were really
|
|
held either by him or by any other Sophist is uncertain; in the infancy
|
|
of philosophy serious errors about morality might easily grow up--
|
|
they are certainly put into the mouths of speakers in Thucydides;
|
|
but we are concerned at present with Plato's description of him,
|
|
and not with the historical reality. The inequality of the contest
|
|
adds greatly to the humor of the scene. The pompous and empty Sophist
|
|
is utterly helpless in the hands of the great master of dialectic,
|
|
who knows how to touch all the springs of vanity and weakness in him.
|
|
He is greatly irritated by the irony of Socrates, but his noisy
|
|
and imbecile rage only lays him more and more open to the thrusts
|
|
of his assailant. His determination to cram down their throats,
|
|
or put "bodily into their souls" his own words, elicits a cry
|
|
of horror from Socrates. The state of his temper is quite as worthy
|
|
of remark as the process of the argument. Nothing is more amusing
|
|
than his complete submission when he has been once thoroughly beaten.
|
|
At first he seems to continue the discussion with reluctance,
|
|
but soon with apparent good-will, and he even testifies his
|
|
interest at a later stage by one or two occasional remarks.
|
|
When attacked by Glaucon he is humorously protected by Socrates
|
|
"as one who has never been his enemy and is now his friend."
|
|
From Cicero and Quintilian and from Aristotle's Rhetoric we learn
|
|
that the Sophist whom Plato has made so ridiculous was a man of note
|
|
whose writings were preserved in later ages. The play on his name
|
|
which was made by his contemporary Herodicus, "thou wast ever bold
|
|
in battle," seems to show that the description of him is not devoid of
|
|
verisimilitude.
|
|
|
|
When Thrasymachus has been silenced, the two principal respondents,
|
|
Glaucon and Adeimantus, appear on the scene: here, as in Greek tragedy,
|
|
three actors are introduced. At first sight the two sons of Ariston
|
|
may seem to wear a family likeness, like the two friends Simmias
|
|
and Cebes in the Phaedo. But on a nearer examination of them
|
|
the similarity vanishes, and they are seen to be distinct characters.
|
|
Glaucon is the impetuous youth who can "just never have enough of fechting"
|
|
(cf. the character of him in Xen. Mem. iii. 6); the man of pleasure
|
|
who is acquainted with the mysteries of love; the "juvenis qui
|
|
gaudet canibus," and who improves the breed of animals; the lover
|
|
of art and music who has all the experiences of youthful life.
|
|
He is full of quickness and penetration, piercing easily below
|
|
the clumsy platitudes of Thrasymachus to the real difficulty;
|
|
he turns out to the light the seamy side of human life, and yet
|
|
does not lose faith in the just and true. It is Glaucon who seizes
|
|
what may be termed the ludicrous relation of the philosopher
|
|
to the world, to whom a state of simplicity is "a city of pigs,"
|
|
who is always prepared with a jest when the argument offers him
|
|
an opportunity, and who is ever ready to second the humor of Socrates
|
|
and to appreciate the ridiculous, whether in the connoisseurs of music,
|
|
or in the lovers of theatricals, or in the fantastic behavior of
|
|
the citizens of democracy. His weaknesses are several times alluded
|
|
to by Socrates, who, however, will not allow him to be attacked
|
|
by his brother Adeimantus. He is a soldier, and, like Adeimantus,
|
|
has been distinguished at the battle of Megara.
|
|
|
|
The character of Adeimantus is deeper and graver, and the profounder
|
|
objections are commonly put into his mouth. Glaucon is more demonstrative,
|
|
and generally opens the game. Adeimantus pursues the argument further.
|
|
Glaucon has more of the liveliness and quick sympathy of youth;
|
|
Adeimantus has the maturer judgment of a grown-up man of the world.
|
|
In the second book, when Glaucon insists that justice and injustice
|
|
shall be considered without regard to their consequences,
|
|
Adeimantus remarks that they are regarded by mankind in general only
|
|
for the sake of their consequences; and in a similar vein of reflection
|
|
he urges at the beginning of the fourth book that Socrates falls
|
|
in making his citizens happy, and is answered that happiness is not
|
|
the first but the second thing, not the direct aim but the indirect
|
|
consequence of the good government of a State. In the discussion
|
|
about religion and mythology, Adeimantus is the respondent, but Glaucon
|
|
breaks in with a slight jest, and carries on the conversation
|
|
in a lighter tone about music and gymnastic to the end of the book.
|
|
It is Adeimantus again who volunteers the criticism of common
|
|
sense on the Socratic method of argument, and who refuses to let
|
|
Socrates pass lightly over the question of women and children.
|
|
It is Adeimantus who is the respondent in the more argumentative,
|
|
as Glaucon in the lighter and more imaginative portions of the Dialogue.
|
|
For example, throughout the greater part of the sixth book, the causes
|
|
of the corruption of philosophy and the conception of the idea of
|
|
good are discussed with Adeimantus. Then Glaucon resumes his place
|
|
of principal respondent; but he has a difficulty in apprehending
|
|
the higher education of Socrates, and makes some false hits in the course
|
|
of the discussion. Once more Adeimantus returns with the allusion
|
|
to his brother Glaucon whom he compares to the contentious State;
|
|
in the next book he is again superseded, and Glaucon continues to
|
|
the end.
|
|
|
|
Thus in a succession of characters Plato represents the successive stages
|
|
of morality, beginning with the Athenian gentleman of the olden time,
|
|
who is followed by the practical man of that day regulating his life
|
|
by proverbs and saws; to him succeeds the wild generalization of
|
|
the Sophists, and lastly come the young disciples of the great teacher,
|
|
who know the sophistical arguments but will not be convinced by them,
|
|
and desire to go deeper into the nature of things. These too,
|
|
like Cephalus, Polemarchus, Thrasymachus, are clearly distinguished
|
|
from one another. Neither in the Republic, nor in any other Dialogue
|
|
of Plato, is a single character repeated.
|
|
|
|
The delineation of Socrates in the Republic is not wholly consistent.
|
|
In the first book we have more of the real Socrates,
|
|
such as he is depicted in the Memorabilia of Xenophon,
|
|
in the earliest Dialogues of Plato, and in the Apology.
|
|
He is ironical, provoking, questioning, the old enemy of the Sophists,
|
|
ready to put on the mask of Silenus as well as to argue seriously.
|
|
But in the sixth book his enmity towards the Sophists abates;
|
|
he acknowledges that they are the representatives rather than
|
|
the corrupters of the world. He also becomes more dogmatic
|
|
and constructive, passing beyond the range either of the political
|
|
or the speculative ideas of the real Socrates. In one passage Plato
|
|
himself seems to intimate that the time had now come for Socrates,
|
|
who had passed his whole life in philosophy, to give his own
|
|
opinion and not to be always repeating the notions of other men.
|
|
There is no evidence that either the idea of good or the conception
|
|
of a perfect State were comprehended in the Socratic teaching,
|
|
though he certainly dwelt on the nature of the universal and
|
|
of final causes (cp. Xen. Mem. i. 4; Phaedo 97); and a deep
|
|
thinker like him in his thirty or forty years of public teaching,
|
|
could hardly have falled to touch on the nature of family relations,
|
|
for which there is also some positive evidence in the Memorabilia
|
|
(Mem. i. 2, 51 foll.) The Socratic method is nominally retained;
|
|
and every inference is either put into the mouth of the respondent
|
|
or represented as the common discovery of him and Socrates.
|
|
But any one can see that this is a mere form, of which the affectation
|
|
grows wearisome as the work advances. The method of inquiry
|
|
has passed into a method of teaching in which by the help of
|
|
interlocutors the same thesis is looked at from various points
|
|
of view.
|
|
|
|
The nature of the process is truly characterized by Glaucon,
|
|
when he describes himself as a companion who is not good for much
|
|
in an investigation, but can see what he is shown, and may,
|
|
perhaps, give the answer to a question more fluently than another.
|
|
|
|
Neither can we be absolutely certain that, Socrates himself taught
|
|
the immortality of the soul, which is unknown to his disciple
|
|
Glaucon in the Republic; nor is there any reason to suppose
|
|
that he used myths or revelations of another world as a vehicle
|
|
of instruction, or that he would have banished poetry or have
|
|
denounced the Greek mythology. His favorite oath is retained,
|
|
and a slight mention is made of the daemonium, or internal sign,
|
|
which is alluded to by Socrates as a phenomenon peculiar to himself.
|
|
A real element of Socratic teaching, which is more prominent
|
|
in the Republic than in any of the other Dialogues of Plato,
|
|
is the use of example and illustration ('taphorhtika auto
|
|
prhospherhontez'): "Let us apply the test of common instances."
|
|
"You," says Adeimantus, ironically, in the sixth book, "are so
|
|
unaccustomed to speak in images." And this use of examples or images,
|
|
though truly Socratic in origin, is enlarged by the genius of Plato
|
|
into the form of an allegory or parable, which embodies in the concrete
|
|
what has been already described, or is about to be described,
|
|
in the abstract. Thus the figure of the cave in Book VII
|
|
is a recapitulation of the divisions of knowledge in Book VI.
|
|
The composite animal in Book IX is an allegory of the parts of the soul.
|
|
The noble captain and the ship and the true pilot in Book VI are a
|
|
figure of the relation of the people to the philosophers in the State
|
|
which has been described. Other figures, such as the dog in
|
|
the second, third, and fourth books, or the marriage of the portionless
|
|
maiden in the sixth book, or the drones and wasps in the eighth
|
|
and ninth books, also form links of connection in long passages,
|
|
or are used to recall previous discussions.
|
|
|
|
Plato is most true to the character of his master when he describes
|
|
him as "not of this world." And with this representation of him
|
|
the ideal State and the other paradoxes of the Republic are quite
|
|
in accordance, though they can not be shown to have been speculations
|
|
of Socrates. To him, as to other great teachers both philosophical
|
|
and religious, when they looked upward, the world seemed to be
|
|
the embodiment of error and evil. The common sense of mankind has
|
|
revolted against this view, or has only partially admitted it.
|
|
And even in Socrates himself the sterner judgment of the multitude
|
|
at times passes into a sort of ironical pity or love. Men in general
|
|
are incapable of philosophy, and are therefore at enmity with
|
|
the philosopher; but their misunderstanding of him is unavoidable:
|
|
for they have never seen him as he truly is in his own image;
|
|
they are only acquainted with artificial systems possessing no
|
|
native force of truth--words which admit of many applications.
|
|
Their leaders have nothing to measure with, and are therefore ignorant
|
|
of their own stature. But they are to be pitied or laughed at,
|
|
not to be quarrelled with; they mean well with their nostrums,
|
|
if they could only learn that they are cutting off a Hydra's head.
|
|
This moderation towards those who are in error is one of
|
|
the most characteristic features of Socrates in the Republic.
|
|
In all the different representations of Socrates, whether of Xenophon
|
|
or Plato, and the differences of the earlier or later Dialogues,
|
|
he always retains the character of the unwearied and disinterested
|
|
seeker after truth, without which he would have ceased to
|
|
be Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Leaving the characters we may now analyze the contents of the Republic,
|
|
and then proceed to consider (1) The general aspects of this Hellenic
|
|
ideal of the State, (2) The modern lights in which the thoughts
|
|
of Plato may be read.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK I
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
I WENT down yesterday to the Piraeus with Glaucon the son of Ariston,
|
|
that I might offer up my prayers to the goddess; and also because I
|
|
wanted to see in what manner they would celebrate the festival,
|
|
which was a new thing. I was delighted with the procession
|
|
of the inhabitants; but that of the Thracians was equally,
|
|
if not more, beautiful. When we had finished our prayers and
|
|
viewed the spectacle, we turned in the direction of the city;
|
|
and at that instant Polemarchus the son of Cephalus chanced
|
|
to catch sight of us from a distance as we were starting on our
|
|
way home, and told his servant to run and bid us wait for him.
|
|
The servant took hold of me by the cloak behind, and said:
|
|
Polemarchus desires you to wait.
|
|
|
|
I turned round, and asked him where his master was.
|
|
|
|
There he is, said the youth, coming after you, if you will only wait.
|
|
|
|
Certainly we will, said Glaucon; and in a few minutes Polemarchus appeared,
|
|
and with him Adeimantus, Glaucon's brother, Niceratus the son
|
|
of Nicias, and several others who had been at the procession.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS - GLAUCON - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
Polemarchus said to me: I perceive, Socrates, that you and our
|
|
companion are already on your way to the city.
|
|
|
|
You are not far wrong, I said.
|
|
|
|
But do you see, he rejoined, how many we are?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And are you stronger than all these? for if not, you will have
|
|
to remain where you are.
|
|
|
|
May there not be the alternative, I said, that we may persuade you
|
|
to let us go?
|
|
|
|
But can you persuade us, if we refuse to listen to you? he said.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, replied Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Then we are not going to listen; of that you may be assured.
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus added: Has no one told you of the torch-race on horseback
|
|
in honour of the goddess which will take place in the evening?
|
|
|
|
With horses! I replied: That is a novelty. Will horsemen carry
|
|
torches and pass them one to another during the race?
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Polemarchus, and not only so, but a festival will
|
|
he celebrated at night, which you certainly ought to see.
|
|
Let us rise soon after supper and see this festival; there will be
|
|
a gathering of young men, and we will have a good talk. Stay then,
|
|
and do not be perverse.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said: I suppose, since you insist, that we must.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I replied.
|
|
|
|
GLAUCON - CEPHALUS - SOCRATES
|
|
|
|
Accordingly we went with Polemarchus to his house; and there we
|
|
found his brothers Lysias and Euthydemus, and with them Thrasymachus
|
|
the Chalcedonian, Charmantides the Paeanian, and Cleitophon the son
|
|
of Aristonymus. There too was Cephalus the father of Polemarchus,
|
|
whom I had not seen for a long time, and I thought him very much aged.
|
|
He was seated on a cushioned chair, and had a garland on his head,
|
|
for he had been sacrificing in the court; and there were some other chairs
|
|
in the room arranged in a semicircle, upon which we sat down by him.
|
|
He saluted me eagerly, and then he said:--
|
|
|
|
You don't come to see me, Socrates, as often as you ought:
|
|
If I were still able to go and see you I would not ask you
|
|
to come to me. But at my age I can hardly get to the city,
|
|
and therefore you should come oftener to the Piraeus. For let
|
|
me tell you, that the more the pleasures of the body fade away,
|
|
the greater to me is the pleasure and charm of conversation.
|
|
Do not then deny my request, but make our house your resort and keep
|
|
company with these young men; we are old friends, and you will be
|
|
quite at home with us.
|
|
|
|
I replied: There is nothing which for my part I like better,
|
|
Cephalus, than conversing with aged men; for I regard them
|
|
as travellers who have gone a journey which I too may have to go,
|
|
and of whom I ought to enquire, whether the way is smooth and easy,
|
|
or rugged and difficult. And this is a question which I should
|
|
like to ask of you who have arrived at that time which the poets
|
|
call the `threshold of old age'--Is life harder towards the end,
|
|
or what report do you give of it?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, Socrates, he said, what my own feeling is.
|
|
Men of my age flock together; we are birds of a feather,
|
|
as the old proverb says; and at our meetings the tale of my
|
|
acquaintance commonly is--I cannot eat, I cannot drink;
|
|
the pleasures of youth and love are fled away: there was a good
|
|
time once, but now that is gone, and life is no longer life.
|
|
Some complain of the slights which are put upon them by relations,
|
|
and they will tell you sadly of how many evils their old age is
|
|
the cause. But to me, Socrates, these complainers seem to blame
|
|
that which is not really in fault. For if old age were the cause,
|
|
I too being old, and every other old man, would have felt as they do.
|
|
But this is not my own experience, nor that of others whom I have known.
|
|
How well I remember the aged poet Sophocles, when in answer to
|
|
the question, How does love suit with age, Sophocles,--are you still
|
|
the man you were? Peace, he replied; most gladly have I escaped
|
|
the thing of which you speak; I feel as if I had escaped from a mad
|
|
and furious master. His words have often occurred to my mind since,
|
|
and they seem as good to me now as at the time when he uttered them.
|
|
For certainly old age has a great sense of calm and freedom;
|
|
when the passions relax their hold, then, as Sophocles says,
|
|
we are freed from the grasp not of one mad master only, but of many.
|
|
The truth is, Socrates, that these regrets, and also the complaints
|
|
about relations, are to be attributed to the same cause, which is
|
|
not old age, but men's characters and tempers; for he who is
|
|
of a calm and happy nature will hardly feel the pressure of age,
|
|
but to him who is of an opposite disposition youth and age are equally
|
|
a burden.
|
|
|
|
I listened in admiration, and wanting to draw him out, that he
|
|
might go on--Yes, Cephalus, I said: but I rather suspect that
|
|
people in general are not convinced by you when you speak thus;
|
|
they think that old age sits lightly upon you, not because of your
|
|
happy disposition, but because you are rich, and wealth is well
|
|
known to be a great comforter.
|
|
|
|
You are right, he replied; they are not convinced: and there is
|
|
something in what they say; not, however, so much as they imagine.
|
|
I might answer them as Themistocles answered the Seriphian who was
|
|
abusing him and saying that he was famous, not for his own merits
|
|
but because he was an Athenian: `If you had been a native of my
|
|
country or I of yours, neither of us would have been famous.'
|
|
And to those who are not rich and are impatient of old age,
|
|
the same reply may be made; for to the good poor man old age
|
|
cannot be a light burden, nor can a bad rich man ever have peace
|
|
with himself.
|
|
|
|
May I ask, Cephalus, whether your fortune was for the most part
|
|
inherited or acquired by you?
|
|
|
|
Acquired! Socrates; do you want to know how much I acquired? In the art
|
|
of making money I have been midway between my father and grandfather:
|
|
for my grandfather, whose name I bear, doubled and trebled the value
|
|
of his patrimony, that which he inherited being much what I possess now;
|
|
but my father Lysanias reduced the property below what it is at present:
|
|
and I shall be satisfied if I leave to these my sons not less
|
|
but a little more than I received.
|
|
|
|
That was why I asked you the question, I replied, because I see
|
|
that you are indifferent about money, which is a characteristic
|
|
rather of those who have inherited their fortunes than of those
|
|
who have acquired them; the makers of fortunes have a second love
|
|
of money as a creation of their own, resembling the affection
|
|
of authors for their own poems, or of parents for their children,
|
|
besides that natural love of it for the sake of use and profit which
|
|
is common to them and all men. And hence they are very bad company,
|
|
for they can talk about nothing but the praises of wealth.
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is very true, but may I ask another question?
|
|
What do you consider to be the greatest blessing which you have
|
|
reaped from your wealth?
|
|
|
|
One, he said, of which I could not expect easily to convince others.
|
|
For let me tell you, Socrates, that when a man thinks himself to be
|
|
near death, fears and cares enter into his mind which he never had before;
|
|
the tales of a world below and the punishment which is exacted
|
|
there of deeds done here were once a laughing matter to him,
|
|
but now he is tormented with the thought that they may be true:
|
|
either from the weakness of age, or because he is now drawing
|
|
nearer to that other place, he has a clearer view of these things;
|
|
suspicions and alarms crowd thickly upon him, and he begins
|
|
to reflect and consider what wrongs he has done to others.
|
|
And when he finds that the sum of his transgressions is great he
|
|
will many a time like a child start up in his sleep for fear,
|
|
and he is filled with dark forebodings. But to him who is conscious
|
|
of no sin, sweet hope, as Pindar charmingly says, is the kind nurse of
|
|
his age:
|
|
|
|
Hope, he says, cherishes the soul of him who lives in
|
|
justice and holiness and is the nurse of his age and the
|
|
companion of his journey;--hope which is mightiest to sway
|
|
the restless soul of man.
|
|
|
|
How admirable are his words! And the great blessing of riches, I do not
|
|
say to every man, but to a good man, is, that he has had no occasion
|
|
to deceive or to defraud others, either intentionally or unintentionally;
|
|
and when he departs to the world below he is not in any apprehension
|
|
about offerings due to the gods or debts which he owes to men.
|
|
Now to this peace of mind the possession of wealth greatly contributes;
|
|
and therefore I say, that, setting one thing against another,
|
|
of the many advantages which wealth has to give, to a man of sense this
|
|
is in my opinion the greatest.
|
|
|
|
Well said, Cephalus, I replied; but as concerning justice, what is it?--
|
|
to speak the truth and to pay your debts--no more than this?
|
|
And even to this are there not exceptions? Suppose that a friend
|
|
when in his right mind has deposited arms with me and he asks for them
|
|
when he is not in his right mind, ought I to give them back to him?
|
|
No one would say that I ought or that I should be right in doing so,
|
|
any more than they would say that I ought always to speak the truth to one
|
|
who is in his condition.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But then, I said, speaking the truth and paying your debts is not
|
|
a correct definition of justice.
|
|
|
|
CEPHALUS - SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS
|
|
|
|
Quite correct, Socrates, if Simonides is to be believed,
|
|
said Polemarchus interposing.
|
|
|
|
I fear, said Cephalus, that I must go now, for I have to look
|
|
after the sacrifices, and I hand over the argument to Polemarchus
|
|
and the company.
|
|
|
|
Is not Polemarchus your heir? I said.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he answered, and went away laughing to the sacrifices.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS
|
|
|
|
Tell me then, O thou heir of the argument, what did Simonides say,
|
|
and according to you truly say, about justice?
|
|
|
|
He said that the repayment of a debt is just, and in saying so he
|
|
appears to me to be right.
|
|
|
|
I should be sorry to doubt the word of such a wise and inspired man,
|
|
but his meaning, though probably clear to you, is the reverse of
|
|
clear to me. For he certainly does not mean, as we were now saying
|
|
that I ought to return a return a deposit of arms or of anything
|
|
else to one who asks for it when he is not in his right senses;
|
|
and yet a deposit cannot be denied to be a debt.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then when the person who asks me is not in his right mind I am
|
|
by no means to make the return?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
When Simonides said that the repayment of a debt was justice,
|
|
he did not mean to include that case?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not; for he thinks that a friend ought always to do
|
|
good to a friend and never evil.
|
|
|
|
You mean that the return of a deposit of gold which is to the injury
|
|
of the receiver, if the two parties are friends, is not the repayment
|
|
of a debt,--that is what you would imagine him to say?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And are enemies also to receive what we owe to them?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said, they are to receive what we owe them, and an enemy,
|
|
as I take it, owes to an enemy that which is due or proper to him--
|
|
that is to say, evil.
|
|
|
|
Simonides, then, after the manner of poets, would seem to have
|
|
spoken darkly of the nature of justice; for he really meant to say
|
|
that justice is the giving to each man what is proper to him,
|
|
and this he termed a debt.
|
|
|
|
That must have been his meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
By heaven! I replied; and if we asked him what due or proper thing
|
|
is given by medicine, and to whom, what answer do you think that he
|
|
would make to us?
|
|
|
|
He would surely reply that medicine gives drugs and meat and drink
|
|
to human bodies.
|
|
|
|
And what due or proper thing is given by cookery, and to what?
|
|
|
|
Seasoning to food.
|
|
|
|
And what is that which justice gives, and to whom?
|
|
|
|
If, Socrates, we are to be guided at all
|
|
by the analogy of the preceding instances,
|
|
then justice is the art which gives good to friends and evil to enemies.
|
|
|
|
That is his meaning then?
|
|
|
|
I think so.
|
|
|
|
And who is best able to do good to his friends and evil to his
|
|
enemies in time of sickness?
|
|
|
|
The physician.
|
|
|
|
Or when they are on a voyage, amid the perils of the sea?
|
|
|
|
The pilot.
|
|
|
|
And in what sort of actions or with a view to what result is the just
|
|
man most able to do harm to his enemy and good to his friends?
|
|
|
|
In going to war against the one and in making alliances with the other.
|
|
|
|
But when a man is well, my dear Polemarchus, there is no need
|
|
of a physician?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
And he who is not on a voyage has no need of a pilot?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Then in time of peace justice will be of no use?
|
|
|
|
I am very far from thinking so.
|
|
|
|
You think that justice may be of use in peace as well as in war?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Like husbandry for the acquisition of corn?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Or like shoemaking for the acquisition of shoes,--that is what you mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And what similar use or power of acquisition has justice in time
|
|
of peace?
|
|
|
|
In contracts, Socrates, justice is of use.
|
|
|
|
And by contracts you mean partnerships?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But is the just man or the skilful player a more useful and better
|
|
partner at a game of draughts?
|
|
|
|
The skilful player.
|
|
|
|
And in the laying of bricks and stones is the just man a more useful
|
|
or better partner than the builder?
|
|
|
|
Quite the reverse.
|
|
|
|
Then in what sort of partnership is the just man a better partner
|
|
than the harp-player, as in playing the harp the harp-player
|
|
is certainly a better partner than the just man?
|
|
|
|
In a money partnership.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Polemarchus, but surely not in the use of money; for you do not
|
|
want a just man to be your counsellor the purchase or sale of a horse;
|
|
a man who is knowing about horses would be better for that,
|
|
would he not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to buy a ship, the shipwright or the pilot would
|
|
be better?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then what is that joint use of silver or gold in which the just man
|
|
is to be preferred?
|
|
|
|
When you want a deposit to be kept safely.
|
|
|
|
You mean when money is not wanted, but allowed to lie?
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
That is to say, justice is useful when money is useless?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to keep a pruning-hook safe, then justice is useful
|
|
to the individual and to the state; but when you want to use it,
|
|
then the art of the vine-dresser?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And when you want to keep a shield or a lyre, and not to use them,
|
|
you would say that justice is useful; but when you want to use them,
|
|
then the art of the soldier or of the musician?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And so of all the other things;--justice is useful when they
|
|
are useless, and useless when they are useful?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
Then justice is not good for much. But let us consider this
|
|
further point: Is not he who can best strike a blow in a boxing
|
|
match or in any kind of fighting best able to ward off a blow?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And he who is most skilful in preventing or escaping from a disease
|
|
is best able to create one?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And he is the best guard of a camp who is best able to steal a march
|
|
upon the enemy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then he who is a good keeper of anything is also a good thief?
|
|
|
|
That, I suppose, is to be inferred.
|
|
|
|
Then if the just man is good at keeping money, he is good at stealing it.
|
|
|
|
That is implied in the argument.
|
|
|
|
Then after all the just man has turned out to be a thief.
|
|
And this is a lesson which I suspect you must have learnt out of Homer;
|
|
for he, speaking of Autolycus, the maternal grandfather of Odysseus,
|
|
who is a favourite of his, affirms that
|
|
|
|
He was excellent above all men in theft and perjury.
|
|
|
|
And so, you and Homer and Simonides are agreed that justice is
|
|
an art of theft; to be practised however `for the good of friends
|
|
and for the harm of enemies,'--that was what you were saying?
|
|
|
|
No, certainly not that, though I do not now know what I did say;
|
|
but I still stand by the latter words.
|
|
|
|
Well, there is another question: By friends and enemies do we mean
|
|
those who are so really, or only in seeming?
|
|
|
|
Surely, he said, a man may be expected to love those whom he
|
|
thinks good, and to hate those whom he thinks evil.
|
|
|
|
Yes, but do not persons often err about good and evil:
|
|
many who are not good seem to be so, and conversely?
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
Then to them the good will be enemies and the evil
|
|
will be their friends? True.
|
|
|
|
And in that case they will be right in doing good to the evil
|
|
and evil to the good?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But the good are just and would not do an injustice?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then according to your argument it is just to injure those who do
|
|
no wrong?
|
|
|
|
Nay, Socrates; the doctrine is immoral.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that we ought to do good to the just and harm
|
|
to the unjust?
|
|
|
|
I like that better.
|
|
|
|
But see the consequence:--Many a man who is ignorant of human nature
|
|
has friends who are bad friends, and in that case he ought to do harm
|
|
to them; and he has good enemies whom he ought to benefit; but, if so,
|
|
we shall be saying the very opposite of that which we affirmed
|
|
to be the meaning of Simonides.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said: and I think that we had better correct an error
|
|
into which we seem to have fallen in the use of the words `friend'
|
|
and `enemy.'
|
|
|
|
What was the error, Polemarchus? I asked.
|
|
|
|
We assumed that he is a friend who seems to be or who is thought good.
|
|
|
|
And how is the error to be corrected?
|
|
|
|
We should rather say that he is a friend who is, as well
|
|
as seems, good; and that he who seems only, and is not good,
|
|
only seems to be and is not a friend; and of an enemy the same may be said.
|
|
|
|
You would argue that the good are our friends and the bad our enemies?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And instead of saying simply as we did at first, that it is just to do
|
|
good to our friends and harm to our enemies, we should further say:
|
|
It is just to do good to our friends when they are good and harm
|
|
to our enemies when they are evil?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that appears to me to be the truth.
|
|
|
|
But ought the just to injure any one at all?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly he ought to injure those who are both wicked and his enemies.
|
|
|
|
When horses are injured, are they improved or deteriorated?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
Deteriorated, that is to say, in the good qualities of horses,
|
|
not of dogs?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of horses.
|
|
|
|
And dogs are deteriorated in the good qualities of dogs, and not
|
|
of horses?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And will not men who are injured be deteriorated in that which is
|
|
the proper virtue of man?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that human virtue is justice?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then men who are injured are of necessity made unjust?
|
|
|
|
That is the result.
|
|
|
|
But can the musician by his art make men unmusical?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or the horseman by his art make them bad horsemen?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And can the just by justice make men unjust, or speaking general
|
|
can the good by virtue make them bad?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
Any more than heat can produce cold?
|
|
|
|
It cannot.
|
|
|
|
Or drought moisture?
|
|
|
|
Clearly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor can the good harm any one?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the just is the good?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then to injure a friend or any one else is not the act of a just man,
|
|
but of the opposite, who is the unjust?
|
|
|
|
I think that what you say is quite true, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Then if a man says that justice consists in the repayment of debts,
|
|
and that good is the debt which a man owes to his friends, and evil
|
|
the debt which he owes to his enemies,--to say this is not wise;
|
|
for it is not true, if, as has been clearly shown, the injuring of
|
|
another can be in no case just.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, said Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
Then you and I are prepared to take up arms against any one
|
|
who attributes such a saying to Simonides or Bias or Pittacus,
|
|
or any other wise man or seer?
|
|
|
|
I am quite ready to do battle at your side, he said.
|
|
|
|
Shall I tell you whose I believe the saying to be?
|
|
|
|
Whose?
|
|
|
|
I believe that Periander or Perdiccas or Xerxes or Ismenias
|
|
the Theban, or some other rich and mighty man, who had a great
|
|
opinion of his own power, was the first to say that justice
|
|
is `doing good to your friends and harm to your enemies.'
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but if this definition of justice also breaks down,
|
|
what other can be offered?
|
|
|
|
Several times in the course of the discussion Thrasymachus had made
|
|
an attempt to get the argument into his own hands, and had been
|
|
put down by the rest of the company, who wanted to hear the end.
|
|
But when Polemarchus and I had done speaking and there was a pause,
|
|
he could no longer hold his peace; and, gathering himself up,
|
|
he came at us like a wild beast, seeking to devour us. We were quite
|
|
panic-stricken at the sight of him.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - POLEMARCHUS - THRASYMACHUS
|
|
|
|
He roared out to the whole company: What folly. Socrates, has taken
|
|
possession of you all? And why, sillybillies, do you knock under to
|
|
one another? I say that if you want really to know what justice is,
|
|
you should not only ask but answer, and you should not seek honour
|
|
to yourself from the refutation of an opponent, but have your own answer;
|
|
for there is many a one who can ask and cannot answer. And now I
|
|
will not have you say that justice is duty or advantage or profit
|
|
or gain or interest, for this sort of nonsense will not do for me;
|
|
I must have clearness and accuracy.
|
|
|
|
I was panic-stricken at his words, and could not look at him
|
|
without trembling. Indeed I believe that if I had not fixed my eye
|
|
upon him, I should have been struck dumb: but when I saw his fury rising,
|
|
I looked at him first, and was therefore able to reply to him.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus, I said, with a quiver, don't be hard upon us.
|
|
Polemarchus and I may have been guilty of a little mistake in
|
|
the argument, but I can assure you that the error was not intentional.
|
|
If we were seeking for a piece of gold, you would not imagine
|
|
that we were `knocking under to one another,' and so losing our
|
|
chance of finding it. And why, when we are seeking for justice,
|
|
a thing more precious than many pieces of gold, do you say that we
|
|
are weakly yielding to one another and not doing our utmost
|
|
to get at the truth? Nay, my good friend, we are most willing
|
|
and anxious to do so, but the fact is that we cannot. And if so,
|
|
you people who know all things should pity us and not be angry
|
|
with us.
|
|
|
|
How characteristic of Socrates! he replied, with a bitter laugh;--
|
|
that's your ironical style! Did I not foresee--have I not already
|
|
told you, that whatever he was asked he would refuse to answer,
|
|
and try irony or any other shuffle, in order that he might
|
|
avoid answering?
|
|
|
|
You are a philosopher, Thrasymachus, I replied, and well
|
|
know that if you ask a person what numbers make up twelve,
|
|
taking care to prohibit him whom you ask from answering twice six,
|
|
or three times four, or six times two, or four times three,
|
|
`for this sort of nonsense will not do for me,'--then obviously,
|
|
that is your way of putting the question, no one can answer you.
|
|
But suppose that he were to retort, `Thrasymachus, what do you mean?
|
|
If one of these numbers which you interdict be the true answer
|
|
to the question, am I falsely to say some other number which is
|
|
not the right one?--is that your meaning?' --How would you
|
|
answer him?
|
|
|
|
Just as if the two cases were at all alike! he said.
|
|
|
|
Why should they not be? I replied; and even if they are not,
|
|
but only appear to be so to the person who is asked, ought he not
|
|
to say what he thinks, whether you and I forbid him or not?
|
|
|
|
I presume then that you are going to make one of the interdicted answers?
|
|
|
|
I dare say that I may, notwithstanding the danger, if upon reflection
|
|
I approve of any of them.
|
|
|
|
But what if I give you an answer about justice other and better,
|
|
he said, than any of these? What do you deserve to have done
|
|
to you?
|
|
|
|
Done to me!--as becomes the ignorant, I must learn from the wise--
|
|
that is what I deserve to have done to me.
|
|
|
|
What, and no payment! a pleasant notion!
|
|
|
|
I will pay when I have the money, I replied.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - THRASYMACHUS - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
But you have, Socrates, said Glaucon: and you, Thrasymachus, need be
|
|
under no anxiety about money, for we will all make a contribution
|
|
for Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, and then Socrates will do as he always does--
|
|
refuse to answer himself, but take and pull to pieces the answer
|
|
of some one else.
|
|
|
|
Why, my good friend, I said, how can any one answer who knows,
|
|
and says that he knows, just nothing; and who, even if he has some faint
|
|
notions of his own, is told by a man of authority not to utter them?
|
|
The natural thing is, that the speaker should be some one like
|
|
yourself who professes to know and can tell what he knows.
|
|
Will you then kindly answer, for the edification of the company
|
|
and of myself ?
|
|
|
|
Glaucon and the rest of the company joined in my request and Thrasymachus,
|
|
as any one might see, was in reality eager to speak; for he thought
|
|
that he had an excellent answer, and would distinguish himself.
|
|
But at first he to insist on my answering; at length he consented
|
|
to begin. Behold, he said, the wisdom of Socrates; he refuses
|
|
to teach himself, and goes about learning of others, to whom he
|
|
never even says thank you.
|
|
|
|
That I learn of others, I replied, is quite true; but that I am ungrateful
|
|
I wholly deny. Money I have none, and therefore I pay in praise,
|
|
which is all I have: and how ready I am to praise any one who appears
|
|
to me to speak well you will very soon find out when you answer;
|
|
for I expect that you will answer well.
|
|
|
|
Listen, then, he said; I proclaim that justice is nothing else
|
|
than the interest of the stronger. And now why do you not me?
|
|
But of course you won't.
|
|
|
|
Let me first understand you, I replied. justice, as you say, is the
|
|
interest of the stronger. What, Thrasymachus, is the meaning of this?
|
|
You cannot mean to say that because Polydamas, the pancratiast,
|
|
is stronger than we are, and finds the eating of beef conducive
|
|
to his bodily strength, that to eat beef is therefore equally
|
|
for our good who are weaker than he is, and right and just for us?
|
|
|
|
That's abominable of you, Socrates; you take the words in the sense
|
|
which is most damaging to the argument.
|
|
|
|
Not at all, my good sir, I said; I am trying to understand them;
|
|
and I wish that you would be a little clearer.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, have you never heard that forms of government differ;
|
|
there are tyrannies, and there are democracies, and there
|
|
are aristocracies?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know.
|
|
|
|
And the government is the ruling power in each state?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the different forms of government make laws democratical,
|
|
aristocratical, tyrannical, with a view to their several interests;
|
|
and these laws, which are made by them for their own interests,
|
|
are the justice which they deliver to their subjects, and him who
|
|
transgresses them they punish as a breaker of the law, and unjust.
|
|
And that is what I mean when I say that in all states there is the same
|
|
principle of justice, which is the interest of the government;
|
|
and as the government must be supposed to have power, the only reasonable
|
|
conclusion is, that everywhere there is one principle of justice,
|
|
which is the interest of the stronger.
|
|
|
|
Now I understand you, I said; and whether you are right or not I
|
|
will try to discover. But let me remark, that in defining justice you
|
|
have yourself used the word `interest' which you forbade me to use.
|
|
It is true, however, that in your definition the words `of the stronger'
|
|
are added.
|
|
|
|
A small addition, you must allow, he said.
|
|
|
|
Great or small, never mind about that: we must first enquire whether
|
|
what you are saying is the truth. Now we are both agreed that justice
|
|
is interest of some sort, but you go on to say `of the stronger';
|
|
about this addition I am not so sure, and must therefore consider further.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I will; and first tell me, Do you admit that it is just or subjects
|
|
to obey their rulers?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
But are the rulers of states absolutely infallible, or are they
|
|
sometimes liable to err?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he replied, they are liable to err.
|
|
|
|
Then in making their laws they may sometimes make them rightly,
|
|
and sometimes not?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
When they make them rightly, they make them agreeably to their interest;
|
|
when they are mistaken, contrary to their interest; you admit that?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the laws which they make must be obeyed by their subjects,--
|
|
and that is what you call justice?
|
|
|
|
Doubtless.
|
|
|
|
Then justice, according to your argument, is not only obedience
|
|
to the interest of the stronger but the reverse?
|
|
|
|
What is that you are saying? he asked.
|
|
|
|
I am only repeating what you are saying, I believe. But let us consider:
|
|
Have we not admitted that the rulers may be mistaken about their own
|
|
interest in what they command, and also that to obey them is justice?
|
|
Has not that been admitted?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then you must also have acknowledged justice not to be for the interest
|
|
of the stronger, when the rulers unintentionally command things
|
|
to be done which are to their own injury. For if, as you say,
|
|
justice is the obedience which the subject renders to their commands,
|
|
in that case, O wisest of men, is there any escape from the conclusion
|
|
that the weaker are commanded to do, not what is for the interest,
|
|
but what is for the injury of the stronger?
|
|
|
|
Nothing can be clearer, Socrates, said Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - CLEITOPHON - POLEMARCHUS - THRASYMACHUS
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Cleitophon, interposing, if you are allowed to be his witness.
|
|
|
|
But there is no need of any witness, said Polemarchus, for Thrasymachus
|
|
himself acknowledges that rulers may sometimes command what is not
|
|
for their own interest, and that for subjects to obey them is justice.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Polemarchus,--Thrasymachus said that for subjects to do
|
|
what was commanded by their rulers is just.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Cleitophon, but he also said that justice is the interest
|
|
of the stronger, and, while admitting both these propositions,
|
|
he further acknowledged that the stronger may command the weaker
|
|
who are his subjects to do what is not for his own interest;
|
|
whence follows that justice is the injury quite as much as the interest
|
|
of the stronger.
|
|
|
|
But, said Cleitophon, he meant by the interest of the stronger
|
|
what the stronger thought to be his interest,--this was what
|
|
the weaker had to do; and this was affirmed by him to be justice.
|
|
|
|
Those were not his words, rejoined Polemarchus.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - THRASYMACHUS
|
|
|
|
Never mind, I replied, if he now says that they are, let us
|
|
accept his statement. Tell me, Thrasymachus, I said, did you
|
|
mean by justice what the stronger thought to be his interest,
|
|
whether really so or not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said. Do you suppose that I call him who is
|
|
mistaken the stronger at the time when he is mistaken?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my impression was that you did so, when you admitted
|
|
that the ruler was not infallible but might be sometimes mistaken.
|
|
|
|
You argue like an informer, Socrates. Do you mean, for example,
|
|
that he who is mistaken about the sick is a physician in that he is
|
|
mistaken? or that he who errs in arithmetic or grammar is an arithmetician
|
|
or grammarian at the me when he is making the mistake, in respect
|
|
of the mistake? True, we say that the physician or arithmetician
|
|
or grammarian has made a mistake, but this is only a way of speaking;
|
|
for the fact is that neither the grammarian nor any other person
|
|
of skill ever makes a mistake in so far as he is what his name implies;
|
|
they none of them err unless their skill fails them, and then
|
|
they cease to be skilled artists. No artist or sage or ruler
|
|
errs at the time when he is what his name implies; though he is
|
|
commonly said to err, and I adopted the common mode of speaking.
|
|
But to be perfectly accurate, since you are such a lover of accuracy,
|
|
we should say that the ruler, in so far as he is the ruler,
|
|
is unerring, and, being unerring, always commands that which is for his
|
|
own interest; and the subject is required to execute his commands;
|
|
and therefore, as I said at first and now repeat, justice is the interest
|
|
of the stronger.
|
|
|
|
Indeed, Thrasymachus, and do I really appear to you to argue
|
|
like an informer?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And you suppose that I ask these questions with any design
|
|
of injuring you in the argument?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he replied, `suppose' is not the word--I know it; but you will
|
|
be found out, and by sheer force of argument you will never prevail.
|
|
|
|
I shall not make the attempt, my dear man; but to avoid any misunderstanding
|
|
occurring between us in future, let me ask, in what sense do you
|
|
speak of a ruler or stronger whose interest, as you were saying,
|
|
he being the superior, it is just that the inferior should execute--
|
|
is he a ruler in the popular or in the strict sense of the term?
|
|
|
|
In the strictest of all senses, he said. And now cheat and play
|
|
the informer if you can; I ask no quarter at your hands.
|
|
But you never will be able, never.
|
|
|
|
And do you imagine, I said, that I am such a madman as to try
|
|
and cheat, Thrasymachus? I might as well shave a lion.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, you made the attempt a minute ago, and you failed.
|
|
|
|
Enough, I said, of these civilities. It will be better that I should
|
|
ask you a question: Is the physician, taken in that strict sense
|
|
of which you are speaking, a healer of the sick or a maker of money?
|
|
And remember that I am now speaking of the true physician.
|
|
|
|
A healer of the sick, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the pilot--that is to say, the true pilot--is he a captain
|
|
of sailors or a mere sailor?
|
|
|
|
A captain of sailors.
|
|
|
|
The circumstance that he sails in the ship is not to be taken
|
|
into account; neither is he to be called a sailor; the name pilot
|
|
by which he is distinguished has nothing to do with sailing,
|
|
but is significant of his skill and of his authority over the sailors.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now, I said, every art has an interest?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
For which the art has to consider and provide?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the aim of art.
|
|
|
|
And the interest of any art is the perfection of it--this and
|
|
nothing else?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean what I may illustrate negatively by the example of the body.
|
|
Suppose you were to ask me whether the body is self-sufficing
|
|
or has wants, I should reply: Certainly the body has wants;
|
|
for the body may be ill and require to be cured, and has therefore
|
|
interests to which the art of medicine ministers; and this is
|
|
the origin and intention of medicine, as you will acknowledge.
|
|
Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But is the art of medicine or any other art faulty or deficient
|
|
in any quality in the same way that the eye may be deficient
|
|
in sight or the ear fail of hearing, and therefore requires
|
|
another art to provide for the interests of seeing and hearing--
|
|
has art in itself, I say, any similar liability to fault or defect,
|
|
and does every art require another supplementary art to provide
|
|
for its interests, and that another and another without end?
|
|
Or have the arts to look only after their own interests? Or have they
|
|
no need either of themselves or of another?--having no faults or defects,
|
|
they have no need to correct them, either by the exercise of their
|
|
own art or of any other; they have only to consider the interest
|
|
of their subject-matter. For every art remains pure and faultless
|
|
while remaining true--that is to say, while perfect and unimpaired.
|
|
Take the words in your precise sense, and tell me whether I am
|
|
not right."
|
|
|
|
Yes, clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then medicine does not consider the interest of medicine,
|
|
but the interest of the body?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Nor does the art of horsemanship consider the interests
|
|
of the art of horsemanship, but the interests of the horse;
|
|
neither do any other arts care for themselves, for they have no needs;
|
|
they care only for that which is the subject of their art?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
But surely, Thrasymachus, the arts are the superiors and rulers
|
|
of their own subjects?
|
|
|
|
To this he assented with a good deal of reluctance.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, no science or art considers or enjoins the interest
|
|
of the stronger or superior, but only the interest of the subject
|
|
and weaker?
|
|
|
|
He made an attempt to contest this proposition also, but finally acquiesced.
|
|
|
|
Then, I continued, no physician, in so far as he is a physician,
|
|
considers his own good in what he prescribes, but the good
|
|
of his patient; for the true physician is also a ruler having
|
|
the human body as a subject, and is not a mere money-maker;
|
|
that has been admitted?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the pilot likewise, in the strict sense of the term, is a ruler
|
|
of sailors and not a mere sailor?
|
|
|
|
That has been admitted.
|
|
|
|
And such a pilot and ruler will provide and prescribe for the interest
|
|
of the sailor who is under him, and not for his own or the ruler's interest?
|
|
|
|
He gave a reluctant `Yes.'
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, Thrasymachus, there is no one in any rule who, in so far
|
|
as he is a ruler, considers or enjoins what is for his own interest,
|
|
but always what is for the interest of his subject or suitable to his art;
|
|
to that he looks, and that alone he considers in everything which he
|
|
says and does.
|
|
|
|
When we had got to this point in the argument, and every one saw
|
|
that the definition of justice had been completely upset, Thrasymachus,
|
|
instead of replying to me, said: Tell me, Socrates, have you got a nurse?
|
|
|
|
Why do you ask such a question, I said, when you ought rather
|
|
to be answering?
|
|
|
|
Because she leaves you to snivel, and never wipes your nose:
|
|
she has not even taught you to know the shepherd from the sheep.
|
|
|
|
What makes you say that? I replied.
|
|
|
|
Because you fancy that the shepherd or neatherd fattens of tends the sheep
|
|
or oxen with a view to their own good and not to the good of himself
|
|
or his master; and you further imagine that the rulers of states,
|
|
if they are true rulers, never think of their subjects as sheep,
|
|
and that they are not studying their own advantage day and night.
|
|
Oh, no; and so entirely astray are you in your ideas about the just
|
|
and unjust as not even to know that justice and the just are in
|
|
reality another's good; that is to say, the interest of the ruler
|
|
and stronger, and the loss of the subject and servant; and injustice
|
|
the opposite; for the unjust is lord over the truly simple and just:
|
|
he is the stronger, and his subjects do what is for his interest,
|
|
and minister to his happiness, which is very far from being their own.
|
|
Consider further, most foolish Socrates, that the just is always a loser
|
|
in comparison with the unjust. First of all, in private contracts:
|
|
wherever the unjust is the partner of the just you will find that,
|
|
when the partnership is dissolved, the unjust man has always more
|
|
and the just less. Secondly, in their dealings with the State:
|
|
when there is an income tax, the just man will pay more and
|
|
the unjust less on the same amount of income; and when there is
|
|
anything to be received the one gains nothing and the other much.
|
|
Observe also what happens when they take an office; there is the just
|
|
man neglecting his affairs and perhaps suffering other losses,
|
|
and getting nothing out of the public, because he is just;
|
|
moreover he is hated by his friends and acquaintance for refusing
|
|
to serve them in unlawful ways. But all this is reversed in the case
|
|
of the unjust man. I am speaking, as before, of injustice on a
|
|
large scale in which the advantage of the unjust is more apparent;
|
|
and my meaning will be most clearly seen if we turn to that highest
|
|
form of injustice in which the criminal is the happiest of men,
|
|
and the sufferers or those who refuse to do injustice are the
|
|
most miserable--that is to say tyranny, which by fraud and force takes
|
|
away the property of others, not little by little but wholesale;
|
|
comprehending in one, things sacred as well as profane, private and public;
|
|
for which acts of wrong, if he were detected perpetrating any one
|
|
of them singly, he would be punished and incur great disgrace--
|
|
they who do such wrong in particular cases are called robbers
|
|
of temples, and man-stealers and burglars and swindlers and thieves.
|
|
But when a man besides taking away the money of the citizens has
|
|
made slaves of them, then, instead of these names of reproach,
|
|
he is termed happy and blessed, not only by the citizens but by all
|
|
who hear of his having achieved the consummation of injustice.
|
|
For mankind censure injustice, fearing that they may be the victims
|
|
of it and not because they shrink from committing it. And thus,
|
|
as I have shown, Socrates, injustice, when on a sufficient scale,
|
|
has more strength and freedom and mastery than justice; and, as I said
|
|
at first, justice is the interest of the stronger, whereas injustice
|
|
is a man's own profit and interest.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus, when he had thus spoken, having, like a bathman,
|
|
deluged our ears with his words, had a mind to go away. But the company
|
|
would not let him; they insisted that he should remain and defend
|
|
his position; and I myself added my own humble request that he
|
|
would not leave us. Thrasymachus, I said to him, excellent man,
|
|
how suggestive are your remarks! And are you going to run away
|
|
before you have fairly taught or learned whether they are true or not?
|
|
Is the attempt to determine the way of man's life so small a matter
|
|
in your eyes--to determine how life may be passed by each one of us
|
|
to the greatest advantage?
|
|
|
|
And do I differ from you, he said, as to the importance of the enquiry?
|
|
|
|
You appear rather, I replied, to have no care or thought about us,
|
|
Thrasymachus--whether we live better or worse from not knowing what you
|
|
say you know, is to you a matter of indifference. Prithee, friend,
|
|
do not keep your knowledge to yourself; we are a large party;
|
|
and any benefit which you confer upon us will be amply rewarded.
|
|
For my own part I openly declare that I am not convinced, and that I
|
|
do not believe injustice to be more gainful than justice, even if
|
|
uncontrolled and allowed to have free play. For, granting that there
|
|
may be an unjust man who is able to commit injustice either by fraud
|
|
or force, still this does not convince me of the superior advantage
|
|
of injustice, and there may be others who are in the same predicament
|
|
with myself. Perhaps we may be wrong; if so, you in your wisdom
|
|
should convince us that we are mistaken in preferring justice to injustice.
|
|
|
|
And how am I to convince you, he said, if you are not already
|
|
convinced by what I have just said; what more can I do for you?
|
|
Would you have me put the proof bodily into your souls?
|
|
|
|
Heaven forbid! I said; I would only ask you to be consistent;
|
|
or, if you change, change openly and let there be no deception.
|
|
For I must remark, Thrasymachus, if you will recall what was previously said,
|
|
that although you began by defining the true physician in an exact sense,
|
|
you did not observe a like exactness when speaking of the shepherd;
|
|
you thought that the shepherd as a shepherd tends the sheep not
|
|
with a view to their own good, but like a mere diner or banqueter
|
|
with a view to the pleasures of the table; or, again, as a trader
|
|
for sale in the market, and not as a shepherd. Yet surely the art
|
|
of the shepherd is concerned only with the good of his subjects;
|
|
he has only to provide the best for them, since the perfection of the art
|
|
is already ensured whenever all the requirements of it are satisfied.
|
|
And that was what I was saying just now about the ruler. I conceived
|
|
that the art of the ruler, considered as ruler, whether in a state
|
|
or in private life, could only regard the good of his flock or subjects;
|
|
whereas you seem to think that the rulers in states, that is to say,
|
|
the true rulers, like being in authority.
|
|
|
|
Think! Nay, I am sure of it.
|
|
|
|
Then why in the case of lesser offices do men never take them
|
|
willingly without payment, unless under the idea that they govern
|
|
for the advantage not of themselves but of others? Let me ask you
|
|
a question: Are not the several arts different, by reason of their
|
|
each having a separate function? And, my dear illustrious friend,
|
|
do say what you think, that we may make a little progress.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the difference, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And each art gives us a particular good and not merely a general one--
|
|
medicine, for example, gives us health; navigation, safety at sea,
|
|
and so on?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the art of payment has the special function of giving pay:
|
|
but we do not confuse this with other arts, any more than
|
|
the art of the pilot is to be confused with the art of medicine,
|
|
because the health of the pilot may be improved by a sea voyage.
|
|
You would not be inclined to say, would you, that navigation is
|
|
the art of medicine, at least if we are to adopt your exact use
|
|
of language?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or because a man is in good health when he receives pay you would
|
|
not say that the art of payment is medicine?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
Nor would you say that medicine is the art of receiving pay
|
|
because a man takes fees when he is engaged in healing?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And we have admitted, I said, that the good of each art is specially
|
|
confined to the art?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then, if there be any good which all artists have in common,
|
|
that is to be attributed to something of which they all have
|
|
the common use?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And when the artist is benefited by receiving pay the advantage
|
|
is gained by an additional use of the art of pay, which is not
|
|
the art professed by him?
|
|
|
|
He gave a reluctant assent to this.
|
|
|
|
Then the pay is not derived by the several artists from their
|
|
respective arts. But the truth is, that while the art of medicine
|
|
gives health, and the art of the builder builds a house, another art
|
|
attends them which is the art of pay. The various arts may be doing
|
|
their own business and benefiting that over which they preside,
|
|
but would the artist receive any benefit from his art unless he
|
|
were paid as well?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
But does he therefore confer no benefit when he works for nothing?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he confers a benefit.
|
|
|
|
Then now, Thrasymachus, there is no longer any doubt that neither
|
|
arts nor governments provide for their own interests; but, as we
|
|
were before saying, they rule and provide for the interests
|
|
of their subjects who are the weaker and not the stronger--
|
|
to their good they attend and not to the good of the superior.
|
|
|
|
And this is the reason, my dear Thrasymachus, why, as I was just
|
|
now saying, no one is willing to govern; because no one likes
|
|
to take in hand the reformation of evils which are not his
|
|
concern without remuneration. For, in the execution of his work,
|
|
and in giving his orders to another, the true artist does
|
|
not regard his own interest, but always that of his subjects;
|
|
and therefore in order that rulers may be willing to rule,
|
|
they must be paid in one of three modes of payment: money, or honour,
|
|
or a penalty for refusing.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
What do you mean, Socrates? said Glaucon. The first two modes
|
|
of payment are intelligible enough, but what the penalty is I
|
|
do not understand, or how a penalty can be a payment.
|
|
|
|
You mean that you do not understand the nature of this payment
|
|
which to the best men is the great inducement to rule? Of course you
|
|
know that ambition and avarice are held to be, as indeed they are,
|
|
a disgrace?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason, I said, money and honour have no attraction for them;
|
|
good men do not wish to be openly demanding payment for governing
|
|
and so to get the name of hirelings, nor by secretly helping
|
|
themselves out of the public revenues to get the name of thieves.
|
|
And not being ambitious they do not care about honour.
|
|
Wherefore necessity must be laid upon them, and they must
|
|
be induced to serve from the fear of punishment. And this,
|
|
as I imagine, is the reason why the forwardness to take office,
|
|
instead of waiting to be compelled, has been deemed dishonourable.
|
|
Now the worst part of the punishment is that he who refuses
|
|
to rule is liable to be ruled by one who is worse than himself.
|
|
And the fear of this, as I conceive, induces the good to take office,
|
|
not because they would, but because they cannot help--not under the idea
|
|
that they are going to have any benefit or enjoyment themselves,
|
|
but as a necessity, and because they are not able to commit
|
|
the task of ruling to any one who is better than themselves,
|
|
or indeed as good. For there is reason to think that if a city
|
|
were composed entirely of good men, then to avoid office would be
|
|
as much an object of contention as to obtain office is at present;
|
|
then we should have plain proof that the true ruler is not meant
|
|
by nature to regard his own interest, but that of his subjects;
|
|
and every one who knew this would choose rather to receive
|
|
a benefit from another than to have the trouble of conferring one.
|
|
So far am I from agreeing with Thrasymachus that justice is the
|
|
interest of the stronger. This latter question need not be further
|
|
discussed at present; but when Thrasymachus says that the life
|
|
of the unjust is more advantageous than that of the just, his new
|
|
statement appears to me to be of a far more serious character.
|
|
Which of us has spoken truly? And which sort of life, Glaucon,
|
|
do you prefer?
|
|
|
|
I for my part deem the life of the just to be the more advantageous,
|
|
he answered.
|
|
|
|
Did you hear all the advantages of the unjust which Thrasymachus
|
|
was rehearsing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I heard him, he replied, but he has not convinced me.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we try to find some way of convincing him, if we can,
|
|
that he is saying what is not true?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
If, I said, he makes a set speech and we make another recounting
|
|
all the advantages of being just, and he answers and we rejoin,
|
|
there must be a numbering and measuring of the goods which are claimed
|
|
on either side, and in the end we shall want judges to decide;
|
|
but if we proceed in our enquiry as we lately did, by making admissions
|
|
to one another, we shall unite the offices of judge and advocate
|
|
in our own persons.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
And which method do I understand you to prefer? I said.
|
|
|
|
That which you propose.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, Thrasymachus, I said, suppose you begin at the beginning
|
|
and answer me. You say that perfect injustice is more gainful
|
|
than perfect justice?
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON - THRASYMACHUS
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is what I say, and I have given you my reasons.
|
|
|
|
And what is your view about them? Would you call one of them
|
|
virtue and the other vice?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
I suppose that you would call justice virtue and injustice vice?
|
|
|
|
What a charming notion! So likely too, seeing that I affirm
|
|
injustice to be profitable and justice not.
|
|
|
|
What else then would you say?
|
|
|
|
The opposite, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And would you call justice vice?
|
|
|
|
No, I would rather say sublime simplicity.
|
|
|
|
Then would you call injustice malignity?
|
|
|
|
No; I would rather say discretion.
|
|
|
|
And do the unjust appear to you to be wise and good?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at any rate those of them who are able to be perfectly
|
|
unjust, and who have the power of subduing states and nations;
|
|
but perhaps you imagine me to be talking of cutpurses.
|
|
|
|
Even this profession if undetected has advantages, though they
|
|
are not to be compared with those of which I was just now speaking.
|
|
|
|
I do not think that I misapprehend your meaning, Thrasymachus, I replied;
|
|
but still I cannot hear without amazement that you class injustice
|
|
with wisdom and virtue, and justice with the opposite.
|
|
|
|
Certainly I do so class them.
|
|
|
|
Now, I said, you are on more substantial and almost unanswerable ground;
|
|
for if the injustice which you were maintaining to be profitable
|
|
had been admitted by you as by others to be vice and deformity,
|
|
an answer might have been given to you on received principles;
|
|
but now I perceive that you will call injustice honourable and strong,
|
|
and to the unjust you will attribute all the qualities which were
|
|
attributed by us before to the just, seeing that you do not hesitate to
|
|
rank injustice with wisdom and virtue.
|
|
|
|
You have guessed most infallibly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then I certainly ought not to shrink from going through
|
|
with the argument so long as I have reason to think that you,
|
|
Thrasymachus, are speaking your real mind; for I do believe
|
|
that you are now in earnest and are not amusing yourself at our expense.
|
|
|
|
I may be in earnest or not, but what is that to you?--to refute
|
|
the argument is your business.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; that is what I have to do: But will you
|
|
be so good as answer yet one more question? Does the just man
|
|
try to gain any advantage over the just?
|
|
|
|
Far otherwise; if he did would not be the simple, amusing creature
|
|
which he is.
|
|
|
|
And would he try to go beyond just action?
|
|
|
|
He would not.
|
|
|
|
And how would he regard the attempt to gain an advantage over the unjust;
|
|
would that be considered by him as just or unjust?
|
|
|
|
He would think it just, and would try to gain the advantage;
|
|
but he would not be able.
|
|
|
|
Whether he would or would not be able, I said, is not to the point.
|
|
My question is only whether the just man, while refusing to have
|
|
more than another just man, would wish and claim to have more than
|
|
the unjust?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he would.
|
|
|
|
And what of the unjust--does he claim to have more than the just
|
|
man and to do more than is just
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said, for he claims to have more than all men.
|
|
|
|
And the unjust man will strive and struggle to obtain more than
|
|
the unjust man or action, in order that he may have more than all?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
We may put the matter thus, I said--the just does not desire
|
|
more than his like but more than his unlike, whereas the unjust
|
|
desires more than both his like and his unlike?
|
|
|
|
Nothing, he said, can be better than that statement.
|
|
|
|
And the unjust is good and wise, and the just is neither?
|
|
|
|
Good again, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is not the unjust like the wise and good and the just unlike them?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said, he who is of a certain nature, is like those
|
|
who are of a certain nature; he who is not, not.
|
|
|
|
Each of them, I said, is such as his like is?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Very good, Thrasymachus, I said; and now to take the case of the arts:
|
|
you would admit that one man is a musician and another not a musician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And which is wise and which is foolish?
|
|
|
|
Clearly the musician is wise, and he who is not a musician is foolish.
|
|
|
|
And he is good in as far as he is wise, and bad in as far as he
|
|
is foolish?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you would say the same sort of thing of the physician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And do you think, my excellent friend, that a musician when he
|
|
adjusts the lyre would desire or claim to exceed or go beyond
|
|
a musician in the tightening and loosening the strings?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that he would.
|
|
|
|
But he would claim to exceed the non-musician?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And what would you say of the physician? In prescribing meats
|
|
and drinks would he wish to go beyond another physician or beyond
|
|
the practice of medicine?
|
|
|
|
He would not.
|
|
|
|
But he would wish to go beyond the non-physician?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And about knowledge and ignorance in general; see whether you think
|
|
that any man who has knowledge ever would wish to have the choice
|
|
of saying or doing more than another man who has knowledge.
|
|
Would he not rather say or do the same as his like in the same case?
|
|
|
|
That, I suppose, can hardly be denied.
|
|
|
|
And what of the ignorant? would he not desire to have more than
|
|
either the knowing or the ignorant?
|
|
|
|
I dare say.
|
|
|
|
And the knowing is wise?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the wise is good?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then the wise and good will not desire to gain more than his like,
|
|
but more than his unlike and opposite?
|
|
|
|
I suppose so.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the bad and ignorant will desire to gain more than both?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But did we not say, Thrasymachus, that the unjust goes beyond
|
|
both his like and unlike? Were not these your words? They were.
|
|
|
|
They were.
|
|
|
|
And you also said that the lust will not go beyond his like but his unlike?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the just is like the wise and good, and the unjust like the evil
|
|
and ignorant?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
And each of them is such as his like is?
|
|
|
|
That was admitted.
|
|
|
|
Then the just has turned out to be wise and good and the unjust
|
|
evil and ignorant.
|
|
|
|
Thrasymachus made all these admissions, not fluently,
|
|
as I repeat them, but with extreme reluctance; it was a hot
|
|
summer's day, and the perspiration poured from him in torrents;
|
|
and then I saw what I had never seen before, Thrasymachus blushing.
|
|
As we were now agreed that justice was virtue and wisdom,
|
|
and injustice vice and ignorance, I proceeded to another point:
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, Thrasymachus, that matter is now settled; but were we
|
|
not also saying that injustice had strength; do you remember?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember, he said, but do not suppose that I approve of what
|
|
you are saying or have no answer; if however I were to answer,
|
|
you would be quite certain to accuse me of haranguing; therefore either
|
|
permit me to have my say out, or if you would rather ask, do so,
|
|
and I will answer `Very good,' as they say to story-telling old women,
|
|
and will nod `Yes' and `No.'
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I said, if contrary to your real opinion.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I will, to please you, since you will not let me speak.
|
|
What else would you have?
|
|
|
|
Nothing in the world, I said; and if you are so disposed I will ask
|
|
and you shall answer.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Then I will repeat the question which I asked before,
|
|
in order that our examination of the relative nature of justice
|
|
and injustice may be carried on regularly. A statement was made
|
|
that injustice is stronger and more powerful than justice,
|
|
but now justice, having been identified with wisdom and virtue,
|
|
is easily shown to be stronger than injustice, if injustice
|
|
is ignorance; this can no longer be questioned by any one.
|
|
But I want to view the matter, Thrasymachus, in a different way:
|
|
You would not deny that a state may be unjust and may be unjustly
|
|
attempting to enslave other states, or may have already enslaved them,
|
|
and may be holding many of them in subjection?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied; and I will add the best and perfectly unjust
|
|
state will be most likely to do so.
|
|
|
|
I know, I said, that such was your position; but what I would further
|
|
consider is, whether this power which is possessed by the superior
|
|
state can exist or be exercised without justice.
|
|
|
|
If you are right in you view, and justice is wisdom, then only
|
|
with justice; but if I am right, then without justice.
|
|
|
|
I am delighted, Thrasymachus, to see you not only nodding assent
|
|
and dissent, but making answers which are quite excellent.
|
|
|
|
That is out of civility to you, he replied.
|
|
|
|
You are very kind, I said; and would you have the goodness
|
|
also to inform me, whether you think that a state, or an army,
|
|
or a band of robbers and thieves, or any other gang of evil-doers
|
|
could act at all if they injured one another?
|
|
|
|
No indeed, he said, they could not.
|
|
|
|
But if they abstained from injuring one another, then they might
|
|
act together better?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And this is because injustice creates divisions and hatreds
|
|
and fighting, and justice imparts harmony and friendship;
|
|
is not that true, Thrasymachus?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, because I do not wish to quarrel with you.
|
|
|
|
How good of you, I said; but I should like to know also whether injustice,
|
|
having this tendency to arouse hatred, wherever existing,
|
|
among slaves or among freemen, will not make them hate one another
|
|
and set them at variance and render them incapable of common action?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And even if injustice be found in two only, will they not quarrel
|
|
and fight, and become enemies to one another and to the just
|
|
|
|
They will.
|
|
|
|
And suppose injustice abiding in a single person, would your wisdom
|
|
say that she loses or that she retains her natural power?
|
|
|
|
Let us assume that she retains her power.
|
|
|
|
Yet is not the power which injustice exercises of such a nature
|
|
that wherever she takes up her abode, whether in a city,
|
|
in an army, in a family, or in any other body, that body is,
|
|
to begin with, rendered incapable of united action by reason
|
|
of sedition and distraction; and does it not become its own enemy
|
|
and at variance with all that opposes it, and with the just?
|
|
Is not this the case?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is not injustice equally fatal when existing in a single person;
|
|
in the first place rendering him incapable of action because he
|
|
is not at unity with himself, and in the second place making him
|
|
an enemy to himself and the just? Is not that true, Thrasymachus?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And O my friend, I said, surely the gods are just?
|
|
|
|
Granted that they are.
|
|
|
|
But if so, the unjust will be the enemy of the gods, and the just
|
|
will be their friend?
|
|
|
|
Feast away in triumph, and take your fill of the argument;
|
|
I will not oppose you, lest I should displease the company.
|
|
|
|
Well then, proceed with your answers, and let me have the remainder
|
|
of my repast. For we have already shown that the just are clearly
|
|
wiser and better and abler than the unjust, and that the unjust
|
|
are incapable of common action; nay ing at more, that to speak as we
|
|
did of men who are evil acting at any time vigorously together,
|
|
is not strictly true, for if they had been perfectly evil, they would
|
|
have laid hands upon one another; but it is evident that there must
|
|
have been some remnant of justice in them, which enabled them to combine;
|
|
if there had not been they would have injured one another as well
|
|
as their victims; they were but half--villains in their enterprises;
|
|
for had they been whole villains, and utterly unjust, they would
|
|
have been utterly incapable of action. That, as I believe,
|
|
is the truth of the matter, and not what you said at first.
|
|
But whether the just have a better and happier life than the unjust
|
|
is a further question which we also proposed to consider. I think
|
|
that they have, and for the reasons which to have given; but still
|
|
I should like to examine further, for no light matter is at stake,
|
|
nothing less than the rule of human life.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I will proceed by asking a question: Would you not say that a horse
|
|
has some end?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
And the end or use of a horse or of anything would be that which could
|
|
not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished, by any other thing?
|
|
|
|
I do not understand, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let me explain: Can you see, except with the eye?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or hear, except with the ear?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
These then may be truly said to be the ends of these organs?
|
|
|
|
They may.
|
|
|
|
But you can cut off a vine-branch with a dagger or with a chisel,
|
|
and in many other ways?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And yet not so well as with a pruning-hook made for the purpose?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that this is the end of a pruning-hook?
|
|
|
|
We may.
|
|
|
|
Then now I think you will have no difficulty in understanding my
|
|
meaning when I asked the question whether the end of anything would
|
|
be that which could not be accomplished, or not so well accomplished,
|
|
by any other thing?
|
|
|
|
I understand your meaning, he said, and assent.
|
|
|
|
And that to which an end is appointed has also an excellence?
|
|
Need I ask again whether the eye has an end?
|
|
|
|
It has.
|
|
|
|
And has not the eye an excellence?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the ear has an end and an excellence also?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same is true of all other things; they have each of them
|
|
an end and a special excellence?
|
|
|
|
That is so.
|
|
|
|
Well, and can the eyes fulfil their end if they are wanting
|
|
in their own proper excellence and have a defect instead?
|
|
|
|
How can they, he said, if they are blind and cannot see?
|
|
|
|
You mean to say, if they have lost their proper excellence,
|
|
which is sight; but I have not arrived at that point yet.
|
|
I would rather ask the question more generally, and only enquire
|
|
whether the things which fulfil their ends fulfil them by their own
|
|
proper excellence, and fall of fulfilling them by their own defect?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I might say the same of the ears; when deprived of their own proper
|
|
excellence they cannot fulfil their end?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same observation will apply to all other things?
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Well; and has not the soul an end which nothing else can fulfil?
|
|
for example, to superintend and command and deliberate and the like.
|
|
Are not these functions proper to the soul, and can they rightly be
|
|
assigned to any other?
|
|
|
|
To no other.
|
|
|
|
And is not life to be reckoned among the ends of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And has not the soul an excellence also?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And can she or can she not fulfil her own ends when deprived
|
|
of that excellence?
|
|
|
|
She cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then an evil soul must necessarily be an evil ruler and superintendent,
|
|
and the good soul a good ruler?
|
|
|
|
Yes, necessarily.
|
|
|
|
And we have admitted that justice is the excellence of the soul,
|
|
and injustice the defect of the soul?
|
|
|
|
That has been admitted.
|
|
|
|
Then the just soul and the just man will live well, and the unjust
|
|
man will live ill?
|
|
|
|
That is what your argument proves.
|
|
|
|
And he who lives well is blessed and happy, and he who lives ill
|
|
the reverse of happy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the just is happy, and the unjust miserable?
|
|
|
|
So be it.
|
|
|
|
But happiness and not misery is profitable.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Then, my blessed Thrasymachus, injustice can never be more profitable
|
|
than justice.
|
|
|
|
Let this, Socrates, he said, be your entertainment at the Bendidea.
|
|
|
|
For which I am indebted to you, I said, now that you have grown
|
|
gentle towards me and have left off scolding. Nevertheless, I have
|
|
not been well entertained; but that was my own fault and not yours.
|
|
As an epicure snatches a taste of every dish which is successively
|
|
brought to table, he not having allowed himself time to enjoy
|
|
the one before, so have I gone from one subject to another without
|
|
having discovered what I sought at first, the nature of justice.
|
|
I left that enquiry and turned away to consider whether justice is
|
|
virtue and wisdom or evil and folly; and when there arose a further
|
|
question about the comparative advantages of justice and injustice,
|
|
I could not refrain from passing on to that. And the result
|
|
of the whole discussion has been that I know nothing at all.
|
|
For I know not what justice is, and therefore I am not likely to know
|
|
whether it is or is not a virtue, nor can I say whether the just man
|
|
is happy or unhappy.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK II
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
WITH these words I was thinking that I had made an end of the discussion;
|
|
but the end, in truth, proved to be only a beginning. For Glaucon,
|
|
who is always the most pugnacious of men, was dissatisfied
|
|
at Thrasymachus' retirement; he wanted to have the battle out.
|
|
So he said to me: Socrates, do you wish really to persuade us,
|
|
or only to seem to have persuaded us, that to be just is always better
|
|
than to be unjust?
|
|
|
|
I should wish really to persuade you, I replied, if I could.
|
|
|
|
Then you certainly have not succeeded. Let me ask you now:--How would
|
|
you arrange goods--are there not some which we welcome for their
|
|
own sakes, and independently of their consequences, as, for example,
|
|
harmless pleasures and enjoyments, which delight us at the time,
|
|
although nothing follows from them?
|
|
|
|
I agree in thinking that there is such a class, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Is there not also a second class of goods, such as knowledge,
|
|
sight, health, which are desirable not only in themselves,
|
|
but also for their results?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I said.
|
|
|
|
And would you not recognize a third class, such as gymnastic,
|
|
and the care of the sick, and the physician's art; also the various ways
|
|
of money-making--these do us good but we regard them as disagreeable;
|
|
and no one would choose them for their own sakes, but only for the sake
|
|
of some reward or result which flows from them?
|
|
|
|
There is, I said, this third class also. But why do you ask?
|
|
|
|
Because I want to know in which of the three classes you would
|
|
place justice?
|
|
|
|
In the highest class, I replied,--among those goods which he
|
|
who would be happy desires both for their own sake and for the sake
|
|
of their results.
|
|
|
|
Then the many are of another mind; they think that justice
|
|
is to be reckoned in the troublesome class, among goods which
|
|
are to be pursued for the sake of rewards and of reputation,
|
|
but in themselves are disagreeable and rather to be avoided.
|
|
|
|
I know, I said, that this is their manner of thinking, and that
|
|
this was the thesis which Thrasymachus was maintaining just now,
|
|
when he censured justice and praised injustice. But I am too stupid
|
|
to be convinced by him.
|
|
|
|
I wish, he said, that you would hear me as well as him, and then I shall
|
|
see whether you and I agree. For Thrasymachus seems to me, like a snake,
|
|
to have been charmed by your voice sooner than he ought to have been;
|
|
but to my mind the nature of justice and injustice have not yet been
|
|
made clear. Setting aside their rewards and results, I want to know
|
|
what they are in themselves, and how they inwardly work in the soul.
|
|
If you, please, then, I will revive the argument of Thrasymachus.
|
|
And first I will speak of the nature and origin of justice according
|
|
to the common view of them. Secondly, I will show that all men
|
|
who practise justice do so against their will, of necessity,
|
|
but not as a good. And thirdly, I will argue that there is reason
|
|
in this view, for the life of the unjust is after all better far
|
|
than the life of the just--if what they say is true, Socrates,
|
|
since I myself am not of their opinion. But still I acknowledge
|
|
that I am perplexed when I hear the voices of Thrasymachus
|
|
and myriads of others dinning in my ears; and, on the other hand,
|
|
I have never yet heard the superiority of justice to injustice
|
|
maintained by any one in a satisfactory way. I want to hear justice
|
|
praised in respect of itself; then I shall be satisfied, and you
|
|
are the person from whom I think that I am most likely to hear this;
|
|
and therefore I will praise the unjust life to the utmost of my power,
|
|
and my manner of speaking will indicate the manner in which I
|
|
desire to hear you too praising justice and censuring injustice.
|
|
Will you say whether you approve of my proposal?
|
|
|
|
Indeed I do; nor can I imagine any theme about which a man of sense
|
|
would oftener wish to converse.
|
|
|
|
I am delighted, he replied, to hear you say so, and shall begin
|
|
by speaking, as I proposed, of the nature and origin of justice.
|
|
|
|
GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
They say that to do injustice is, by nature, good; to suffer
|
|
injustice, evil; but that the evil is greater than the good.
|
|
And so when men have both done and suffered injustice and have had
|
|
experience of both, not being able to avoid the one and obtain
|
|
the other, they think that they had better agree among themselves
|
|
to have neither; hence there arise laws and mutual covenants;
|
|
and that which is ordained by law is termed by them lawful and just.
|
|
This they affirm to be the origin and nature of justice;--it is a mean
|
|
or compromise, between the best of all, which is to do injustice
|
|
and not be punished, and the worst of all, which is to suffer injustice
|
|
without the power of retaliation; and justice, being at a middle point
|
|
between the two, is tolerated not as a good, but as the lesser evil,
|
|
and honoured by reason of the inability of men to do injustice.
|
|
For no man who is worthy to be called a man would ever submit to such
|
|
an agreement if he were able to resist; he would be mad if he did.
|
|
Such is the received account, Socrates, of the nature and origin
|
|
of justice.
|
|
|
|
Now that those who practise justice do so involuntarily and because
|
|
they have not the power to be unjust will best appear if we
|
|
imagine something of this kind: having given both to the just
|
|
and the unjust power to do what they will, let us watch and see
|
|
whither desire will lead them; then we shall discover in the very
|
|
act the just and unjust man to be proceeding along the same road,
|
|
following their interest, which all natures deem to be their good,
|
|
and are only diverted into the path of justice by the force of law.
|
|
The liberty which we are supposing may be most completely
|
|
given to them in the form of such a power as is said to have
|
|
been possessed by Gyges the ancestor of Croesus the Lydian.
|
|
According to the tradition, Gyges was a shepherd in the service
|
|
of the king of Lydia; there was a great storm, and an earthquake made
|
|
an opening in the earth at the place where he was feeding his flock.
|
|
Amazed at the sight, he descended into the opening, where,
|
|
among other marvels, he beheld a hollow brazen horse, having doors,
|
|
at which he stooping and looking in saw a dead body of stature,
|
|
as appeared to him, more than human, and having nothing on but a
|
|
gold ring; this he took from the finger of the dead and reascended.
|
|
Now the shepherds met together, according to custom, that they
|
|
might send their monthly report about the flocks to the king;
|
|
into their assembly he came having the ring on his finger, and as he
|
|
was sitting among them he chanced to turn the collet of the ring inside
|
|
his hand, when instantly he became invisible to the rest of the company
|
|
and they began to speak of him as if he were no longer present.
|
|
He was astonished at this, and again touching the ring he turned
|
|
the collet outwards and reappeared; he made several trials of the ring,
|
|
and always with the same result-when he turned the collet inwards he
|
|
became invisible, when outwards he reappeared. Whereupon he contrived
|
|
to be chosen one of the messengers who were sent to the court;
|
|
where as soon as he arrived he seduced the queen, and with her help
|
|
conspired against the king and slew him, and took the kingdom.
|
|
Suppose now that there were two such magic rings, and the just put
|
|
on one of them and the unjust the other;,no man can be imagined
|
|
to be of such an iron nature that he would stand fast in justice.
|
|
No man would keep his hands off what was not his own when he could
|
|
safely take what he liked out of the market, or go into houses
|
|
and lie with any one at his pleasure, or kill or release from prison
|
|
whom he would, and in all respects be like a God among men.
|
|
Then the actions of the just would be as the actions of the unjust;
|
|
they would both come at last to the same point. And this we may
|
|
truly affirm to be a great proof that a man is just, not willingly
|
|
or because he thinks that justice is any good to him individually,
|
|
but of necessity, for wherever any one thinks that he can safely
|
|
be unjust, there he is unjust. For all men believe in their hearts
|
|
that injustice is far more profitable to the individual than justice,
|
|
and he who argues as I have been supposing, will say that they are right.
|
|
If you could imagine any one obtaining this power of becoming invisible,
|
|
and never doing any wrong or touching what was another's, he would
|
|
be thought by the lookers-on to be a most wretched idiot, although they
|
|
would praise him to one another's faces, and keep up appearances
|
|
with one another from a fear that they too might suffer injustice.
|
|
Enough of this.
|
|
|
|
Now, if we are to form a real judgment of the life of the just and unjust,
|
|
we must isolate them; there is no other way; and how is the isolation
|
|
to be effected? I answer: Let the unjust man be entirely unjust,
|
|
and the just man entirely just; nothing is to be taken away from
|
|
either of them, and both are to be perfectly furnished for the work
|
|
of their respective lives. First, let the unjust be like other
|
|
distinguished masters of craft; like the skilful pilot or physician,
|
|
who knows intuitively his own powers and keeps within their limits,
|
|
and who, if he fails at any point, is able to recover himself.
|
|
So let the unjust make his unjust attempts in the right way,
|
|
and lie hidden if he means to be great in his injustice (he who is
|
|
found out is nobody): for the highest reach of injustice is:
|
|
to be deemed just when you are not. Therefore I say that in
|
|
the perfectly unjust man we must assume the most perfect injustice;
|
|
there is to be no deduction, but we must allow him, while doing the most
|
|
unjust acts, to have acquired the greatest reputation for justice.
|
|
If he have taken a false step he must be able to recover himself;
|
|
he must be one who can speak with effect, if any of his deeds
|
|
come to light, and who can force his way where force is required
|
|
his courage and strength, and command of money and friends.
|
|
And at his side let us place the just man in his nobleness
|
|
and simplicity, wishing, as Aeschylus says, to be and not to seem good.
|
|
There must be no seeming, for if he seem to be just he will be
|
|
honoured and rewarded, and then we shall not know whether he is just
|
|
for the sake of justice or for the sake of honours and rewards;
|
|
therefore, let him be clothed in justice only, and have no other covering;
|
|
and he must be imagined in a state of life the opposite of the former.
|
|
Let him be the best of men, and let him be thought the worst;
|
|
then he will have been put to the proof; and we shall see whether
|
|
he will be affected by the fear of infamy and its consequences.
|
|
And let him continue thus to the hour of death; being just and
|
|
seeming to be unjust. When both have reached the uttermost extreme,
|
|
the one of justice and the other of injustice, let judgment be given
|
|
which of them is the happier of the two.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
Heavens! my dear Glaucon, I said, how energetically you polish
|
|
them up for the decision, first one and then the other, as if they
|
|
were two statues.
|
|
|
|
I do my best, he said. And now that we know what they are
|
|
like there is no difficulty in tracing out the sort of life
|
|
which awaits either of them. This I will proceed to describe;
|
|
but as you may think the description a little too coarse, I ask you
|
|
to suppose, Socrates, that the words which follow are not mine.--
|
|
Let me put them into the mouths of the eulogists of injustice:
|
|
They will tell you that the just man who is thought unjust will
|
|
be scourged, racked, bound--will have his eyes burnt out; and, at last,
|
|
after suffering every kind of evil, he will be impaled: Then he
|
|
will understand that he ought to seem only, and not to be, just;
|
|
the words of Aeschylus may be more truly spoken of the unjust
|
|
than of the just. For the unjust is pursuing a reality; he does
|
|
not live with a view to appearances--he wants to be really unjust
|
|
and not to seem only:--
|
|
|
|
His mind has a soil deep and fertile,
|
|
Out of which spring his prudent counsels.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, he is thought just, and therefore bears rule
|
|
in the city; he can marry whom he will, and give in marriage
|
|
to whom he will; also he can trade and deal where he likes,
|
|
and always to his own advantage, because he has no misgivings
|
|
about injustice and at every contest, whether in public or private,
|
|
he gets the better of his antagonists, and gains at their expense,
|
|
and is rich, and out of his gains he can benefit his friends,
|
|
and harm his enemies; moreover, he can offer sacrifices, and dedicate
|
|
gifts to the gods abundantly and magnificently, and can honour the gods
|
|
or any man whom he wants to honour in a far better style than the just,
|
|
and therefore he is likely to be dearer than they are to the gods.
|
|
And thus, Socrates, gods and men are said to unite in making the life
|
|
of the unjust better than the life of the just.
|
|
|
|
ADEIMANTUS -SOCRATES
|
|
|
|
I was going to say something in answer to Glaucon, when Adeimantus,
|
|
his brother, interposed: Socrates, he said, you do not suppose
|
|
that there is nothing more to be urged?
|
|
|
|
Why, what else is there? I answered.
|
|
|
|
The strongest point of all has not been even mentioned, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, according to the proverb, `Let brother help brother'--
|
|
if he fails in any part do you assist him; although I must confess
|
|
that Glaucon has already said quite enough to lay me in the dust,
|
|
and take from me the power of helping justice.
|
|
|
|
ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
Nonsense, he replied. But let me add something more: There is
|
|
another side to Glaucon's argument about the praise and censure
|
|
of justice and injustice, which is equally required in order to bring
|
|
out what I believe to be his meaning. Parents and tutors are always
|
|
telling their sons and their wards that they are to be just;
|
|
but why? not for the sake of justice, but for the sake of character
|
|
and reputation; in the hope of obtaining for him who is reputed
|
|
just some of those offices, marriages, and the like which Glaucon
|
|
has enumerated among the advantages accruing to the unjust from
|
|
the reputation of justice. More, however, is made of appearances
|
|
by this class of persons than by the others; for they throw
|
|
in the good opinion of the gods, and will tell you of a shower
|
|
of benefits which the heavens, as they say, rain upon the pious;
|
|
and this accords with the testimony of the noble Hesiod and Homer,
|
|
the first of whom says, that the gods make the oaks of the just--
|
|
|
|
To hear acorns at their summit, and bees I the middle;
|
|
And the sheep the bowed down bowed the with the their fleeces.
|
|
|
|
and many other blessings of a like kind are provided for them.
|
|
And Homer has a very similar strain; for he speaks of one whose
|
|
fame is--
|
|
|
|
As the fame of some blameless king who, like a god,
|
|
Maintains justice to whom the black earth brings forth
|
|
Wheat and barley, whose trees are bowed with fruit,
|
|
And his sheep never fail to bear, and the sea gives him fish.
|
|
|
|
Still grander are the gifts of heaven which Musaeus and his son
|
|
vouchsafe to the just; they take them down into the world below,
|
|
where they have the saints lying on couches at a feast,
|
|
everlastingly drunk, crowned with garlands; their idea seems to be
|
|
that an immortality of drunkenness is the highest meed of virtue.
|
|
Some extend their rewards yet further; the posterity, as they say,
|
|
of the faithful and just shall survive to the third and fourth generation.
|
|
This is the style in which they praise justice. But about the wicked
|
|
there is another strain; they bury them in a slough in Hades, and make
|
|
them carry water in a sieve; also while they are yet living they bring
|
|
them to infamy, and inflict upon them the punishments which Glaucon
|
|
described as the portion of the just who are reputed to be unjust;
|
|
nothing else does their invention supply. Such is their manner of
|
|
praising the one and censuring the other.
|
|
|
|
Once more, Socrates, I will ask you to consider another way of speaking
|
|
about justice and injustice, which is not confined to the poets,
|
|
but is found in prose writers. The universal voice of mankind
|
|
is always declaring that justice and virtue are honourable,
|
|
but grievous and toilsome; and that the pleasures of vice and injustice
|
|
are easy of attainment, and are only censured by law and opinion.
|
|
They say also that honesty is for the most part less profitable
|
|
than dishonesty; and they are quite ready to call wicked men happy,
|
|
and to honour them both in public and private when they are rich
|
|
or in any other way influential, while they despise and overlook
|
|
those who may be weak and poor, even though acknowledging
|
|
them to be better than the others. But most extraordinary
|
|
of all is their mode of speaking about virtue and the gods:
|
|
they say that the gods apportion calamity and misery to many good men,
|
|
and good and happiness to the wicked. And mendicant prophets go
|
|
to rich men's doors and persuade them that they have a power committed
|
|
to them by the gods of making an atonement for a man's own or his
|
|
ancestor's sins by sacrifices or charms, with rejoicings and feasts;
|
|
and they promise to harm an enemy, whether just or unjust,
|
|
at a small cost; with magic arts and incantations binding heaven,
|
|
as they say, to execute their will. And the poets are the authorities
|
|
to whom they appeal, now smoothing the path of vice with the words
|
|
of Hesiod;--
|
|
|
|
Vice may be had in abundance without trouble; the way is smooth
|
|
and her dwelling-place is near. But before virtue the gods have
|
|
set toil,
|
|
|
|
and a tedious and uphill road: then citing Homer as a witness
|
|
that the gods may be influenced by men; for he also says:
|
|
|
|
The gods, too, may he turned from their purpose; and men pray to
|
|
them and avert their wrath by sacrifices and soothing entreaties,
|
|
and by libations and the odour of fat, when they have sinned and
|
|
transgressed.
|
|
|
|
And they produce a host of books written by Musaeus and Orpheus,
|
|
who were children of the Moon and the Muses--that is what they say--
|
|
according to which they perform their ritual, and persuade not
|
|
only individuals, but whole cities, that expiations and atonements for
|
|
sin may be made by sacrifices and amusements which fill a vacant hour,
|
|
and are equally at the service of the living and the dead; the latter
|
|
sort they call mysteries, and they redeem us from the pains of hell,
|
|
but if we neglect them no one knows what awaits us.
|
|
|
|
He proceeded: And now when the young hear all this said about
|
|
virtue and vice, and the way in which gods and men regard them,
|
|
how are their minds likely to be affected, my dear Socrates,--
|
|
those of them, I mean, who are quickwitted, and, like bees on the wing,
|
|
light on every flower, and from all that they hear are prone to draw
|
|
conclusions as to what manner of persons they should be and in
|
|
what way they should walk if they would make the best of life?
|
|
Probably the youth will say to himself in the words of Pindar--
|
|
|
|
Can I by justice or by crooked ways of deceit ascend a loftier
|
|
tower which may he a fortress to me all my days?
|
|
|
|
For what men say is that, if I am really just and am not also thought
|
|
just profit there is none, but the pain and loss on the other hand
|
|
are unmistakable. But if, though unjust, I acquire the reputation
|
|
of justice, a heavenly life is promised to me. Since then,
|
|
as philosophers prove, appearance tyrannizes over truth and is lord
|
|
of happiness, to appearance I must devote myself. I will describe
|
|
around me a picture and shadow of virtue to be the vestibule and
|
|
exterior of my house; behind I will trail the subtle and crafty fox,
|
|
as Archilochus, greatest of sages, recommends. But I hear some one
|
|
exclaiming that the concealment of wickedness is often difficult;
|
|
to which I answer, Nothing great is easy. Nevertheless, the argument
|
|
indicates this, if we would be happy, to be the path along which we
|
|
should proceed. With a view to concealment we will establish
|
|
secret brotherhoods and political clubs. And there are professors
|
|
of rhetoric who teach the art of persuading courts and assemblies;
|
|
and so, partly by persuasion and partly by force, I shall make
|
|
unlawful gains and not be punished. Still I hear a voice saying
|
|
that the gods cannot be deceived, neither can they be compelled.
|
|
But what if there are no gods? or, suppose them to have no care
|
|
of human things--why in either case should we mind about concealment?
|
|
And even if there are gods, and they do care about us, yet we know
|
|
of them only from tradition and the genealogies of the poets;
|
|
and these are the very persons who say that they may be influenced
|
|
and turned by `sacrifices and soothing entreaties and by offerings.'
|
|
Let us be consistent then, and believe both or neither.
|
|
If the poets speak truly, why then we had better be unjust,
|
|
and offer of the fruits of injustice; for if we are just,
|
|
although we may escape the vengeance of heaven, we shall lose
|
|
the gains of injustice; but, if we are unjust, we shall keep
|
|
the gains, and by our sinning and praying, and praying and sinning,
|
|
the gods will be propitiated, and we shall not be punished.
|
|
`But there is a world below in which either we or our posterity
|
|
will suffer for our unjust deeds.' Yes, my friend, will be
|
|
the reflection, but there are mysteries and atoning deities,
|
|
and these have great power. That is what mighty cities declare;
|
|
and the children of the gods, who were their poets and prophets, bear a
|
|
like testimony.
|
|
|
|
On what principle, then, shall we any longer choose justice
|
|
rather than the worst injustice? when, if we only unite
|
|
the latter with a deceitful regard to appearances, we shall fare
|
|
to our mind both with gods and men, in life and after death,
|
|
as the most numerous and the highest authorities tell us.
|
|
Knowing all this, Socrates, how can a man who has any superiority
|
|
of mind or person or rank or wealth, be willing to honour justice;
|
|
or indeed to refrain from laughing when he hears justice praised?
|
|
And even if there should be some one who is able to disprove
|
|
the truth of my words, and who is satisfied that justice is best,
|
|
still he is not angry with the unjust, but is very ready
|
|
to forgive them, because he also knows that men are not just of
|
|
their own free will; unless, peradventure, there be some one whom
|
|
the divinity within him may have inspired with a hatred of injustice,
|
|
or who has attained knowledge of the truth--but no other man.
|
|
He only blames injustice who, owing to cowardice or age or some weakness,
|
|
has not the power of being unjust. And this is proved by the fact
|
|
that when he obtains the power, he immediately becomes unjust as far
|
|
as he can be.
|
|
|
|
The cause of all this, Socrates, was indicated by us at the beginning
|
|
of the argument, when my brother and I told you how astonished we
|
|
were to find that of all the professing panegyrists of justice--
|
|
beginning with the ancient heroes of whom any memorial has
|
|
been preserved to us, and ending with the men of our own time--
|
|
no one has ever blamed injustice or praised justice except with a
|
|
view to the glories, honours, and benefits which flow from them.
|
|
No one has ever adequately described either in verse or prose
|
|
the true essential nature of either of them abiding in the soul,
|
|
and invisible to any human or divine eye; or shown that of
|
|
all the things of a man's soul which he has within him,
|
|
justice is the greatest good, and injustice the greatest evil.
|
|
Had this been the universal strain, had you sought to persuade us
|
|
of this from our youth upwards, we should not have been on the watch
|
|
to keep one another from doing wrong, but every one would have been
|
|
his own watchman, because afraid, if he did wrong, of harbouring
|
|
in himself the greatest of evils. I dare say that Thrasymachus
|
|
and others would seriously hold the language which I have been
|
|
merely repeating, and words even stronger than these about justice
|
|
and injustice, grossly, as I conceive, perverting their true nature.
|
|
But I speak in this vehement manner, as I must frankly confess to you,
|
|
because I want to hear from you the opposite side; and I would ask you
|
|
to show not only the superiority which justice has over injustice,
|
|
but what effect they have on the possessor of them which makes
|
|
the one to be a good and the other an evil to him. And please,
|
|
as Glaucon requested of you, to exclude reputations; for unless you
|
|
take away from each of them his true reputation and add on the false,
|
|
we shall say that you do not praise justice, but the appearance of it;
|
|
we shall think that you are only exhorting us to keep injustice dark,
|
|
and that you really agree with Thrasymachus in thinking that justice
|
|
is another's good and the interest of the stronger, and that injustice
|
|
is a man's own profit and interest, though injurious to the weaker.
|
|
Now as you have admitted that justice is one of that highest class
|
|
of goods which are desired indeed for their results, but in a far greater
|
|
degree for their own sakes--like sight or hearing or knowledge or health,
|
|
or any other real and natural and not merely conventional good--
|
|
I would ask you in your praise of justice to regard one point only:
|
|
I mean the essential good and evil which justice and injustice work in
|
|
the possessors of them. Let others praise justice and censure injustice,
|
|
magnifying the rewards and honours of the one and abusing the other;
|
|
that is a manner of arguing which, coming from them, I am ready to tolerate,
|
|
but from you who have spent your whole life in the consideration
|
|
of this question, unless I hear the contrary from your own lips,
|
|
I expect something better. And therefore, I say, not only prove
|
|
to us that justice is better than injustice, but show what they
|
|
either of them do to the possessor of them, which makes the one
|
|
to be a good and the other an evil, whether seen or unseen by gods
|
|
and men.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
I had always admired the genius of Glaucon and Adeimantus,
|
|
but on hearing these words I was quite delighted, and said:
|
|
Sons of an illustrious father, that was not a bad beginning of
|
|
the Elegiac verses which the admirer of Glaucon made in honour of you
|
|
after you had distinguished yourselves at the battle of Megara:--
|
|
|
|
`Sons of Ariston,' he sang, `divine offspring of an
|
|
illustrious hero.'
|
|
|
|
The epithet is very appropriate, for there is something truly
|
|
divine in being able to argue as you have done for the superiority
|
|
of injustice, and remaining unconvinced by your own arguments.
|
|
And I do believe that you are not convinced--this I infer from your
|
|
general character, for had I judged only from your speeches I should
|
|
have mistrusted you. But now, the greater my confidence in you,
|
|
the greater is my difficulty in knowing what to say. For I am in a strait
|
|
between two; on the one hand I feel that I am unequal to the task;
|
|
and my inability is brought home to me by the fact that you were not
|
|
satisfied with the answer which I made to Thrasymachus, proving,
|
|
as I thought, the superiority which justice has over injustice.
|
|
And yet I cannot refuse to help, while breath and speech remain to me;
|
|
I am afraid that there would be an impiety in being present when
|
|
justice is evil spoken of and not lifting up a hand in her defence.
|
|
And therefore I had best give such help as I can.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon and the rest entreated me by all means not to let the question drop,
|
|
but to proceed in the investigation. They wanted to arrive
|
|
at the truth, first, about the nature of justice and injustice,
|
|
and secondly, about their relative advantages. I told them, what I--
|
|
really thought, that the enquiry would be of a serious nature,
|
|
and would require very good eyes. Seeing then, I said, that we
|
|
are no great wits, I think that we had better adopt a method
|
|
which I may illustrate thus; suppose that a short-sighted person
|
|
had been asked by some one to read small letters from a distance;
|
|
and it occurred to some one else that they might be found in another
|
|
place which was larger and in which the letters were larger--
|
|
if they were the same and he could read the larger letters first,
|
|
and then proceed to the lesser--this would have been thought a rare piece
|
|
of good fortune.
|
|
|
|
Very true, said Adeimantus; but how does the illustration apply
|
|
to our enquiry?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, I replied; justice, which is the subject of
|
|
our enquiry, is, as you know, sometimes spoken of as the virtue
|
|
of an individual, and sometimes as the virtue of a State.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And is not a State larger than an individual?
|
|
|
|
It is.
|
|
|
|
Then in the larger the quantity of justice is likely to be larger
|
|
and more easily discernible. I propose therefore that we enquire
|
|
into the nature of justice and injustice, first as they appear
|
|
in the State, and secondly in the individual, proceeding from
|
|
the greater to the lesser and comparing them.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is an excellent proposal.
|
|
|
|
And if we imagine the State in process of creation, we shall see
|
|
the justice and injustice of the State in process of creation also.
|
|
|
|
I dare say.
|
|
|
|
When the State is completed there may be a hope that the object
|
|
of our search will be more easily discovered.
|
|
|
|
Yes, far more easily.
|
|
|
|
But ought we to attempt to construct one? I said; for to do so,
|
|
as I am inclined to think, will be a very serious task.
|
|
Reflect therefore.
|
|
|
|
I have reflected, said Adeimantus, and am anxious that you
|
|
should proceed.
|
|
|
|
A State, I said, arises, as I conceive, out of the needs of mankind;
|
|
no one is self-sufficing, but all of us have many wants. Can any
|
|
other origin of a State be imagined?
|
|
|
|
There can I be no other.
|
|
|
|
Then, as we have many wants, and many persons are needed to supply them,
|
|
one takes a helper for one purpose and another for another;
|
|
and when these partners and helpers are gathered together in one
|
|
habitation the body of inhabitants is termed a State.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And they exchange with one another, and one gives, and another receives,
|
|
under the idea that the exchange will be for their good.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, let us begin and create in idea a State; and yet
|
|
the true creator is necessity, who is the mother of our invention.
|
|
|
|
Of course, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Now the first and greatest of necessities is food, which is
|
|
the condition of life and existence.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
The second is a dwelling, and the third clothing and the like.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And now let us see how our city will be able to supply this great demand:
|
|
We may suppose that one man is a husbandman, another a builder,
|
|
some one else a weaver--shall we add to them a shoemaker, or perhaps
|
|
some other purveyor to our bodily wants?
|
|
|
|
Quite right.
|
|
|
|
The barest notion of a State must include four or five men.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And how will they proceed? Will each bring the result of his labours
|
|
into a common stock?--the individual husbandman, for example,
|
|
producing for four, and labouring four times as long and as much
|
|
as he need in the provision of food with which he supplies others
|
|
as well as himself; or will he have nothing to do with others
|
|
and not be at the trouble of producing for them, but provide
|
|
for himself alone a fourth of the food in a fourth of the time,
|
|
and in the remaining three-fourths of his time be employed in making
|
|
a house or a coat or a pair of shoes, having no partnership with others,
|
|
but supplying himself all his own wants?
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus thought that he should aim at producing food only
|
|
and not at producing everything.
|
|
|
|
Probably, I replied, that would be the better way; and when I hear
|
|
you say this, I am myself reminded that we are not all alike;
|
|
there are diversities of natures among us which are adapted to
|
|
different occupations.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And will you have a work better done when the workman has
|
|
many occupations, or when he has only one?
|
|
|
|
When he has only one.
|
|
|
|
Further, there can be no doubt that a work is spoilt when not done
|
|
at the right time?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
For business is not disposed to wait until the doer of the business
|
|
is at leisure; but the doer must follow up what he is doing,
|
|
and make the business his first object.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
And if so, we must infer that all things are produced more
|
|
plentifully and easily and of a better quality when one man does
|
|
one thing which is natural to him and does it at the right time,
|
|
and leaves other things.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly..
|
|
|
|
Then more than four citizens will be required; for the husbandman
|
|
will not make his own plough or mattock, or other implements
|
|
of agriculture, if they are to be good for anything.
|
|
Neither will the builder make his tools--and he too needs many;
|
|
and in like manner the weaver and shoemaker.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then carpenters, and smiths, and many other artisans, will be
|
|
sharers in our little State, which is already beginning to grow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Yet even if we add neatherds, shepherds, and other herdsmen,
|
|
in order that our husbandmen may have oxen to plough with,
|
|
and builders as well as husbandmen may have draught cattle,
|
|
and curriers and weavers fleeces and hides,--still our State will
|
|
not be very large.
|
|
|
|
That is true; yet neither will it be a very small State which
|
|
contains all these.
|
|
|
|
Then, again, there is the situation of the city--to find a place
|
|
where nothing need be imported is well-nigh impossible.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then there must be another class of citizens who will bring
|
|
the required supply from another city?
|
|
|
|
There must.
|
|
|
|
But if the trader goes empty-handed, having nothing which they
|
|
require who would supply his need, he will come back empty-handed.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And therefore what they produce at home must be not only
|
|
enough for themselves, but such both in quantity and quality
|
|
as to accommodate those from whom their wants are supplied.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then more husbandmen and more artisans will be required?
|
|
|
|
They will.
|
|
|
|
Not to mention the importers and exporters, who are called merchants?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall want merchants?
|
|
|
|
We shall.
|
|
|
|
And if merchandise is to be carried over the sea, skilful sailors
|
|
will also be needed, and in considerable numbers?
|
|
|
|
Yes, in considerable numbers.
|
|
|
|
Then, again, within the city, how will they exchange their productions?
|
|
To secure such an exchange was, as you will remember, one of our
|
|
principal objects when we formed them into a society and constituted
|
|
a State.
|
|
|
|
Clearly they will buy and sell.
|
|
|
|
Then they will need a market-place, and a money-token for purposes
|
|
of exchange.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that a husbandman, or an artisan, brings some production
|
|
to market, and he comes at a time when there is no one to exchange
|
|
with him,--is he to leave his calling and sit idle in the market-place?
|
|
|
|
Not at all; he will find people there who, seeing the want,
|
|
undertake the office of salesmen. In well-ordered States they are
|
|
commonly those who are the weakest in bodily strength, and therefore
|
|
of little use for any other purpose; their duty is to be in the market,
|
|
and to give money in exchange for goods to those who desire to sell
|
|
and to take money from those who desire to buy.
|
|
|
|
This want, then, creates a class of retail-traders in our State.
|
|
Is not `retailer' the term which is applied to those who sit in
|
|
the market-place engaged in buying and selling, while those who wander
|
|
from one city to another are called merchants?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And there is another class of servants, who are intellectually hardly
|
|
on the level of companionship; still they have plenty of bodily
|
|
strength for labour, which accordingly they sell, and are called,
|
|
if I do not mistake, hirelings, hire being the name which is given
|
|
to the price of their labour.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then hirelings will help to make up our population?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And now, Adeimantus, is our State matured and perfected?
|
|
|
|
I think so.
|
|
|
|
Where, then, is justice, and where is injustice, and in what part
|
|
of the State did they spring up?
|
|
|
|
Probably in the dealings of these citizens with one another.
|
|
cannot imagine that they are more likely to be found anywhere else.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that you are right in your suggestion, I said;
|
|
we had better think the matter out, and not shrink from the enquiry.
|
|
|
|
Let us then consider, first of all, what will be their way of life,
|
|
now that we have thus established them. Will they not produce corn,
|
|
and wine, and clothes, and shoes, and build houses for themselves?
|
|
And when they are housed, they will work, in summer, commonly,
|
|
stripped and barefoot, but in winter substantially clothed
|
|
and shod. They will feed on barley-meal and flour of wheat,
|
|
baking and kneading them, making noble cakes and loaves;
|
|
these they will serve up on a mat of reeds or on clean leaves,
|
|
themselves reclining the while upon beds strewn with yew or myrtle.
|
|
And they and their children will feast, drinking of the wine
|
|
which they have made, wearing garlands on their heads, and hymning
|
|
the praises of the gods, in happy converse with one another.
|
|
And they will take care that their families do not exceed their means;
|
|
having an eye to poverty or war.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
But, said Glaucon, interposing, you have not given them a relish
|
|
to their meal.
|
|
|
|
True, I replied, I had forgotten; of course they must have a relish-salt,
|
|
and olives, and cheese, and they will boil roots and herbs such
|
|
as country people prepare; for a dessert we shall give them figs,
|
|
and peas, and beans; and they will roast myrtle-berries and acorns
|
|
at the fire, drinking in moderation. And with such a diet they
|
|
may be expected to live in peace and health to a good old age,
|
|
and bequeath a similar life to their children after them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, he said, and if you were providing for a city of pigs,
|
|
how else would you feed the beasts?
|
|
|
|
But what would you have, Glaucon? I replied.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, you should give them the ordinary conveniences of life.
|
|
People who are to be comfortable are accustomed to lie on sofas,
|
|
and dine off tables, and they should have sauces and sweets in the
|
|
modern style.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, now I understand: the question which you would have me
|
|
consider is, not only how a State, but how a luxurious State is created;
|
|
and possibly there is no harm in this, for in such a State we
|
|
shall be more likely to see how justice and injustice originate.
|
|
In my opinion the true and healthy constitution of the State is
|
|
the one which I have described. But if you wish also to see a State
|
|
at fever heat, I have no objection. For I suspect that many will not
|
|
be satisfied with the simpler way of way They will be for adding sofas,
|
|
and tables, and other furniture; also dainties, and perfumes,
|
|
and incense, and courtesans, and cakes, all these not of one sort only,
|
|
but in every variety; we must go beyond the necessaries of which I
|
|
was at first speaking, such as houses, and clothes, and shoes:
|
|
the arts of the painter and the embroiderer will have to be set
|
|
in motion, and gold and ivory and all sorts of materials must
|
|
be procured.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must enlarge our borders; for the original healthy
|
|
State is no longer sufficient. Now will the city have to fill
|
|
and swell with a multitude of callings which are not required
|
|
by any natural want; such as the whole tribe of hunters and actors,
|
|
of whom one large class have to do with forms and colours;
|
|
another will be the votaries of music--poets and their attendant train
|
|
of rhapsodists, players, dancers, contractors; also makers of divers
|
|
kinds of articles, including women's dresses. And we shall want
|
|
more servants. Will not tutors be also in request, and nurses wet
|
|
and dry, tirewomen and barbers, as well as confectioners and cooks;
|
|
and swineherds, too, who were not needed and therefore had no place
|
|
in the former edition of our State, but are needed now? They must
|
|
not be forgotten: and there will be animals of many other kinds,
|
|
if people eat them.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And living in this way we shall have much greater need of physicians
|
|
than before?
|
|
|
|
Much greater.
|
|
|
|
And the country which was enough to support the original inhabitants
|
|
will be too small now, and not enough?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then a slice of our neighbours' land will be wanted by us for pasture
|
|
and tillage, and they will want a slice of ours, if, like ourselves,
|
|
they exceed the limit of necessity, and give themselves up
|
|
to the unlimited accumulation of wealth?
|
|
|
|
That, Socrates, will be inevitable.
|
|
|
|
And so we shall go to war, Glaucon. Shall we not?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then without determining as yet whether war does good or harm,
|
|
thus much we may affirm, that now we have discovered war to be derived
|
|
from causes which are also the causes of almost all the evils in States,
|
|
private as well as public.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And our State must once more enlarge; and this time the will be
|
|
nothing short of a whole army, which will have to go out and fight
|
|
with the invaders for all that we have, as well as for the things
|
|
and persons whom we were describing above.
|
|
|
|
Why? he said; are they not capable of defending themselves?
|
|
|
|
No, I said; not if we were right in the principle which was
|
|
acknowledged by all of us when we were framing the State:
|
|
the principle, as you will remember, was that one man cannot
|
|
practise many arts with success.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But is not war an art?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And an art requiring as much attention as shoemaking?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And the shoemaker was not allowed by us to be husbandman, or a weaver,
|
|
a builder--in order that we might have our shoes well made;
|
|
but to him and to every other worker was assigned one work
|
|
for which he was by nature fitted, and at that he was to continue
|
|
working all his life long and at no other; he was not to let
|
|
opportunities slip, and then he would become a good workman.
|
|
Now nothing can be more important than that the work of a soldier
|
|
should be well done. But is war an art so easily acquired that
|
|
a man may be a warrior who is also a husbandman, or shoemaker,
|
|
or other artisan; although no one in the world would be a good dice
|
|
or draught player who merely took up the game as a recreation,
|
|
and had not from his earliest years devoted himself to this and
|
|
nothing else?
|
|
|
|
No tools will make a man a skilled workman, or master of defence,
|
|
nor be of any use to him who has not learned how to handle them,
|
|
and has never bestowed any attention upon them. How then will he
|
|
who takes up a shield or other implement of war become a good
|
|
fighter all in a day, whether with heavy-armed or any other kind
|
|
of troops?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the tools which would teach men their own use would
|
|
be beyond price.
|
|
|
|
And the higher the duties of the guardian, I said, the more time,
|
|
and skill, and art, and application will be needed by him?
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Will he not also require natural aptitude for his calling?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then it will be our duty to select, if we can, natures which are
|
|
fitted for the task of guarding the city?
|
|
|
|
It will.
|
|
|
|
And the selection will be no easy matter, I said; but we must
|
|
be brave and do our best.
|
|
|
|
We must.
|
|
|
|
Is not the noble youth very like a well-bred dog in respect
|
|
of guarding and watching?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that both of them ought to be quick to see, and swift
|
|
to overtake the enemy when they see him; and strong too if,
|
|
when they have caught him, they have to fight with him.
|
|
|
|
All these qualities, he replied, will certainly be required by them.
|
|
|
|
Well, and your guardian must be brave if he is to fight well?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is he likely to be brave who has no spirit, whether horse
|
|
or dog or any other animal? Have you never observed how invincible
|
|
and unconquerable is spirit and how the presence of it makes
|
|
the soul of any creature to be absolutely fearless and indomitable?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
Then now we have a clear notion of the bodily qualities which are
|
|
required in the guardian.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And also of the mental ones; his soul is to be full of spirit?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But are not these spirited natures apt to be savage with one another,
|
|
and with everybody else?
|
|
|
|
A difficulty by no means easy to overcome, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Whereas, I said, they ought to be dangerous to their enemies,
|
|
and gentle to their friends; if not, they will destroy themselves
|
|
without waiting for their enemies to destroy them.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
What is to be done then? I said; how shall we find a gentle nature
|
|
which has also a great spirit, for the one is the contradiction
|
|
of the other?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He will not be a good guardian who is wanting in either of these
|
|
two qualities; and yet the combination of them appears to be impossible;
|
|
and hence we must infer that to be a good guardian is impossible.
|
|
|
|
I am afraid that what you say is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Here feeling perplexed I began to think over what had preceded.
|
|
My friend, I said, no wonder that we are in a perplexity; for we have
|
|
lost sight of the image which we had before us.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that there do exist natures gifted with those
|
|
opposite qualities.
|
|
|
|
And where do you find them?
|
|
|
|
Many animals, I replied, furnish examples of them; our friend the dog
|
|
is a very good one: you know that well-bred dogs are perfectly gentle
|
|
to their familiars and acquaintances, and the reverse to strangers.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know.
|
|
|
|
Then there is nothing impossible or out of the order of nature
|
|
in our finding a guardian who has a similar combination of qualities?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Would not he who is fitted to be a guardian, besides the spirited nature,
|
|
need to have the qualities of a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
I do not apprehend your meaning.
|
|
|
|
The trait of which I am speaking, I replied, may be also seen
|
|
in the dog, and is remarkable in the animal.
|
|
|
|
What trait?
|
|
|
|
Why, a dog, whenever he sees a stranger, is angry; when an acquaintance,
|
|
he welcomes him, although the one has never done him any harm,
|
|
nor the other any good. Did this never strike you as curious?
|
|
|
|
The matter never struck me before; but I quite recognise the truth
|
|
of your remark.
|
|
|
|
And surely this instinct of the dog is very charming;--your dog
|
|
is a true philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Why?
|
|
|
|
Why, because he distinguishes the face of a friend and of
|
|
an enemy only by the criterion of knowing and not knowing.
|
|
And must not an animal be a lover of learning who determines
|
|
what he likes and dislikes by the test of knowledge and ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And is not the love of learning the love of wisdom, which is philosophy?
|
|
|
|
They are the same, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say confidently of man also, that he who is likely
|
|
to be gentle to his friends and acquaintances, must by nature
|
|
be a lover of wisdom and knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That we may safely affirm.
|
|
|
|
Then he who is to be a really good and noble guardian of the State
|
|
will require to unite in himself philosophy and spirit and swiftness
|
|
and strength?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have found the desired natures; and now that we
|
|
have found them, how are they to be reared and educated?
|
|
Is not this enquiry which may be expected to throw light
|
|
on the greater enquiry which is our final end--How do justice
|
|
and injustice grow up in States? for we do not want either to omit
|
|
what is to the point or to draw out the argument to an inconvenient length.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
Adeimantus thought that the enquiry would be of great service to us.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, my dear friend, the task must not be given up,
|
|
even if somewhat long.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Come then, and let us pass a leisure hour in story-telling,
|
|
and our story shall be the education of our heroes.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And what shall be their education? Can we find a better than
|
|
the traditional sort?--and this has two divisions, gymnastic for
|
|
the body, and music for the soul.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Shall we begin education with music, and go on to gymnastic afterwards?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And when you speak of music, do you include literature or not?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
And literature may be either true or false?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the young should be trained in both kinds, and we begin
|
|
with the false?
|
|
|
|
I do not understand your meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
You know, I said, that we begin by telling children stories which,
|
|
though not wholly destitute of truth, are in the main fictitious;
|
|
and these stories are told them when they are not of an age to
|
|
learn gymnastics.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
That was my meaning when I said that we must teach music before gymnastics.
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he said.
|
|
|
|
You know also that the beginning is the most important part
|
|
of any work, especially in the case of a young and tender thing;
|
|
for that is the time at which the character is being formed and
|
|
the desired impression is more readily taken.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And shall we just carelessly allow children to hear any casual tales
|
|
which may be devised by casual persons, and to receive into their
|
|
minds ideas for the most part the very opposite of those which we
|
|
should wish them to have when they are grown up?
|
|
|
|
We cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then the first thing will be to establish a censorship of the writers
|
|
of fiction, and let the censors receive any tale of fiction which
|
|
is good, and reject the bad; and we will desire mothers and nurses
|
|
to tell their children the authorised ones only. Let them fashion
|
|
the mind with such tales, even more fondly than they mould the body
|
|
with their hands; but most of those which are now in use must be discarded.
|
|
|
|
Of what tales are you speaking? he said.
|
|
|
|
You may find a model of the lesser in the greater, I said;
|
|
for they are necessarily of the same type, and there is the same
|
|
spirit in both of them.
|
|
|
|
Very likely, he replied; but I do not as yet know what you would
|
|
term the greater.
|
|
|
|
Those, I said, which are narrated by Homer and Hesiod, and the rest
|
|
of the poets, who have ever been the great story-tellers of mankind.
|
|
|
|
But which stories do you mean, he said; and what fault do you find
|
|
with them?
|
|
|
|
A fault which is most serious, I said; the fault of telling
|
|
a lie, and, what is more, a bad lie.
|
|
|
|
But when is this fault committed?
|
|
|
|
Whenever an erroneous representation is made of the nature of gods
|
|
and heroes,--as when a painter paints a portrait not having
|
|
the shadow of a likeness to the original.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that sort of thing is certainly very blamable;
|
|
but what are the stories which you mean?
|
|
|
|
First of all, I said, there was that greatest of all lies, in high places,
|
|
which the poet told about Uranus, and which was a bad lie too,--
|
|
I mean what Hesiod says that Uranus did, and how Cronus retaliated
|
|
on him. The doings of Cronus, and the sufferings which in turn
|
|
his son inflicted upon him, even if they were true, ought certainly
|
|
not to be lightly told to young and thoughtless persons; if possible,
|
|
they had better be buried in silence. But if there is an absolute
|
|
necessity for their mention, a chosen few might hear them in a mystery,
|
|
and they should sacrifice not a common [Eleusinian] pig, but some
|
|
huge and unprocurable victim; and then the number of the hearers
|
|
will be very few indeed.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, said he, those stories are extremely objectionable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Adeimantus, they are stories not to be repeated in our State;
|
|
the young man should not be told that in committing the worst
|
|
of crimes he is far from doing anything outrageous; and that even
|
|
if he chastises his father when does wrong, in whatever manner,
|
|
he will only be following the example of the first and greatest among
|
|
the gods.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree with you, he said; in my opinion those stories
|
|
are quite unfit to be repeated.
|
|
|
|
Neither, if we mean our future guardians to regard the habit
|
|
of quarrelling among themselves as of all things the basest,
|
|
should any word be said to them of the wars in heaven,
|
|
and of the plots and fightings of the gods against one another,
|
|
for they are not true. No, we shall never mention the battles
|
|
of the giants, or let them be embroidered on garments; and we shall
|
|
be silent about the innumerable other quarrels of gods and heroes
|
|
with their friends and relatives. If they would only believe us
|
|
we would tell them that quarrelling is unholy, and that never
|
|
up to this time has there been any, quarrel between citizens;
|
|
this is what old men and old women should begin by telling children;
|
|
and when they grow up, the poets also should be told to compose
|
|
for them in a similar spirit. But the narrative of Hephaestus binding
|
|
Here his mother, or how on another occasion Zeus sent him flying
|
|
for taking her part when she was being beaten, and all the battles
|
|
of the gods in Homer--these tales must not be admitted into our State,
|
|
whether they are supposed to have an allegorical meaning or not.
|
|
For a young person cannot judge what is allegorical and what is literal;
|
|
anything that he receives into his mind at that age is likely to
|
|
become indelible and unalterable; and therefore it is most important
|
|
that the tales which the young first hear should be models of
|
|
virtuous thoughts.
|
|
|
|
There you are right, he replied; but if any one asks where are
|
|
such models to be found and of what tales are you speaking--
|
|
how shall we answer him?
|
|
|
|
I said to him, You and I, Adeimantus, at this moment are not poets,
|
|
but founders of a State: now the founders of a State ought
|
|
to know the general forms in which poets should cast their tales,
|
|
and the limits which must be observed by them, but to make the tales
|
|
is not their business.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said; but what are these forms of theology which you mean?
|
|
|
|
Something of this kind, I replied:--God is always to be represented
|
|
as he truly is, whatever be the sort of poetry, epic, lyric or tragic,
|
|
in which the representation is given.
|
|
|
|
Right.
|
|
|
|
And is he not truly good? and must he not be represented as such?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And no good thing is hurtful?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed.
|
|
|
|
And that which is not hurtful hurts not?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And that which hurts not does no evil?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
And can that which does no evil be a cause of evil?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the good is advantageous?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And therefore the cause of well-being?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
It follows therefore that the good is not the cause of all things,
|
|
but of the good only?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Then God, if he be good, is not the author of all things,
|
|
as the many assert, but he is the cause of a few things only,
|
|
and not of most things that occur to men. For few are the goods
|
|
of human life, and many are the evils, and the good is to be attributed
|
|
to God alone; of the evils the causes are to be sought elsewhere,
|
|
and not in him.
|
|
|
|
That appears to me to be most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must not listen to Homer or to any other poet who is guilty
|
|
of the folly of saying that two casks
|
|
|
|
Lie at the threshold of Zeus, full of lots, one of good,
|
|
the other of evil lots,
|
|
|
|
and that he to whom Zeus gives a mixture of the two
|
|
|
|
Sometimes meets with evil fortune, at other times with good;
|
|
|
|
but that he to whom is given the cup of unmingled ill,
|
|
|
|
Him wild hunger drives o'er the beauteous earth.
|
|
|
|
And again
|
|
|
|
Zeus, who is the dispenser of good and evil to us.
|
|
|
|
And if any one asserts that the violation of oaths and treaties,
|
|
which was really the work of Pandarus, was brought about by Athene
|
|
and Zeus, or that the strife and contention of the gods was
|
|
instigated by Themis and Zeus, he shall not have our approval;
|
|
neither will we allow our young men to hear the words of Aeschylus,
|
|
that
|
|
|
|
God plants guilt among men when he desires utterly to
|
|
destroy a house.
|
|
|
|
And if a poet writes of the sufferings of Niobe--the subject
|
|
of the tragedy in which these iambic verses occur--or of the house
|
|
of Pelops, or of the Trojan war or on any similar theme, either we
|
|
must not permit him to say that these are the works of God,
|
|
or if they are of God, he must devise some explanation of them such
|
|
as we are seeking; he must say that God did what was just and right,
|
|
and they were the better for being punished; but that those who are
|
|
punished are miserable, and that God is the author of their misery--
|
|
the poet is not to be permitted to say; though he may say that
|
|
the wicked are miserable because they require to be punished,
|
|
and are benefited by receiving punishment from God; but that God being
|
|
good is the author of evil to any one is to be strenuously denied,
|
|
and not to be said or sung or heard in verse or prose by any
|
|
one whether old or young in any well-ordered commonwealth.
|
|
Such a fiction is suicidal, ruinous, impious.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he replied, and am ready to give my assent
|
|
to the law.
|
|
|
|
Let this then be one of our rules and principles concerning the gods,
|
|
to which our poets and reciters will be expected to conform--
|
|
that God is not the author of all things, but of good only.
|
|
|
|
That will do, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what do you think of a second principle? Shall I ask you whether God
|
|
is a magician, and of a nature to appear insidiously now in one shape,
|
|
and now in another--sometimes himself changing and passing into many forms,
|
|
sometimes deceiving us with the semblance of such transformations;
|
|
or is he one and the same immutably fixed in his own proper image?
|
|
|
|
I cannot answer you, he said, without more thought.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said; but if we suppose a change in anything, that change
|
|
must be effected either by the thing itself, or by some other thing?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
And things which are at their best are also least liable to be
|
|
altered or discomposed; for example, when healthiest and strongest,
|
|
the human frame is least liable to be affected by meats and drinks,
|
|
and the plant which is in the fullest vigour also suffers least from
|
|
winds or the heat of the sun or any similar causes.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And will not the bravest and wisest soul be least confused
|
|
or deranged by any external influence?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same principle, as I should suppose, applies to all
|
|
composite things--furniture, houses, garments; when good and well made,
|
|
they are least altered by time and circumstances.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then everything which is good, whether made by art or nature, or both,
|
|
is least liable to suffer change from without?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But surely God and the things of God are in every way perfect?
|
|
|
|
Of course they are.
|
|
|
|
Then he can hardly be compelled by external influence to take
|
|
many shapes?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
But may he not change and transform himself?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, that must be the case if he is changed at all.
|
|
|
|
And will he then change himself for the better and fairer,
|
|
or for the worse and more unsightly?
|
|
|
|
If he change at all he can only change for the worse, for we cannot
|
|
suppose him to be deficient either in virtue or beauty.
|
|
|
|
Very true, Adeimantus; but then, would any one, whether God or man,
|
|
desire to make himself worse?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then it is impossible that God should ever be willing to change;
|
|
being, as is supposed, the fairest and best that is conceivable,
|
|
every god remains absolutely and for ever in his own form.
|
|
|
|
That necessarily follows, he said, in my judgment.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, my dear friend, let none of the poets tell us that
|
|
|
|
The gods, taking the disguise of strangers from other lands,
|
|
walk up and down cities in all sorts of forms;
|
|
|
|
and let no one slander Proteus and Thetis, neither let any one,
|
|
either in tragedy or in any other kind of poetry, introduce Here
|
|
disguised in the likeness of a priestess asking an alms
|
|
|
|
For the life-giving daughters of Inachus the river of Argos;
|
|
|
|
--let us have no more lies of that sort. Neither must we have mothers
|
|
under the influence of the poets scaring their children with a bad
|
|
version of these myths--telling how certain gods, as they say, `Go about
|
|
by night in the likeness of so many strangers and in divers forms';
|
|
but let them take heed lest they make cowards of their children,
|
|
and at the same time speak blasphemy against the gods.
|
|
|
|
Heaven forbid, he said.
|
|
|
|
But although the gods are themselves unchangeable, still by witchcraft
|
|
and deception they may make us think that they appear in various forms?
|
|
|
|
Perhaps, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, but can you imagine that God will be willing to lie,
|
|
whether in word or deed, or to put forth a phantom of himself?
|
|
|
|
I cannot say, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Do you not know, I said, that the true lie, if such an expression
|
|
may be allowed, is hated of gods and men?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean that no one is willingly deceived in that which is the truest
|
|
and highest part of himself, or about the truest and highest matters;
|
|
there, above all, he is most afraid of a lie having possession of him.
|
|
|
|
Still, he said, I do not comprehend you.
|
|
|
|
The reason is, I replied, that you attribute some profound meaning
|
|
to my words; but I am only saying that deception, or being deceived
|
|
or uninformed about the highest realities in the highest part
|
|
of themselves, which is the soul, and in that part of them to have
|
|
and to hold the lie, is what mankind least like;--that, I say,
|
|
is what they utterly detest.
|
|
|
|
There is nothing more hateful to them.
|
|
|
|
And, as I was just now remarking, this ignorance in the soul of him
|
|
who is deceived may be called the true lie; for the lie in words
|
|
is only a kind of imitation and shadowy image of a previous affection
|
|
of the soul, not pure unadulterated falsehood. Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Perfectly right.
|
|
|
|
The true lie is hated not only by the gods, but also by men?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the lie in words is in certain cases useful and not hateful;
|
|
in dealing with enemies--that would be an instance; or again,
|
|
when those whom we call our friends in a fit of madness or illusion
|
|
are going to do some harm, then it is useful and is a sort of medicine
|
|
or preventive; also in the tales of mythology, of which we were just
|
|
now speaking--because we do not know the truth about ancient times,
|
|
we make falsehood as much like truth as we can, and so turn it
|
|
to account.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But can any of these reasons apply to God? Can we suppose that he
|
|
is ignorant of antiquity, and therefore has recourse to invention?
|
|
|
|
That would be ridiculous, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the lying poet has no place in our idea of God?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
Or perhaps he may tell a lie because he is afraid of enemies?
|
|
|
|
That is inconceivable.
|
|
|
|
But he may have friends who are senseless or mad?
|
|
|
|
But no mad or senseless person can be a friend of God.
|
|
|
|
Then no motive can be imagined why God should lie?
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
Then the superhuman and divine is absolutely incapable of falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then is God perfectly simple and true both in word and deed;
|
|
he changes not; he deceives not, either by sign or word, by dream
|
|
or waking vision.
|
|
|
|
Your thoughts, he said, are the reflection of my own.
|
|
|
|
You agree with me then, I said, that this is the second type
|
|
or form in which we should write and speak about divine things.
|
|
The gods are not magicians who transform themselves, neither do they
|
|
deceive mankind in any way.
|
|
|
|
I grant that.
|
|
|
|
Then, although we are admirers of Homer, we do not admire the lying
|
|
dream which Zeus sends to Agamemnon; neither will we praise the verses
|
|
of Aeschylus in which Thetis says that Apollo at her nuptials
|
|
|
|
Was celebrating in song her fair progeny whose days were
|
|
to he long, and to know no sickness. And when he had
|
|
spoken of my lot as in all things blessed of heaven he
|
|
raised a note of triumph and cheered my soul. And I
|
|
thought that the word of Phoebus being divine and full
|
|
of prophecy, would not fail. And now he himself who
|
|
uttered the strain, he who was present at the banquet,
|
|
and who said this--he it is who has slain my son.
|
|
|
|
These are the kind of sentiments about the gods which will arouse
|
|
our anger; and he who utters them shall be refused a chorus;
|
|
neither shall we allow teachers to make use of them in the instruction
|
|
of the young, meaning, as we do, that our guardians, as far as men
|
|
can be, should be true worshippers of the gods and like them.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree, be said, in these principles, and promise to make
|
|
them my laws.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK III
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
SUCH then, I said, are our principles of theology--some tales are
|
|
to be told, and others are not to be told to our disciples from their
|
|
youth upwards, if we mean them to honour the gods and their parents,
|
|
and to value friendship with one another.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and I think that our principles are right, he said.
|
|
|
|
But if they are to be courageous, must they not learn other lessons
|
|
besides these, and lessons of such a kind as will take away the fear
|
|
of death? Can any man be courageous who has the fear of death
|
|
in him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
And can he be fearless of death, or will he choose death in battle
|
|
rather than defeat and slavery, who believes the world below
|
|
to be real and terrible?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then we must assume a control over the narrators of this class
|
|
of tales as well as over the others, and beg them not simply
|
|
to but rather to commend the world below, intimating to them that
|
|
their descriptions are untrue, and will do harm to our future warriors.
|
|
|
|
That will be our duty, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we shall have to obliterate many obnoxious passages,
|
|
beginning with the verses,
|
|
|
|
I would rather he a serf on the land of a poor and portionless man
|
|
than rule over all the dead who have come to nought.
|
|
|
|
We must also expunge the verse, which tells us how Pluto feared,
|
|
|
|
Lest the mansions grim and squalid which the gods abhor should he
|
|
seen both of mortals and immortals.
|
|
|
|
And again:
|
|
|
|
O heavens! verily in the house of Hades there is soul and ghostly
|
|
form but no mind at all!
|
|
|
|
Again of Tiresias:--
|
|
|
|
[To him even after death did Persephone grant mind,] that he alone
|
|
should be wise; but the other souls are flitting shades.
|
|
|
|
Again:--
|
|
|
|
The soul flying from the limbs had gone to Hades, lamentng her fate,
|
|
leaving manhood and youth.
|
|
|
|
Again:--
|
|
|
|
And the soul, with shrilling cry, passed like smoke beneath the
|
|
earth.
|
|
|
|
And,--
|
|
|
|
As bats in hollow of mystic cavern, whenever any of the has
|
|
dropped out of the string and falls from the rock, fly shrilling and
|
|
cling to one another, so did they with shrilling cry hold together
|
|
as they moved.
|
|
|
|
And we must beg Homer and the other poets not to be angry if we strike
|
|
out these and similar passages, not because they are unpoetical,
|
|
or unattractive to the popular ear, but because the greater the poetical
|
|
charm of them, the less are they meet for the ears of boys and men
|
|
who are meant to be free, and who should fear slavery more than death.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Also we shall have to reject all the terrible and appalling names
|
|
describe the world below--Cocytus and Styx, ghosts under the earth,
|
|
and sapless shades, and any similar words of which the very mention
|
|
causes a shudder to pass through the inmost soul of him who hears them.
|
|
I do not say that these horrible stories may not have a use of some kind;
|
|
but there is a danger that the nerves of our guardians may be rendered
|
|
too excitable and effeminate by them.
|
|
|
|
There is a real danger, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must have no more of them.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Another and a nobler strain must be composed and sung by us.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And shall we proceed to get rid of the weepings and wailings
|
|
of famous men?
|
|
|
|
They will go with the rest.
|
|
|
|
But shall we be right in getting rid of them? Reflect: our principle
|
|
is that the good man will not consider death terrible to any
|
|
other good man who is his comrade.
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is our principle.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he will not sorrow for his departed friend as though
|
|
he had suffered anything terrible?
|
|
|
|
He will not.
|
|
|
|
Such an one, as we further maintain, is sufficient for himself
|
|
and his own happiness, and therefore is least in need of other men.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason the loss of a son or brother, or the deprivation
|
|
of fortune, is to him of all men least terrible.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he will be least likely to lament, and will bear with
|
|
the greatest equanimity any misfortune of this sort which may befall him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will feel such a misfortune far less than another.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall be right in getting rid of the lamentations of famous men,
|
|
and making them over to women (and not even to women who are good
|
|
for anything), or to men of a baser sort, that those who are being
|
|
educated by us to be the defenders of their country may scorn
|
|
to do the like.
|
|
|
|
That will be very right.
|
|
|
|
Then we will once more entreat Homer and the other poets not to
|
|
depict Achilles, who is the son of a goddess, first lying on his side,
|
|
then on his back, and then on his face; then starting up and sailing
|
|
in a frenzy along the shores of the barren sea; now taking the sooty
|
|
ashes in both his hands and pouring them over his head, or weeping
|
|
and wailing in the various modes which Homer has delineated.
|
|
Nor should he describe Priam the kinsman of the gods as praying
|
|
and beseeching,
|
|
|
|
Rolling in the dirt, calling each man loudly by his name.
|
|
|
|
Still more earnestly will we beg of him at all events not to introduce
|
|
the gods lamenting and saying,
|
|
|
|
Alas! my misery! Alas! that I bore the harvest to my sorrow.
|
|
|
|
But if he must introduce the gods, at any rate let him not dare
|
|
so completely to misrepresent the greatest of the gods, as to make
|
|
him say--
|
|
|
|
O heavens! with my eyes verily I behold a dear friend of mine chased
|
|
round and round the city, and my heart is sorrowful.
|
|
|
|
Or again:--
|
|
|
|
Woe is me that I am fated to have Sarpedon, dearest of men to me,
|
|
subdued at the hands of Patroclus the son of Menoetius.
|
|
|
|
For if, my sweet Adeimantus, our youth seriously listen to such unworthy
|
|
representations of the gods, instead of laughing at them as they ought,
|
|
hardly will any of them deem that he himself, being but a man,
|
|
can be dishonoured by similar actions; neither will he rebuke any
|
|
inclination which may arise in his mind to say and do the like.
|
|
And instead of having any shame or self-control, he will be always
|
|
whining and lamenting on slight occasions.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is most true.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; but that surely is what ought not to be,
|
|
as the argument has just proved to us; and by that proof
|
|
we must abide until it is disproved by a better.
|
|
|
|
It ought not to be.
|
|
|
|
Neither ought our guardians to be given to laughter. For a fit
|
|
of laughter which has been indulged to excess almost always produces
|
|
a violent reaction.
|
|
|
|
So I believe.
|
|
|
|
Then persons of worth, even if only mortal men, must not be represented
|
|
as overcome by laughter, and still less must such a representation
|
|
of the gods be allowed.
|
|
|
|
Still less of the gods, as you say, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall not suffer such an expression to be used about the gods
|
|
as that of Homer when he describes how
|
|
|
|
Inextinguishable laughter arose among the blessed gods, when they
|
|
saw Hephaestus bustling about the mansion.
|
|
|
|
On your views, we must not admit them.
|
|
|
|
On my views, if you like to father them on me; that we must
|
|
not admit them is certain.
|
|
|
|
Again, truth should be highly valued; if, as we were saying,
|
|
a lie is useless to the gods, and useful only as a medicine to men,
|
|
then the use of such medicines should be restricted to physicians;
|
|
private individuals have no business with them.
|
|
|
|
Clearly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if any one at all is to have the privilege of lying,
|
|
the rulers of the State should be the persons; and they,
|
|
in their dealings either with enemies or with their own citizens,
|
|
may be allowed to lie for the public good. But nobody else
|
|
should meddle with anything of the kind; and although the rulers
|
|
have this privilege, for a private man to lie to them in return is
|
|
to be deemed a more heinous fault than for the patient or the pupil
|
|
of a gymnasium not to speak the truth about his own bodily illnesses
|
|
to the physician or to the trainer, or for a sailor not to tell
|
|
the captain what is happening about the ship and the rest of the crew,
|
|
and how things are going with himself or his fellow sailors.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
If, then, the ruler catches anybody beside himself lying in the State,
|
|
|
|
Any of the craftsmen, whether he priest or physician or carpenter.
|
|
|
|
he will punish him for introducing a practice which is equally
|
|
subversive and destructive of ship or State.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, he said, if our idea of the State is ever carried out.
|
|
|
|
In the next place our youth must be temperate?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Are not the chief elements of temperance, speaking generally,
|
|
obedience to commanders and self-control in sensual pleasures?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall approve such language as that of Diomede in Homer,
|
|
|
|
Friend, sit still and obey my word,
|
|
|
|
and the verses which follow,
|
|
|
|
The Greeks marched breathing prowess,
|
|
...in silent awe of their leaders,
|
|
|
|
and other sentiments of the same kind.
|
|
|
|
We shall.
|
|
|
|
What of this line,
|
|
|
|
O heavy with wine, who hast the eyes of a dog and the heart of a
|
|
stag,
|
|
|
|
and of the words which follow? Would you say that these, or any
|
|
similar impertinences which private individuals are supposed to address
|
|
to their rulers, whether in verse or prose, are well or ill spoken?
|
|
|
|
They are ill spoken.
|
|
|
|
They may very possibly afford some amusement, but they do not
|
|
conduce to temperance. And therefore they are likely to do harm
|
|
to our young men--you would agree with me there?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And then, again, to make the wisest of men say that nothing in his
|
|
opinion is more glorious than
|
|
|
|
When the tables are full of bread and meat, and the cup-bearer
|
|
carries round wine which he draws from the bowl and pours into the
|
|
cups,
|
|
|
|
is it fit or conducive to temperance for a young man to hear such words?
|
|
Or the verse
|
|
|
|
The saddest of fates is to die and meet destiny from hunger?
|
|
|
|
What would you say again to the tale of Zeus, who, while other
|
|
gods and men were asleep and he the only person awake,
|
|
lay devising plans, but forgot them all in a moment through his lust,
|
|
and was so completely overcome at the sight of Here that he would
|
|
not even go into the hut, but wanted to lie with her on the ground,
|
|
declaring that he had never been in such a state of rapture before,
|
|
even when they first met one another
|
|
|
|
Without the knowledge of their parents;
|
|
|
|
or that other tale of how Hephaestus, because of similar goings on,
|
|
cast a chain around Ares and Aphrodite?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, I am strongly of opinion that they ought not
|
|
to hear that sort of thing.
|
|
|
|
But any deeds of endurance which are done or told by famous men,
|
|
these they ought to see and hear; as, for example, what is said
|
|
in the verses,
|
|
|
|
He smote his breast, and thus reproached his heart,
|
|
Endure, my heart; far worse hast thou endured!
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, we must not let them be receivers of gifts
|
|
or lovers of money.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Neither must we sing to them of
|
|
|
|
Gifts persuading gods, and persuading reverend kings.
|
|
|
|
Neither is Phoenix, the tutor of Achilles, to be approved
|
|
or deemed to have given his pupil good counsel when he told him
|
|
that he should take the gifts of the Greeks and assist them;
|
|
but that without a gift he should not lay aside his anger.
|
|
Neither will we believe or acknowledge Achilles himself to have
|
|
been such a lover of money that he took Agamemnon's or that when
|
|
he had received payment he restored the dead body of Hector,
|
|
but that without payment he was unwilling to do so.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly, he said, these are not sentiments which can be approved.
|
|
|
|
Loving Homer as I do, I hardly like to say that in attributing
|
|
these feelings to Achilles, or in believing that they are truly
|
|
to him, he is guilty of downright impiety. As little can I believe
|
|
the narrative of his insolence to Apollo, where he says,
|
|
|
|
Thou hast wronged me, O far-darter, most abominable of deities.
|
|
Verily I would he even with thee, if I had only the power,
|
|
|
|
or his insubordination to the river-god, on whose divinity he is ready
|
|
to lay hands; or his offering to the dead Patroclus of his own hair,
|
|
which had been previously dedicated to the other river-god Spercheius,
|
|
and that he actually performed this vow; or that he dragged Hector
|
|
round the tomb of Patroclus, and slaughtered the captives at the pyre;
|
|
of all this I cannot believe that he was guilty, any more than I can
|
|
allow our citizens to believe that he, the wise Cheiron's pupil,
|
|
the son of a goddess and of Peleus who was the gentlest of men
|
|
and third in descent from Zeus, was so disordered in his wits as to
|
|
be at one time the slave of two seemingly inconsistent passions,
|
|
meanness, not untainted by avarice, combined with overweening
|
|
contempt of gods and men.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And let us equally refuse to believe, or allow to be repeated,
|
|
the tale of Theseus son of Poseidon, or of Peirithous son
|
|
of Zeus, going forth as they did to perpetrate a horrid rape;
|
|
or of any other hero or son of a god daring to do such impious
|
|
and dreadful things as they falsely ascribe to them in our day:
|
|
and let us further compel the poets to declare either that these acts
|
|
were not done by them, or that they were not the sons of gods;--
|
|
both in the same breath they shall not be permitted to affirm.
|
|
We will not have them trying to persuade our youth that the gods
|
|
are the authors of evil, and that heroes are no better than
|
|
men-sentiments which, as we were saying, are neither pious
|
|
nor true, for we have already proved that evil cannot come from
|
|
the gods.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
And further they are likely to have a bad effect on those who hear them;
|
|
for everybody will begin to excuse his own vices when he is convinced
|
|
that similar wickednesses are always being perpetrated by--
|
|
|
|
The kindred of the gods, the relatives of Zeus, whose ancestral
|
|
altar, the attar of Zeus, is aloft in air on the peak of Ida,
|
|
|
|
and who have
|
|
|
|
the blood of deities yet flowing in their veins.
|
|
|
|
And therefore let us put an end to such tales, lest they engender
|
|
laxity of morals among the young.
|
|
|
|
By all means, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But now that we are determining what classes of subjects are or are
|
|
not to be spoken of, let us see whether any have been omitted by us.
|
|
The manner in which gods and demigods and heroes and the world below
|
|
should be treated has been already laid down.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what shall we say about men? That is clearly the remaining
|
|
portion of our subject.
|
|
|
|
Clearly so.
|
|
|
|
But we are not in a condition to answer this question at present,
|
|
my friend.
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
Because, if I am not mistaken, we shall have to say that about men
|
|
poets and story-tellers are guilty of making the gravest misstatements
|
|
when they tell us that wicked men are often happy, and the good miserable;
|
|
and that injustice is profitable when undetected, but that justice
|
|
is a man's own loss and another's gain--these things we shall
|
|
forbid them to utter, and command them to sing and say the opposite.
|
|
|
|
To be sure we shall, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But if you admit that I am right in this, then I shall maintain that you
|
|
have implied the principle for which we have been all along contending.
|
|
|
|
I grant the truth of your inference.
|
|
|
|
That such things are or are not to be said about men is a question
|
|
which we cannot determine until we have discovered what justice is,
|
|
and how naturally advantageous to the possessor, whether he seems
|
|
to be just or not.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Enough of the subjects of poetry: let us now speak of the style;
|
|
and when this has been considered, both matter and manner will have
|
|
been completely treated.
|
|
|
|
I do not understand what you mean, said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Then I must make you understand; and perhaps I may be more
|
|
intelligible if I put the matter in this way. You are aware,
|
|
I suppose, that all mythology and poetry is a narration of events,
|
|
either past, present, or to come?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And narration may be either simple narration, or imitation,
|
|
or a union of the two?
|
|
|
|
That again, he said, I do not quite understand.
|
|
|
|
I fear that I must be a ridiculous teacher when I have so much difficulty
|
|
in making myself apprehended. Like a bad speaker, therefore, I will
|
|
not take the whole of the subject, but will break a piece off in
|
|
illustration of my meaning. You know the first lines of the Iliad,
|
|
in which the poet says that Chryses prayed Agamemnon to release
|
|
his daughter, and that Agamemnon flew into a passion with him;
|
|
whereupon Chryses, failing of his object, invoked the anger
|
|
of the God against the Achaeans. Now as far as these lines,
|
|
|
|
And he prayed all the Greeks, but especially the two sons of Atreus,
|
|
the chiefs of the people,
|
|
|
|
the poet is speaking in his own person; he never leads us to suppose
|
|
that he is any one else. But in what follows he takes the person
|
|
of Chryses, and then he does all that he can to make us believe
|
|
that the speaker is not Homer, but the aged priest himself.
|
|
And in this double form he has cast the entire narrative of the events
|
|
which occurred at Troy and in Ithaca and throughout the Odyssey.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And a narrative it remains both in the speeches which the poet
|
|
recites from time to time and in the intermediate passages?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
But when the poet speaks in the person of another, may we not
|
|
say that he assimilates his style to that of the person who,
|
|
as he informs you, is going to speak?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this assimilation of himself to another, either by the use
|
|
of voice or gesture, is the imitation of the person whose character
|
|
he assumes?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Then in this case the narrative of the poet may be said to proceed
|
|
by way of imitation?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Or, if the poet everywhere appears and never conceals himself,
|
|
then again the imitation is dropped, and his poetry becomes
|
|
simple narration. However, in order that I may make my meaning
|
|
quite clear, and that you may no more say, I don't understand,'
|
|
I will show how the change might be effected. If Homer had said,
|
|
`The priest came, having his daughter's ransom in his hands,
|
|
supplicating the Achaeans, and above all the kings;' and then if,
|
|
instead of speaking in the person of Chryses, he had continued
|
|
in his own person, the words would have been, not imitation,
|
|
but simple narration. The passage would have run as follows
|
|
(I am no poet, and therefore I drop the metre), `The priest came
|
|
and prayed the gods on behalf of the Greeks that they might capture
|
|
Troy and return safely home, but begged that they would give him back
|
|
his daughter, and take the ransom which he brought, and respect the God.
|
|
Thus he spoke, and the other Greeks revered the priest and assented.
|
|
But Agamemnon was wroth, and bade him depart and not come again,
|
|
lest the staff and chaplets of the God should be of no avail to him--
|
|
the daughter of Chryses should not be released, he said--
|
|
she should grow old with him in Argos. And then he told him to go
|
|
away and not to provoke him, if he intended to get home unscathed.
|
|
And the old man went away in fear and silence, and, when he
|
|
had left the camp, he called upon Apollo by his many names,
|
|
reminding him of everything which he had done pleasing to him,
|
|
whether in building his temples, or in offering sacrifice, and praying
|
|
that his good deeds might be returned to him, and that the Achaeans
|
|
might expiate his tears by the arrows of the god,'--and so on.
|
|
In this way the whole becomes simple narrative.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said.
|
|
|
|
Or you may suppose the opposite case--that the intermediate passages
|
|
are omitted, and the dialogue only left.
|
|
|
|
That also, he said, I understand; you mean, for example, as in tragedy.
|
|
|
|
You have conceived my meaning perfectly; and if I mistake not,
|
|
what you failed to apprehend before is now made clear to you,
|
|
that poetry and mythology are, in some cases, wholly imitative--
|
|
instances of this are supplied by tragedy and comedy; there is
|
|
likewise the opposite style, in which the my poet is the only speaker--
|
|
of this the dithyramb affords the best example; and the combination
|
|
of both is found in epic, and in several other styles of poetry. Do I
|
|
take you with me?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I see now what you meant.
|
|
|
|
I will ask you to remember also what I began by saying, that we
|
|
had done with the subject and might proceed to the style.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
In saying this, I intended to imply that we must come to an
|
|
understanding about the mimetic art,--whether the poets, in narrating
|
|
their stories, are to be allowed by us to imitate, and if so,
|
|
whether in whole or in part, and if the latter, in what parts;
|
|
or should all imitation be prohibited?
|
|
|
|
You mean, I suspect, to ask whether tragedy and comedy shall
|
|
be admitted into our State?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but there may be more than this in question:
|
|
I really do not know as yet, but whither the argument may blow,
|
|
thither we go.
|
|
|
|
And go we will, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, Adeimantus, let me ask you whether our guardians ought to be imitators;
|
|
or rather, has not this question been decided by the rule already
|
|
laid down that one man can only do one thing well, and not many;
|
|
and that if he attempt many, he will altogether fall of gaining
|
|
much reputation in any?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this is equally true of imitation; no one man can imitate
|
|
many things as well as he would imitate a single one?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then the same person will hardly be able to play a serious part in life,
|
|
and at the same time to be an imitator and imitate many other parts
|
|
as well; for even when two species of imitation are nearly allied,
|
|
the same persons cannot succeed in both, as, for example, the writers
|
|
of tragedy and comedy--did you not just now call them imitations?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I did; and you are right in thinking that the same persons
|
|
cannot succeed in both.
|
|
|
|
Any more than they can be rhapsodists and actors at once?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Neither are comic and tragic actors the same; yet all these things
|
|
are but imitations.
|
|
|
|
They are so.
|
|
|
|
And human nature, Adeimantus, appears to have been coined into yet
|
|
smaller pieces, and to be as incapable of imitating many things well,
|
|
as of performing well the actions of which the imitations are copies.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
If then we adhere to our original notion and bear in mind that
|
|
our guardians, setting aside every other business, are to dedicate
|
|
themselves wholly to the maintenance of freedom in the State,
|
|
making this their craft, and engaging in no work which does not bear
|
|
on this end, they ought not to practise or imitate anything else;
|
|
if they imitate at all, they should imitate from youth upward
|
|
only those characters which are suitable to their profession--
|
|
the courageous, temperate, holy, free, and the like; but they should not
|
|
depict or be skilful at imitating any kind of illiberality or baseness,
|
|
lest from imitation they should come to be what they imitate.
|
|
Did you never observe how imitations, beginning in early youth
|
|
and continuing far into life, at length grow into habits and become a
|
|
second nature, affecting body, voice, and mind?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we will not allow those for whom we profess a care
|
|
and of whom we say that they ought to be good men, to imitate
|
|
a woman, whether young or old, quarrelling with her husband,
|
|
or striving and vaunting against the gods in conceit of her happiness,
|
|
or when she is in affliction, or sorrow, or weeping; and certainly
|
|
not one who is in sickness, love, or labour.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither must they represent slaves, male or female,
|
|
performing the offices of slaves?
|
|
|
|
They must not.
|
|
|
|
And surely not bad men, whether cowards or any others, who do
|
|
the reverse of what we have just been prescribing, who scold or mock
|
|
or revile one another in drink or out of in drink or, or who in any
|
|
other manner sin against themselves and their neighbours in word
|
|
or deed, as the manner of such is. Neither should they be trained
|
|
to imitate the action or speech of men or women who are mad or bad;
|
|
for madness, like vice, is to be known but not to be practised
|
|
or imitated.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Neither may they imitate smiths or other artificers, or oarsmen,
|
|
or boatswains, or the like?
|
|
|
|
How can they, he said, when they are not allowed to apply their
|
|
minds to the callings of any of these?
|
|
|
|
Nor may they imitate the neighing of horses, the bellowing of bulls,
|
|
the murmur of rivers and roll of the ocean, thunder, and all that sort
|
|
of thing?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, if madness be forbidden, neither may they copy
|
|
the behaviour of madmen.
|
|
|
|
You mean, I said, if I understand you aright, that there is one
|
|
sort of narrative style which may be employed by a truly good man
|
|
when he has anything to say, and that another sort will be used
|
|
by a man of an opposite character and education.
|
|
|
|
And which are these two sorts? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Suppose, I answered, that a just and good man in the course of a
|
|
narration comes on some saying or action of another good man,--
|
|
I should imagine that he will like to personate him, and will not be
|
|
ashamed of this sort of imitation: he will be most ready to play
|
|
the part of the good man when he is acting firmly and wisely;
|
|
in a less degree when he is overtaken by illness or love or drink,
|
|
or has met with any other disaster. But when he comes to a character
|
|
which is unworthy of him, he will not make a study of that;
|
|
he will disdain such a person, and will assume his likeness,
|
|
if at all, for a moment only when he is performing some good action;
|
|
at other times he will be ashamed to play a part which he has
|
|
never practised, nor will he like to fashion and frame himself
|
|
after the baser models; he feels the employment of such an art,
|
|
unless in jest, to be beneath him, and his mind revolts
|
|
at it.
|
|
|
|
So I should expect, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then he will adopt a mode of narration such as we have illustrated
|
|
out of Homer, that is to say, his style will be both imitative
|
|
and narrative; but there will be very little of the former,
|
|
and a great deal of the latter. Do you agree?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; that is the model which such a speaker must
|
|
necessarily take.
|
|
|
|
But there is another sort of character who will narrate anything,
|
|
and, the worse lie is, the more unscrupulous he will be; nothing will
|
|
be too bad for him: and he will be ready to imitate anything,
|
|
not as a joke, but in right good earnest, and before a large company.
|
|
As I was just now saying, he will attempt to represent the roll
|
|
of thunder, the noise of wind and hall, or the creaking of wheels,
|
|
and pulleys, and the various sounds of flutes; pipes, trumpets, and all
|
|
sorts of instruments: he will bark like a dog, bleat like a sheep,
|
|
or crow like a cock; his entire art will consist in imitation of voice
|
|
and gesture, and there will be very little narration.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, will be his mode of speaking.
|
|
|
|
These, then, are the two kinds of style?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you would agree with me in saying that one of them is simple
|
|
and has but slight changes; and if the harmony and rhythm are
|
|
also chosen for their simplicity, the result is that the speaker,
|
|
if hc speaks correctly, is always pretty much the same in style,
|
|
and he will keep within the limits of a single harmony (for the changes
|
|
are not great), and in like manner he will make use of nearly
|
|
the same rhythm?
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the other requires all sorts of harmonies and all sorts
|
|
of rhythms, if the music and the style are to correspond,
|
|
because the style has all sorts of changes.
|
|
|
|
That is also perfectly true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And do not the two styles, or the mixture of the two,
|
|
comprehend all poetry, and every form of expression in words?
|
|
No one can say anything except in one or other of them or in both together.
|
|
|
|
They include all, he said.
|
|
|
|
And shall we receive into our State all the three styles, or one
|
|
only of the two unmixed styles? or would you include the mixed?
|
|
|
|
I should prefer only to admit the pure imitator of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, Adeimantus, but the mixed style is also very charming:
|
|
and indeed the pantomimic, which is the opposite of the one chosen
|
|
by you, is the most popular style with children and their attendants,
|
|
and with the world in general.
|
|
|
|
I do not deny it.
|
|
|
|
But I suppose you would argue that such a style is unsuitable
|
|
to our State, in which human nature is not twofold or manifold,
|
|
for one man plays one part only?
|
|
|
|
Yes; quite unsuitable.
|
|
|
|
And this is the reason why in our State, and in our State only,
|
|
we shall find a shoemaker to be a shoemaker and not a pilot also,
|
|
and a husbandman to be a husbandman and not a dicast also, and a soldier
|
|
a soldier and not a trader also, and the same throughout?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore when any one of these pantomimic gentlemen,
|
|
who are so clever that they can imitate anything, comes to us,
|
|
and makes a proposal to exhibit himself and his poetry, we will
|
|
fall down and worship him as a sweet and holy and wonderful being;
|
|
but we must also inform him that in our State such as he
|
|
are not permitted to exist; the law will not allow them.
|
|
And so when we have anointed him with myrrh, and set a garland
|
|
of wool upon his head, we shall send him away to another city.
|
|
For we mean to employ for our souls' health the rougher and severer
|
|
poet or story-teller, who will imitate the style of the virtuous only,
|
|
and will follow those models which we prescribed at first when we
|
|
began the education of our soldiers.
|
|
|
|
We certainly will, he said, if we have the power.
|
|
|
|
Then now, my friend, I said, that part of music or literary education
|
|
which relates to the story or myth may be considered to be finished;
|
|
for the matter and manner have both been discussed.
|
|
|
|
I think so too, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next in order will follow melody and song.
|
|
|
|
That is obvious.
|
|
|
|
Every one can see already what we ought to say about them, if we
|
|
are to be consistent with ourselves.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
I fear, said Glaucon, laughing, that the words `every one'
|
|
hardly includes me, for I cannot at the moment say what they should be;
|
|
though I may guess.
|
|
|
|
At any rate you can tell that a song or ode has three parts--
|
|
the words, the melody, and the rhythm; that degree of knowledge I
|
|
may presuppose?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; so much as that you may.
|
|
|
|
And as for the words, there surely be no difference words between
|
|
words which are and which are not set to music; both will conform
|
|
to the same laws, and these have been already determined by us?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the melody and rhythm will depend upon the words?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
We were saying, when we spoke of the subject-matter, that we
|
|
had no need of lamentations and strains of sorrow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And which are the harmonies expressive of sorrow? You are musical,
|
|
and can tell me.
|
|
|
|
The harmonies which you mean are the mixed or tenor Lydian,
|
|
and the full-toned or bass Lydian, and such like.
|
|
|
|
These then, I said, must be banished; even to women who have a character
|
|
to maintain they are of no use, and much less to men. Certainly.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, drunkenness and softness and indolence are
|
|
utterly unbecoming the character of our guardians.
|
|
|
|
Utterly unbecoming.
|
|
|
|
And which are the soft or drinking harmonies?
|
|
|
|
The Ionian, he replied, and the Lydian; they are termed `relaxed.'
|
|
|
|
Well, and are these of any military use?
|
|
|
|
Quite the reverse, he replied; and if so the Dorian and the Phrygian
|
|
are the only ones which you have left.
|
|
|
|
I answered: Of the harmonies I know nothing, but I want to have
|
|
one warlike, to sound the note or accent which a brave man utters
|
|
in the hour of danger and stern resolve, or when his cause is failing,
|
|
and he is going to wounds or death or is overtaken by some other evil,
|
|
and at every such crisis meets the blows of fortune with firm step
|
|
and a determination to endure; and another to be used by him in times
|
|
of peace and freedom of action, when there is no pressure of necessity,
|
|
and he is seeking to persuade God by prayer, or man by instruction
|
|
and admonition, or on the other hand, when he is expressing his
|
|
willingness to yield to persuasion or entreaty or admonition,
|
|
and which represents him when by prudent conduct he has attained
|
|
his end, not carried away by his success, but acting moderately
|
|
and wisely under the circumstances, and acquiescing in the event.
|
|
These two harmonies I ask you to leave; the strain of necessity and
|
|
the strain of freedom, the strain of the unfortunate and the strain
|
|
of the fortunate, the strain of courage, and the strain of temperance;
|
|
these, I say, leave.
|
|
|
|
And these, he replied, are the Dorian and Phrygian harmonies
|
|
of which I was just now speaking.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, if these and these only are to be used in our songs
|
|
and melodies, we shall not want multiplicity of notes or a panharmonic scale?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
Then we shall not maintain the artificers of lyres with three corners
|
|
and complex scales, or the makers of any other many-stringed
|
|
curiously-harmonised instruments?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
But what do you say to flute-makers and flute-players? Would you admit
|
|
them into our State when you reflect that in this composite use of harmony
|
|
the flute is worse than all the stringed instruments put together;
|
|
even the panharmonic music is only an imitation of the flute?
|
|
|
|
Clearly not.
|
|
|
|
There remain then only the lyre and the harp for use in the city,
|
|
and the shepherds may have a pipe in the country.
|
|
|
|
That is surely the conclusion to be drawn from the argument.
|
|
|
|
The preferring of Apollo and his instruments to Marsyas and his
|
|
instruments is not at all strange, I said.
|
|
|
|
Not at all, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And so, by the dog of Egypt, we have been unconsciously purging
|
|
the State, which not long ago we termed luxurious.
|
|
|
|
And we have done wisely, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now finish the purgation, I said. Next in order
|
|
to harmonies, rhythms will naturally follow, and they should be
|
|
subject to the same rules, for we ought not to seek out complex
|
|
systems of metre, or metres of every kind, but rather to discover
|
|
what rhythms are the expressions of a courageous and harmonious life;
|
|
and when we have found them, we shall adapt the foot and the melody
|
|
to words having a like spirit, not the words to the foot and melody.
|
|
To say what these rhythms are will be your duty--you must teach me them,
|
|
as you have already taught me the harmonies.
|
|
|
|
But, indeed, he replied, I cannot tell you. I only know that there
|
|
are some three principles of rhythm out of which metrical systems
|
|
are framed, just as in sounds there are four notes out of which all
|
|
the harmonies are composed; that is an observation which I have made.
|
|
But of what sort of lives they are severally the imitations I am
|
|
unable to say.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we must take Damon into our counsels; and he will tell
|
|
us what rhythms are expressive of meanness, or insolence, or fury,
|
|
or other unworthiness, and what are to be reserved for the expression
|
|
of opposite feelings. And I think that I have an indistinct recollection
|
|
of his mentioning a complex Cretic rhythm; also a dactylic or heroic,
|
|
and he arranged them in some manner which I do not quite understand,
|
|
making the rhythms equal in the rise and fall of the foot,
|
|
long and short alternating; and, unless I am mistaken, he spoke
|
|
of an iambic as well as of a trochaic rhythm, and assigned to them
|
|
short and long quantities. Also in some cases he appeared to praise
|
|
or censure the movement of the foot quite as much as the rhythm;
|
|
or perhaps a combination of the two; for I am not certain what he meant.
|
|
These matters, however, as I was saying, had better be referred
|
|
to Damon himself, for the analysis of the subject would be difficult,
|
|
you know.
|
|
|
|
Rather so, I should say.
|
|
|
|
But there is no difficulty in seeing that grace or the absence
|
|
of grace is an effect of good or bad rhythm.
|
|
|
|
None at all.
|
|
|
|
And also that good and bad rhythm naturally assimilate to a good and
|
|
bad style; and that harmony and discord in like manner follow style;
|
|
for our principle is that rhythm and harmony are regulated by the words,
|
|
and not the words by them.
|
|
|
|
Just so, he said, they should follow the words.
|
|
|
|
And will not the words and the character of the style depend
|
|
on the temper of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And everything else on the style?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then beauty of style and harmony and grace and good rhythm depend
|
|
on simplicity,--I mean the true simplicity of a rightly and nobly
|
|
ordered mind and character, not that other simplicity which is
|
|
only an euphemism for folly?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And if our youth are to do their work in life, must they not make
|
|
these graces and harmonies their perpetual aim?
|
|
|
|
They must.
|
|
|
|
And surely the art of the painter and every other creative and
|
|
constructive art are full of them,--weaving, embroidery, architecture,
|
|
and every kind of manufacture; also nature, animal and vegetable,--
|
|
in all of them there is grace or the absence of grace.
|
|
And ugliness and discord and inharmonious motion are nearly allied
|
|
to ill words and ill nature, as grace and harmony are the twin
|
|
sisters of goodness and virtue and bear their likeness.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But shall our superintendence go no further, and are the poets only
|
|
to be required by us to express the image of the good in their works,
|
|
on pain, if they do anything else, of expulsion from our State?
|
|
Or is the same control to be extended to other artists, and are
|
|
they also to be prohibited from exhibiting the opposite forms
|
|
of vice and intemperance and meanness and indecency in sculpture
|
|
and building and the other creative arts; and is he who cannot
|
|
conform to this rule of ours to be prevented from practising his art
|
|
in our State, lest the taste of our citizens be corrupted by him?
|
|
We would not have our guardians grow up amid images of moral deformity,
|
|
as in some noxious pasture, and there browse and feed upon many
|
|
a baneful herb and flower day by day, little by little, until they
|
|
silently gather a festering mass of corruption in their own soul.
|
|
Let our artists rather be those who are gifted to discern the true
|
|
nature of the beautiful and graceful; then will our youth dwell
|
|
in a land of health, amid fair sights and sounds, and receive the good
|
|
in everything; and beauty, the effluence of fair works, shall flow
|
|
into the eye and ear, like a health-giving breeze from a purer region,
|
|
and insensibly draw the soul from earliest years into likeness and
|
|
sympathy with the beauty of reason.
|
|
|
|
There can be no nobler training than that, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, Glaucon, musical training is a more potent
|
|
instrument than any other, because rhythm and harmony find their way
|
|
into the inward places of the soul, on which they mightily fasten,
|
|
imparting grace, and making the soul of him who is rightly
|
|
educated graceful, or of him who is ill-educated ungraceful;
|
|
and also because he who has received this true education of the inner
|
|
being will most shrewdly perceive omissions or faults in art
|
|
and nature, and with a true taste, while he praises and rejoices
|
|
over and receives into his soul the good, and becomes noble and good,
|
|
he will justly blame and hate the bad, now in the days of his youth,
|
|
even before he is able to know the reason why; and when reason comes
|
|
he will recognise and salute the friend with whom his education has
|
|
made him long familiar.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I quite agree with you in thinking that our youth
|
|
should be trained in music and on the grounds which you mention.
|
|
|
|
Just as in learning to read, I said, we were satisfied when we knew
|
|
the letters of the alphabet, which are very few, in all their recurring
|
|
sizes and combinations; not slighting them as unimportant whether they
|
|
occupy a space large or small, but everywhere eager to make them out;
|
|
and not thinking ourselves perfect in the art of reading until we
|
|
recognise them wherever they are found:
|
|
|
|
True--
|
|
|
|
Or, as we recognise the reflection of letters in the water,
|
|
or in a mirror, only when we know the letters themselves;
|
|
the same art and study giving us the knowledge of both:
|
|
|
|
Exactly--
|
|
|
|
Even so, as I maintain, neither we nor our guardians, whom we have to educate,
|
|
can ever become musical until we and they know the essential forms,
|
|
in all their combinations, and can recognise them and their images
|
|
wherever they are found, not slighting them either in small things
|
|
or great, but believing them all to be within the sphere of one art and study.
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And when a beautiful soul harmonises with a beautiful form,
|
|
and the two are cast in one mould, that will be the fairest of sights
|
|
to him who has an eye to see it?
|
|
|
|
The fairest indeed.
|
|
|
|
And the fairest is also the loveliest?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
And the man who has the spirit of harmony will be most in love with
|
|
the loveliest; but he will not love him who is of an inharmonious soul?
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied, if the deficiency be in his soul;
|
|
but if there be any merely bodily defect in another he will be patient
|
|
of it, and will love all the same.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you have or have had experiences of
|
|
this sort, and I agree. But let me ask you another question:
|
|
Has excess of pleasure any affinity to temperance?
|
|
|
|
How can that be? he replied; pleasure deprives a man of the use
|
|
of his faculties quite as much as pain.
|
|
|
|
Or any affinity to virtue in general?
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
Any affinity to wantonness and intemperance?
|
|
|
|
Yes, the greatest.
|
|
|
|
And is there any greater or keener pleasure than that of sensual love?
|
|
|
|
No, nor a madder.
|
|
|
|
Whereas true love is a love of beauty and order--temperate and harmonious?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then no intemperance or madness should be allowed to approach
|
|
true love?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then mad or intemperate pleasure must never be allowed to come
|
|
near the lover and his beloved; neither of them can have any part
|
|
in it if their love is of the right sort?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, Socrates, it must never come near them.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that in the city which we are founding you would make
|
|
a law to the effect that a friend should use no other familiarity
|
|
to his love than a father would use to his son, and then only
|
|
for a noble purpose, and he must first have the other's consent;
|
|
and this rule is to limit him in all his intercourse, and he is never
|
|
to be seen going further, or, if he exceeds, he is to be deemed
|
|
guilty of coarseness and bad taste.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus much of music, which makes a fair ending; for what should
|
|
be the end of music if not the love of beauty?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
After music comes gymnastic, in which our youth are next to be trained.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Gymnastic as well as music should begin in early years; the training
|
|
in it should be careful and should continue through life.
|
|
Now my belief is,--and this is a matter upon which I should like to
|
|
have your opinion in confirmation of my own, but my own belief is,--
|
|
not that the good body by any bodily excellence improves the soul,
|
|
but, on the contrary, that the good soul, by her own excellence,
|
|
improves the body as far as this may be possible. What do you say?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I agree.
|
|
|
|
Then, to the mind when adequately trained, we shall be right in handing
|
|
over the more particular care of the body; and in order to avoid
|
|
prolixity we will now only give the general outlines of the subject.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
That they must abstain from intoxication has been already remarked by us;
|
|
for of all persons a guardian should be the last to get drunk
|
|
and not know where in the world he is.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that a guardian should require another guardian
|
|
to take care of him is ridiculous indeed.
|
|
|
|
But next, what shall we say of their food; for the men
|
|
are in training for the great contest of all--are they not?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And will the habit of body of our ordinary athletes be suited
|
|
to them?
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
I am afraid, I said, that a habit of body such as they have is
|
|
but a sleepy sort of thing, and rather perilous to health.
|
|
Do you not observe that these athletes sleep away their lives,
|
|
and are liable to most dangerous illnesses if they depart, in ever
|
|
so slight a degree, from their customary regimen?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I do.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, a finer sort of training will be required for our
|
|
warrior athletes, who are to be like wakeful dogs, and to see and hear
|
|
with the utmost keenness; amid the many changes of water and also of food,
|
|
of summer heat and winter cold, which they will have to endure
|
|
when on a campaign, they must not be liable to break down in health.
|
|
|
|
That is my view.
|
|
|
|
The really excellent gymnastic is twin sister of that simple music
|
|
which we were just now describing.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Why, I conceive that there is a gymnastic which, like our music,
|
|
is simple and good; and especially the military gymnastic.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
My meaning may be learned from Homer; he, you know, feeds his heroes
|
|
at their feasts, when they are campaigning, on soldiers' fare; they have
|
|
no fish, although they are on the shores of the Hellespont, and they
|
|
are not allowed boiled meats but only roast, which is the food
|
|
most convenient for soldiers, requiring only that they should light
|
|
a fire, and not involving the trouble of carrying about pots and pans.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And I can hardly be mistaken in saying that sweet sauces are nowhere
|
|
mentioned in Homer. In proscribing them, however, he is not singular;
|
|
all professional athletes are well aware that a man who is to be
|
|
in good condition should take nothing of the kind.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and knowing this, they are quite right in not taking them.
|
|
|
|
Then you would not approve of Syracusan dinners, and the refinements
|
|
of Sicilian cookery?
|
|
|
|
I think not.
|
|
|
|
Nor, if a man is to be in condition, would you allow him to have
|
|
a Corinthian girl as his fair friend?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Neither would you approve of the delicacies, as they are thought,
|
|
of Athenian confectionery?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
All such feeding and living may be rightly compared by us to melody
|
|
and song composed in the panharmonic style, and in all the rhythms. Exactly.
|
|
|
|
There complexity engendered license, and here disease;
|
|
whereas simplicity in music was the parent of temperance in the soul;
|
|
and simplicity in gymnastic of health in the body.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when intemperance and disease multiply in a State, halls of justice
|
|
and medicine are always being opened; and the arts of the doctor
|
|
and the lawyer give themselves airs, finding how keen is the interest
|
|
which not only the slaves but the freemen of a city take about them.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And yet what greater proof can there be of a bad and disgraceful
|
|
state of education than this, that not only artisans and the meaner
|
|
sort of people need the skill of first-rate physicians and judges,
|
|
but also those who would profess to have had a liberal education?
|
|
Is it not disgraceful, and a great sign of want of good-breeding,
|
|
that a man should have to go abroad for his law and physic because
|
|
he has none of his own at home, and must therefore surrender
|
|
himself into the hands of other men whom he makes lords and judges
|
|
over him?
|
|
|
|
Of all things, he said, the most disgraceful.
|
|
|
|
Would you say `most,' I replied, when you consider that there is a further
|
|
stage of the evil in which a man is not only a life-long litigant,
|
|
passing all his days in the courts, either as plaintiff or defendant,
|
|
but is actually led by his bad taste to pride himself on
|
|
his litigiousness; he imagines that he is a master in dishonesty;
|
|
able to take every crooked turn, and wriggle into and out of every hole,
|
|
bending like a withy and getting out of the way of justice:
|
|
and all for what?--in order to gain small points not worth mentioning,
|
|
he not knowing that so to order his life as to be able to do
|
|
without a napping judge is a far higher and nobler sort of thing.
|
|
Is not that still more disgraceful?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is still more disgraceful.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and to require the help of medicine, not when a wound
|
|
has to be cured, or on occasion of an epidemic, but just because,
|
|
by indolence and a habit of life such as we have been describing,
|
|
men fill themselves with waters and winds, as if their bodies
|
|
were a marsh, compelling the ingenious sons of Asclepius to find
|
|
more names for diseases, such as flatulence and catarrh;
|
|
is not this, too, a disgrace?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they do certainly give very strange and newfangled
|
|
names to diseases.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and I do not believe that there were any such diseases
|
|
in the days of Asclepius; and this I infer from the circumstance
|
|
that the hero Eurypylus, after he has been wounded in Homer,
|
|
drinks a posset of Pramnian wine well besprinkled with barley-meal
|
|
and grated cheese, which are certainly inflammatory, and yet the sons
|
|
of Asclepius who were at the Trojan war do not blame the damsel
|
|
who gives him the drink, or rebuke Patroclus, who is treating
|
|
his case.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, that was surely an extraordinary drink to be given
|
|
to a person in his condition.
|
|
|
|
Not so extraordinary, I replied, if you bear in mind that in
|
|
former days, as is commonly said, before the time of Herodicus,
|
|
the guild of Asclepius did not practise our present system of medicine,
|
|
which may be said to educate diseases. But Herodicus, being a trainer,
|
|
and himself of a sickly constitution, by a combination of training
|
|
and doctoring found out a way of torturing first and chiefly himself,
|
|
and secondly the rest of the world.
|
|
|
|
How was that? he said.
|
|
|
|
By the invention of lingering death; for he had a mortal disease
|
|
which he perpetually tended, and as recovery was out of the question,
|
|
he passed his entire life as a valetudinarian; he could do nothing
|
|
but attend upon himself, and he was in constant torment whenever
|
|
he departed in anything from his usual regimen, and so dying hard,
|
|
by the help of science he struggled on to old age.
|
|
|
|
A rare reward of his skill!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; a reward which a man might fairly expect who never
|
|
understood that, if Asclepius did not instruct his descendants in
|
|
valetudinarian arts, the omission arose, not from ignorance or inexperience
|
|
of such a branch of medicine, but because he knew that in all well-ordered
|
|
states every individual has an occupation to which he must attend,
|
|
and has therefore no leisure to spend in continually being ill.
|
|
This we remark in the case of the artisan, but, ludicrously enough,
|
|
do not apply the same rule to people of the richer sort.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean this: When a carpenter is ill he asks the physician for a rough
|
|
and ready cure; an emetic or a purge or a cautery or the knife,--
|
|
these are his remedies. And if some one prescribes for him a course
|
|
of dietetics, and tells him that he must swathe and swaddle his head,
|
|
and all that sort of thing, he replies at once that he has no time
|
|
to be ill, and that he sees no good in a life which is spent
|
|
in nursing his disease to the neglect of his customary employment;
|
|
and therefore bidding good-bye to this sort of physician, he resumes
|
|
his ordinary habits, and either gets well and lives and does
|
|
his business, or, if his constitution falls, he dies and has no
|
|
more trouble.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and a man in his condition of life ought to use
|
|
the art of medicine thus far only.
|
|
|
|
Has he not, I said, an occupation; and what profit would there
|
|
be in his life if he were deprived of his occupation?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But with the rich man this is otherwise; of him we do not say
|
|
that he has any specially appointed work which he must perform,
|
|
if he would live.
|
|
|
|
He is generally supposed to have nothing to do.
|
|
|
|
Then you never heard of the saying of Phocylides, that as soon
|
|
as a man has a livelihood he should practise virtue?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, I think that he had better begin somewhat sooner.
|
|
|
|
Let us not have a dispute with him about this, I said; but rather
|
|
ask ourselves: Is the practice of virtue obligatory on the rich man,
|
|
or can he live without it? And if obligatory on him, then let us raise
|
|
a further question, whether this dieting of disorders which is an impediment
|
|
to the application of the mind t in carpentering and the mechanical
|
|
arts, does not equally stand in the way of the sentiment of Phocylides?
|
|
|
|
Of that, he replied, there can be no doubt; such excessive
|
|
care of the body, when carried beyond the rules of gymnastic,
|
|
is most inimical to the practice of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, I replied, and equally incompatible with the management
|
|
of a house, an army, or an office of state; and, what is
|
|
most important of all, irreconcilable with any kind of study
|
|
or thought or self-reflection--there is a constant suspicion
|
|
that headache and giddiness are to be ascribed to philosophy,
|
|
and hence all practising or making trial of virtue in the higher
|
|
sense is absolutely stopped; for a man is always fancying that
|
|
he is being made ill, and is in constant anxiety about the state of his body.
|
|
|
|
Yes, likely enough.
|
|
|
|
And therefore our politic Asclepius may be supposed to have
|
|
exhibited the power of his art only to persons who, being generally
|
|
of healthy constitution and habits of life, had a definite ailment;
|
|
such as these he cured by purges and operations, and bade them
|
|
live as usual, herein consulting the interests of the State;
|
|
but bodies which disease had penetrated through and through he
|
|
would not have attempted to cure by gradual processes of evacuation
|
|
and infusion: he did not want to lengthen out good-for-nothing lives,
|
|
or to have weak fathers begetting weaker sons;--if a man was not
|
|
able to live in the ordinary way he had no business to cure him;
|
|
for such a cure would have been of no use either to himself, or to
|
|
the State.
|
|
|
|
Then, he said, you regard Asclepius as a statesman.
|
|
|
|
Clearly; and his character is further illustrated by his sons.
|
|
Note that they were heroes in the days of old and practised the medicines
|
|
of which I am speaking at the siege of Troy: You will remember how,
|
|
when Pandarus wounded Menelaus, they
|
|
|
|
Sucked the blood out of the wound, and sprinkled soothing remedies,
|
|
|
|
but they never prescribed what the patient was afterwards to eat or
|
|
drink in the case of Menelaus, any more than in the case of Eurypylus;
|
|
the remedies, as they conceived, were enough to heal any man
|
|
who before he was wounded was healthy and regular in habits;
|
|
and even though he did happen to drink a posset of Pramnian wine,
|
|
he might get well all the same. But they would have nothing to do
|
|
with unhealthy and intemperate subjects, whose lives were of no use
|
|
either to themselves or others; the art of medicine was not designed
|
|
for their good, and though they were as rich as Midas, the sons
|
|
of Asclepius would have declined to attend them.
|
|
|
|
They were very acute persons, those sons of Asclepius.
|
|
|
|
Naturally so, I replied. Nevertheless, the tragedians and Pindar
|
|
disobeying our behests, although they acknowledge that Asclepius
|
|
was the son of Apollo, say also that he was bribed into healing
|
|
a rich man who was at the point of death, and for this reason he
|
|
was struck by lightning. But we, in accordance with the principle
|
|
already affirmed by us, will not believe them when they tell us both;--
|
|
if he was the son of a god, we maintain that hd was not avaricious;
|
|
or, if he was avaricious he was not the son of a god.
|
|
|
|
All that, Socrates, is excellent; but I should like to put a
|
|
question to you: Ought there not to be good physicians in a State,
|
|
and are not the best those who have treated the greatest number
|
|
of constitutions good and bad? and are not the best judges
|
|
in like manner those who are acquainted with all sorts of moral natures?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, I too would have good judges and good physicians.
|
|
But do you know whom I think good?
|
|
|
|
Will you tell me?
|
|
|
|
I will, if I can. Let me however note that in the same question
|
|
you join two things which are not the same.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, you join physicians and judges. Now the most skilful
|
|
physicians are those who, from their youth upwards, have combined
|
|
with the knowledge of their art the greatest experience of disease;
|
|
they had better not be robust in health, and should have had
|
|
all manner of diseases in their own persons. For the body,
|
|
as I conceive, is not the instrument with which they cure the body;
|
|
in that case we could not allow them ever to be or to have been sickly;
|
|
but they cure the body with the mind, and the mind which has become and
|
|
is sick can cure nothing.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But with the judge it is otherwise; since he governs mind by mind;
|
|
he ought not therefore to have been trained among vicious minds,
|
|
and to have associated with them from youth upwards, and to have
|
|
gone through the whole calendar of crime, only in order that he
|
|
may quickly infer the crimes of others as he might their bodily
|
|
diseases from his own self-consciousness; the honourable mind
|
|
which is to form a healthy judgment should have had no experience
|
|
or contamination of evil habits when young. And this is the reason
|
|
why in youth good men often appear to be simple, and are easily
|
|
practised upon by the dishonest, because they have no examples
|
|
of what evil is in their own souls.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they are far too apt to be deceived.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, I said, the judge should not be young; he should
|
|
have learned to know evil, not from his own soul, but from
|
|
late and long observation of the nature of evil in others:
|
|
knowledge should be his guide, not personal experience.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the ideal of a judge.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, and he will be a good man (which is my answer to
|
|
your question); for he is good who has a good soul. But the cunning
|
|
and suspicious nature of which we spoke,--he who has committed
|
|
many crimes, and fancies himself to be a master in wickedness,
|
|
when he is amongst his fellows, is wonderful in the precautions
|
|
which he takes, because he judges of them by himself: but when he gets
|
|
into the company of men of virtue, who have the experience of age,
|
|
he appears to be a fool again, owing to his unseasonable suspicions;
|
|
he cannot recognise an honest man, because he has no pattern of
|
|
honesty in himself; at the same time, as the bad are more numerous
|
|
than the good, and he meets with them oftener, he thinks himself,
|
|
and is by others thought to be, rather wise than foolish.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the good and wise judge whom we are seeking is not this man,
|
|
but the other; for vice cannot know virtue too, but a virtuous nature,
|
|
educated by time, will acquire a knowledge both of virtue and vice:
|
|
the virtuous, and not the vicious, man has wisdom--in my opinion.
|
|
|
|
And in mine also.
|
|
|
|
This is the sort of medicine, and this is the sort of law, which you
|
|
sanction in your State. They will minister to better natures,
|
|
giving health both of soul and of body; but those who are diseased
|
|
in their bodies they will leave to die, and the corrupt and incurable
|
|
souls they will put an end to themselves.
|
|
|
|
That is clearly the best thing both for the patients and for the State.
|
|
|
|
And thus our youth, having been educated only in that simple music which,
|
|
as we said, inspires temperance, will be reluctant to go to law.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the musician, who, keeping to the same track,
|
|
is content to practise the simple gymnastic,
|
|
will have nothing to do with medicine unless in some extreme case.
|
|
|
|
That I quite believe.
|
|
|
|
The very exercises and tolls which he undergoes are intended to
|
|
stimulate the spirited element of his nature, and not to increase
|
|
his strength; he will not, like common athletes, use exercise
|
|
and regimen to develop his muscles.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither are the two arts of music and gymnastic really designed,
|
|
as is often supposed, the one for the training of the soul,
|
|
the other fir the training of the body.
|
|
|
|
What then is the real object of them?
|
|
|
|
I believe, I said, that the teachers of both have in view chiefly
|
|
the improvement of the soul.
|
|
|
|
How can that be? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Did you never observe, I said, the effect on the mind itself
|
|
of exclusive devotion to gymnastic, or the opposite effect
|
|
of an exclusive devotion to music?
|
|
|
|
In what way shown? he said.
|
|
|
|
The one producing a temper of hardness and ferocity, the other
|
|
of softness and effeminacy, I replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I am quite aware that the mere athlete becomes too
|
|
much of a savage, and that the mere musician is melted and softened
|
|
beyond what is good for him.
|
|
|
|
Yet surely, I said, this ferocity only comes from spirit, which,
|
|
if rightly educated, would give courage, but, if too much intensified,
|
|
is liable to become hard and brutal.
|
|
|
|
That I quite think.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand the philosopher will have the quality of gentleness.
|
|
And this also, when too much indulged, will turn to softness, but,
|
|
if educated rightly, will be gentle and moderate.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in our opinion the guardians ought to have both these qualities?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And both should be in harmony?
|
|
|
|
Beyond question.
|
|
|
|
And the harmonious soul is both temperate and courageous?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the inharmonious is cowardly and boorish?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, when a man allows music to play upon him and to pour
|
|
into his soul through the funnel of his ears those sweet and
|
|
soft and melancholy airs of which we were just now speaking,
|
|
and his whole life is passed in warbling and the delights of song;
|
|
in the first stage of the process the passion or spirit which is
|
|
in him is tempered like iron, and made useful, instead of brittle
|
|
and useless. But, if he carries on the softening and soothing process,
|
|
in the next stage he begins to melt and waste, until he has
|
|
wasted away his spirit and cut out the sinews of his soul;
|
|
and he becomes a feeble warrior.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
If the element of spirit is naturally weak in him the change is
|
|
speedily accomplished, but if he have a good deal, then the power
|
|
of music weakening the spirit renders him excitable;--on the least
|
|
provocation he flames up at once, and is speedily extinguished;
|
|
instead of having spirit he grows irritable and passionate and is
|
|
quite impracticable.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And so in gymnastics, if a man takes violent exercise and is
|
|
a great feeder, and the reverse of a great student of music
|
|
and philosophy, at first the high condition of his body fills
|
|
him with pride and spirit, and lie becomes twice the man that he was.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And what happens? if he do nothing else, and holds no con-a verse
|
|
with the Muses, does not even that intelligence which there may be
|
|
in him, having no taste of any sort of learning or enquiry or thought
|
|
or culture, grow feeble and dull and blind, his mind never waking up
|
|
or receiving nourishment, and his senses not being purged of their mists?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And he ends by becoming a hater of philosophy, uncivilized,
|
|
never using the weapon of persuasion,--he is like a wild beast,
|
|
all violence and fierceness, and knows no other way of dealing;
|
|
and he lives in all ignorance and evil conditions, and has no sense
|
|
of propriety and grace.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And as there are two principles of human nature, one the spirited
|
|
and the other the philosophical, some God, as I should say,
|
|
has given mankind two arts answering to them (and only indirectly
|
|
to the soul and body), in order that these two principles
|
|
(like the strings of an instrument) may be relaxed or drawn tighter
|
|
until they are duly harmonised.
|
|
|
|
That appears to be the intention.
|
|
|
|
And he who mingles music with gymnastic in the fairest proportions,
|
|
and best attempers them to the soul, may be rightly called the true
|
|
musician and harmonist in a far higher sense than the tuner
|
|
of the strings.
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
And such a presiding genius will be always required in our State
|
|
if the government is to last.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will be absolutely necessary.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, are our principles of nurture and education:
|
|
Where would be the use of going into further details about the dances
|
|
of our citizens, or about their hunting and coursing, their gymnastic
|
|
and equestrian contests? For these all follow the general principle,
|
|
and having found that, we shall have no difficulty in discovering them.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that there will be no difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I said; then what is the next question? Must we not ask
|
|
who are to be rulers and who subjects?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt that the elder must rule the younger.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And that the best of these must rule.
|
|
|
|
That is also clear.
|
|
|
|
Now, are not the best husbandmen those who are most devoted
|
|
to husbandry?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And as we are to have the best of guardians for our city, must they
|
|
not be those who have most the character of guardians?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And to this end they ought to be wise and efficient, and to have
|
|
a special care of the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And a man will be most likely to care about that which he loves?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And he will be most likely to love that which he regards as having
|
|
the same interests with himself, and that of which the good or evil
|
|
fortune is supposed by him at any time most to affect his own?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then there must be a selection. Let us note among the guardians
|
|
those who in their whole life show the greatest eagerness to do
|
|
what is for the good of their country, and the greatest repugnance
|
|
to do what is against her interests.
|
|
|
|
Those are the right men.
|
|
|
|
And they will have to be watched at every age, in order that we
|
|
may see whether they preserve their resolution, and never,
|
|
under the influence either of force or enchantment, forget or cast
|
|
off their sense of duty to the State.
|
|
|
|
How cast off? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will explain to you, I replied. A resolution may go out
|
|
of a man's mind either with his will or against his will;
|
|
with his will when he gets rid of a falsehood and learns better,
|
|
against his will whenever he is deprived of a truth.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, the willing loss of a resolution;
|
|
the meaning of the unwilling I have yet to learn.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, do you not see that men are unwillingly deprived of good,
|
|
and willingly of evil? Is not to have lost the truth an evil,
|
|
and to possess the truth a good? and you would agree that to conceive
|
|
things as they are is to possess the truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied; I agree with you in thinking that mankind are
|
|
deprived of truth against their will.
|
|
|
|
And is not this involuntary deprivation caused either by theft,
|
|
or force, or enchantment?
|
|
|
|
Still, he replied, I do not understand you.
|
|
|
|
I fear that I must have been talking darkly, like the tragedians.
|
|
I only mean that some men are changed by persuasion and that others forget;
|
|
argument steals away the hearts of one class, and time of the other;
|
|
and this I call theft. Now you understand me?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Those again who are forced are those whom the violence of some pain
|
|
or grief compels to change their opinion.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, and you are quite right.
|
|
|
|
And you would also acknowledge that the enchanted are those who
|
|
change their minds either under the softer influence of pleasure,
|
|
or the sterner influence of fear?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; everything that deceives may be said to enchant.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, as I was just now saying, we must enquire who are
|
|
the best guardians of their own conviction that what they think
|
|
the interest of the State is to be the rule of their lives.
|
|
We must watch them from their youth upwards, and make them perform
|
|
actions in which they are most likely to forget or to be deceived,
|
|
and he who remembers and is not deceived is to be selected,
|
|
and he who falls in the trial is to be rejected. That will be
|
|
the way?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And there should also be toils and pains and conflicts prescribed
|
|
for them, in which they will be made to give further proof
|
|
of the same qualities.
|
|
|
|
Very right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And then, I said, we must try them with enchantments that is
|
|
the third sort of test--and see what will be their behaviour:
|
|
like those who take colts amid noise and tumult to see if they are
|
|
of a timid nature, so must we take our youth amid terrors of some kind,
|
|
and again pass them into pleasures, and prove them more thoroughly
|
|
than gold is proved in the furnace, that we may discover whether they
|
|
are armed against all enchantments, and of a noble bearing always,
|
|
good guardians of themselves and of the music which they have learned,
|
|
and retaining under all circumstances a rhythmical and harmonious nature,
|
|
such as will be most serviceable to the individual and to the State.
|
|
And he who at every age, as boy and youth and in mature life,
|
|
has come out of the trial victorious and pure, shall be appointed
|
|
a ruler and guardian of the State; he shall be honoured in life
|
|
and death, and shall receive sepulture and other memorials of honour,
|
|
the greatest that we have to give. But him who fails, we must reject.
|
|
I am inclined to think that this is the sort of way in which our rulers
|
|
and guardians should be chosen and appointed. I speak generally,
|
|
and not with any pretension to exactness.
|
|
|
|
And, speaking generally, I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
And perhaps the word `guardian' in the fullest sense ought to be
|
|
applied to this higher class only who preserve us against foreign
|
|
enemies and maintain peace among our citizens at home, that the one
|
|
may not have the will, or the others the power, to harm us.
|
|
The young men whom we before called guardians may be more properly
|
|
designated auxiliaries and supporters of the principles of the rulers.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
How then may we devise one of those needful falsehoods of which we
|
|
lately spoke--just one royal lie which may deceive the rulers,
|
|
if that be possible, and at any rate the rest of the city?
|
|
|
|
What sort of lie? he said.
|
|
|
|
Nothing new, I replied; only an old Phoenician tale of what has
|
|
often occurred before now in other places, (as the poets say,
|
|
and have made the world believe,) though not in our time,
|
|
and I do not know whether such an event could ever happen again,
|
|
or could now even be made probable, if it did.
|
|
|
|
How your words seem to hesitate on your lips!
|
|
|
|
You will not wonder, I replied, at my hesitation when you have heard.
|
|
|
|
Speak, he said, and fear not.
|
|
|
|
Well then, I will speak, although I really know not how to look
|
|
you in the face, or in what words to utter the audacious fiction,
|
|
which I propose to communicate gradually, first to the rulers,
|
|
then to the soldiers, and lastly to the people. They are to be
|
|
told that their youth was a dream, and the education and training
|
|
which they received from us, an appearance only; in reality during
|
|
all that time they were being formed and fed in the womb of the earth,
|
|
where they themselves and their arms and appurtenances were manufactured;
|
|
when they were completed, the earth, their mother, sent them up;
|
|
and so, their country being their mother and also their nurse,
|
|
they are bound to advise for her good, and to defend her against attacks,
|
|
and her citizens they are to regard as children of the earth and their
|
|
own brothers.
|
|
|
|
You had good reason, he said, to be ashamed of the lie which you
|
|
were going to tell.
|
|
|
|
True, I replied, but there is more coming; I have only told you half.
|
|
Citizens, we shall say to them in our tale, you are brothers,
|
|
yet God has framed you differently. Some of you have the power
|
|
of command, and in the composition of these he has mingled gold,
|
|
wherefore also they have the greatest honour; others he has
|
|
made of silver, to be auxillaries; others again who are to be
|
|
husbandmen and craftsmen he has composed of brass and iron;
|
|
and the species will generally be preserved in the children.
|
|
But as all are of the same original stock, a golden parent will
|
|
sometimes have a silver son, or a silver parent a golden son.
|
|
And God proclaims as a first principle to the rulers, and above all else,
|
|
that there is nothing which should so anxiously guard, or of which
|
|
they are to be such good guardians, as of the purity of the race.
|
|
They should observe what elements mingle in their off spring;
|
|
for if the son of a golden or silver parent has an admixture
|
|
of brass and iron, then nature orders a transposition of ranks,
|
|
and the eye of the ruler must not be pitiful towards the child
|
|
because he has to descend in the scale and become a husbandman
|
|
or artisan, just as there may be sons of artisans who having
|
|
an admixture of gold or silver in them are raised to honour,
|
|
and become guardians or auxiliaries. For an oracle says that when
|
|
a man of brass or iron guards the State, it will be destroyed.
|
|
Such is the tale; is there any possibility of making our citizens believe
|
|
in it?
|
|
|
|
Not in the present generation, he replied; there is no way of
|
|
accomplishing this; but their sons may be made to believe in the tale,
|
|
and their sons' sons, and posterity after them.
|
|
|
|
I see the difficulty, I replied; yet the fostering of such a belief
|
|
will make them care more for the city and for one another.
|
|
Enough, however, of the fiction, which may now fly abroad upon
|
|
the wings of rumour, while we arm our earth-born heroes, and lead
|
|
them forth under the command of their rulers. Let them look round
|
|
and select a spot whence they can best suppress insurrection,
|
|
if any prove refractory within, and also defend themselves
|
|
against enemies, who like wolves may come down on the fold
|
|
from without; there let them encamp, and when they have encamped,
|
|
let them sacrifice to the proper Gods and prepare their dwellings.
|
|
|
|
Just so, he said.
|
|
|
|
And their dwellings must be such as will shield them against the cold
|
|
of winter and the heat of summer.
|
|
|
|
I suppose that you mean houses, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but they must be the houses of soldiers, and not
|
|
of shop-keepers.
|
|
|
|
What is the difference? he said.
|
|
|
|
That I will endeavour to explain, I replied. To keep watchdogs,
|
|
who, from want of discipline or hunger, or some evil habit,
|
|
or evil habit or other, would turn upon the sheep and worry them,
|
|
and behave not like dogs but wolves, would be a foul and monstrous
|
|
thing in a shepherd?
|
|
|
|
Truly monstrous, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore every care must be taken that our auxiliaries,
|
|
being stronger than our citizens, may not grow to be too much
|
|
for them and become savage tyrants instead of friends and allies?
|
|
|
|
Yes, great care should be taken.
|
|
|
|
And would not a really good education furnish the best safeguard?
|
|
|
|
But they are well-educated already, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I cannot be so confident, my dear Glaucon, I said; I am much certain
|
|
that they ought to be, and that true education, whatever that may be,
|
|
will have the greatest tendency to civilize and humanize them
|
|
in their relations to one another, and to those who are under
|
|
their protection.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And not only their education, but their habitations, and all that
|
|
belongs to them, should be such as will neither impair their virtue
|
|
as guardians, nor tempt them to prey upon the other citizens.
|
|
Any man of sense must acknowledge that.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
Then let us consider what will be their way of life, if they are
|
|
to realize our idea of them. In the first place, none of them should
|
|
have any property of his own beyond what is absolutely necessary;
|
|
neither should they have a private house or store closed against any one
|
|
who has a mind to enter; their provisions should be only such as are
|
|
required by trained warriors, who are men of temperance and courage;
|
|
they should agree to receive from the citizens a fixed rate of pay,
|
|
enough to meet the expenses of the year and no more; and they will go
|
|
and live together like soldiers in a camp. Gold and silver we will
|
|
tell them that they have from God; the diviner metal is within them,
|
|
and they have therefore no need of the dross which is current among men,
|
|
and ought not to pollute the divine by any such earthly admixture;
|
|
for that commoner metal has been the source of many unholy deeds,
|
|
but their own is undefiled. And they alone of all the citizens
|
|
may not touch or handle silver or gold, or be under the same roof
|
|
with them, or wear them, or drink from them. And this will be
|
|
their salvation, and they will be the saviours of the State.
|
|
But should they ever acquire homes or lands or moneys of their own,
|
|
they will become housekeepers and husbandmen instead of guardians,
|
|
enemies and tyrants instead of allies of the other citizens;
|
|
hating and being hated, plotting and being plotted against,
|
|
they will pass their whole life in much greater terror
|
|
of internal than of external enemies, and the hour of ruin,
|
|
both to themselves and to the rest of the State, will be at hand.
|
|
For all which reasons may we not say that thus shall our State
|
|
be ordered, and that these shall be the regulations appointed
|
|
by us for guardians concerning their houses and all other matters?
|
|
other
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK IV
|
|
|
|
|
|
ADEIMANTUS - SOCRATES
|
|
|
|
HERE Adeimantus interposed a question: How would you answer,
|
|
Socrates, said he, if a person were to say that you are making these
|
|
people miserable, and that they are the cause of their own unhappiness;
|
|
the city in fact belongs to them, but they are none the better for it;
|
|
whereas other men acquire lands, and build large and handsome houses,
|
|
and have everything handsome about them, offering sacrifices
|
|
to the gods on their own account, and practising hospitality;
|
|
moreover, as you were saying just now, they have gold and silver,
|
|
and all that is usual among the favourites of fortune; but our poor
|
|
citizens are no better than mercenaries who are quartered in the city
|
|
and are always mounting guard?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and you may add that they are only fed, and not paid
|
|
in addition to their food, like other men; and therefore they cannot,
|
|
if they would, take a journey of pleasure; they have no money to spend
|
|
on a mistress or any other luxurious fancy, which, as the world goes,
|
|
is thought to be happiness; and many other accusations of the same
|
|
nature might be added.
|
|
|
|
But, said he, let us suppose all this to be included in the charge.
|
|
|
|
You mean to ask, I said, what will be our answer?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
If we proceed along the old path, my belief, I said, is that we
|
|
shall find the answer. And our answer will be that, even as
|
|
they are, our guardians may very likely be the happiest of men;
|
|
but that our aim in founding the State was not the disproportionate
|
|
happiness of any one class, but the greatest happiness of the whole;
|
|
we thought that in a State which is ordered with a view to
|
|
the good of the whole we should be most likely to find Justice,
|
|
and in the ill-ordered State injustice: and, having found them,
|
|
we might then decide which of the two is the happier. At present,
|
|
I take it, we are fashioning the happy State, not piecemeal,
|
|
or with a view of making a few happy citizens, but as a whole;
|
|
and by-and-by we will proceed to view the opposite kind of State.
|
|
Suppose that we were painting a statue, and some one came up to us
|
|
and said, Why do you not put the most beautiful colours on the most
|
|
beautiful parts of the body--the eyes ought to be purple, but you
|
|
have made them black--to him we might fairly answer, Sir, you would
|
|
not surely have us beautify the eyes to such a degree that they
|
|
are no longer eyes; consider rather whether, by giving this and
|
|
the other features their due proportion, we make the whole beautiful.
|
|
And so I say to you, do not compel us to assign to the guardians
|
|
a sort of happiness which will make them anything but guardians;
|
|
for we too can clothe our husbandmen in royal apparel, and set
|
|
crowns of gold on their heads, and bid them till the ground as much
|
|
as they like, and no more. Our potters also might be allowed to repose
|
|
on couches, and feast by the fireside, passing round the winecup,
|
|
while their wheel is conveniently at hand, and working at pottery
|
|
only as much as they like; in this way we might make every class
|
|
happy-and then, as you imagine, the whole State would be happy.
|
|
But do not put this idea into our heads; for, if we listen to you,
|
|
the husbandman will be no longer a husbandman, the potter will cease
|
|
to be a potter, and no one will have the character of any distinct
|
|
class in the State. Now this is not of much consequence where
|
|
the corruption of society, and pretension to be what you are not,
|
|
is confined to cobblers; but when the guardians of the laws
|
|
and of the government are only seemingly and not real guardians,
|
|
then see how they turn the State upside down; and on the other hand
|
|
they alone have the power of giving order and happiness to the State.
|
|
We mean our guardians to be true saviours and not the destroyers of
|
|
the State, whereas our opponent is thinking of peasants at a festival,
|
|
who are enjoying a life of revelry, not of citizens who are doing
|
|
their duty to the State. But, if so, we mean different things,
|
|
and he is speaking of something which is not a State. And therefore
|
|
we must consider whether in appointing our guardians we would look
|
|
to their greatest happiness individually, or whether this principle
|
|
of happiness does not rather reside in the State as a whole.
|
|
But the latter be the truth, then the guardians and auxillaries,
|
|
and all others equally with them, must be compelled or induced
|
|
to do their own work in the best way. And thus the whole
|
|
State will grow up in a noble order, and the several classes
|
|
will receive the proportion of happiness which nature assigns to
|
|
them.
|
|
|
|
I think that you are quite right.
|
|
|
|
I wonder whether you will agree with another remark which occurs
|
|
to me.
|
|
|
|
What may that be?
|
|
|
|
There seem to be two causes of the deterioration of the arts.
|
|
|
|
What are they?
|
|
|
|
Wealth, I said, and poverty.
|
|
|
|
How do they act?
|
|
|
|
The process is as follows: When a potter becomes rich, will he,
|
|
think you, any longer take the same pains with his art?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
He will grow more and more indolent and careless?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And the result will be that he becomes a worse potter?
|
|
|
|
Yes; he greatly deteriorates.
|
|
|
|
But, on the other hand, if he has no money, and cannot provide
|
|
himself tools or instruments, he will not work equally well himself,
|
|
nor will he teach his sons or apprentices to work equally well.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then, under the influence either of poverty or of wealth,
|
|
workmen and their work are equally liable to degenerate?
|
|
|
|
That is evident.
|
|
|
|
Here, then, is a discovery of new evils, I said, against which the
|
|
guardians will have to watch, or they will creep into the city unobserved.
|
|
|
|
What evils?
|
|
|
|
Wealth, I said, and poverty; the one is the parent of luxury and indolence,
|
|
and the other of meanness and viciousness, and both of discontent.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he replied; but still I should like to know,
|
|
Socrates, how our city will be able to go to war, especially against
|
|
an enemy who is rich and powerful, if deprived of the sinews of war.
|
|
|
|
There would certainly be a difficulty, I replied, in going to war
|
|
with one such enemy; but there is no difficulty where there
|
|
are two of them.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, I said, if we have to fight, our side will
|
|
be trained warriors fighting against an army of rich men.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And do you not suppose, Adeimantus, that a
|
|
single boxer who was perfect in his art would
|
|
easily be a match for two stout and well-to-do gentlemen who were not boxers?
|
|
|
|
Hardly, if they came upon him at once.
|
|
|
|
What, not, I said, if he were able to run away and then turn and strike
|
|
at the one who first came up? And supposing he were to do this
|
|
several times under the heat of a scorching sun, might he not,
|
|
being an expert, overturn more than one stout personage?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, there would be nothing wonderful in that.
|
|
|
|
And yet rich men probably have a greater superiority in the science
|
|
and practice of boxing than they have in military qualities.
|
|
|
|
Likely enough.
|
|
|
|
Then we may assume that our athletes will be able to fight
|
|
with two or three times their own number?
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, for I think you right.
|
|
|
|
And suppose that, before engaging, our citizens send an embassy
|
|
to one of the two cities, telling them what is the truth:
|
|
Silver and gold we neither have nor are permitted to have, but you may;
|
|
do you therefore come and help us in war, of and take the spoils
|
|
of the other city: Who, on hearing these words, would choose to fight
|
|
against lean wiry dogs, rather th than, with the dogs on their side,
|
|
against fat and tender sheep?
|
|
|
|
That is not likely; and yet there might be a danger to the poor
|
|
State if the wealth of many States were to be gathered into one.
|
|
|
|
But how simple of you to use the term State at all of any but our own!
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
You ought to speak of other States in the plural number;
|
|
not one of them is a city, but many cities, as they say in the game.
|
|
For indeed any city, however small, is in fact divided into two,
|
|
one the city of the poor, the other of the rich; these are at war
|
|
with one another; and in either there are many smaller divisions,
|
|
and you would be altogether beside the mark if you treated them
|
|
all as a single State. But if you deal with them as many,
|
|
and give the wealth or power or persons of the one to the others,
|
|
you will always have a great many friends and not many enemies.
|
|
And your State, while the wise order which has now been prescribed
|
|
continues to prevail in her, will be the greatest of States,
|
|
I do not mean to say in reputation or appearance, but in deed
|
|
and truth, though she number not more than a thousand defenders.
|
|
A single State which is her equal you will hardly find, either among
|
|
Hellenes or barbarians, though many that appear to be as great and many
|
|
times greater.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what, I said, will be the best limit for our rulers to fix
|
|
when they are considering the size of the State and the amount
|
|
of territory which they are to include, and beyond which they will not go?
|
|
|
|
What limit would you propose?
|
|
|
|
I would allow the State to increase so far as is consistent
|
|
with unity; that, I think, is the proper limit.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Here then, I said, is another order which will have to be conveyed
|
|
to our guardians: Let our city be accounted neither large nor small,
|
|
but one and self-sufficing.
|
|
|
|
And surely, said he, this is not a very severe order which we
|
|
impose upon them.
|
|
|
|
And the other, said I, of which we were speaking before is lighter still,
|
|
-I mean the duty of degrading the offspring of the guardians
|
|
when inferior, and of elevating into the rank of guardians
|
|
the offspring of the lower classes, when naturally superior.
|
|
The intention was, that, in the case of the citizens generally,
|
|
each individual should be put to the use for which nature which
|
|
nature intended him, one to one work, and then every man would
|
|
do his own business, and be one and not many; and so the whole
|
|
city would be one and not many.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is not so difficult.
|
|
|
|
The regulations which we are prescribing, my good Adeimantus, are not,
|
|
as might be supposed, a number of great principles, but trifles all,
|
|
if care be taken, as the saying is, of the one great thing,--
|
|
a thing, however, which I would rather call, not great, but sufficient
|
|
for our purpose.
|
|
|
|
What may that be? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Education, I said, and nurture: If our citizens are well educated,
|
|
and grow into sensible men, they will easily see their way through
|
|
all these, as well as other matters which I omit; such, for example,
|
|
as marriage, the possession of women and the procreation of children,
|
|
which will all follow the general principle that friends have all things
|
|
in common, as the proverb says.
|
|
|
|
That will be the best way of settling them.
|
|
|
|
Also, I said, the State, if once started well, moves with accumulating
|
|
force like a wheel. For good nurture and education implant
|
|
good constitutions, and these good constitutions taking root
|
|
in a good education improve more and more, and this improvement
|
|
affects the breed in man as in other animals.
|
|
|
|
Very possibly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then to sum up: This is the point to which, above all, the attention
|
|
of our rulers should be directed,--that music and gymnastic
|
|
be preserved in their original form, and no innovation made.
|
|
They must do their utmost to maintain them intact. And when any
|
|
one says that mankind most regard
|
|
|
|
The newest song which the singers have,
|
|
|
|
they will be afraid that he may be praising, not new songs,
|
|
but a new kind of song; and this ought not to be praised,
|
|
or conceived to be the meaning of the poet; for any musical innovation
|
|
is full of danger to the whole State, and ought to be prohibited.
|
|
So Damon tells me, and I can quite believe him;-he says that when modes
|
|
of music change, of the State always change with them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Adeimantus; and you may add my suffrage to Damon's
|
|
and your own.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, our guardians must lay the foundations of their
|
|
fortress in music?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the lawlessness of which you speak too easily steals in.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, in the form of amusement; and at first sight it
|
|
appears harmless.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said, and there is no harm; were it not that little by
|
|
little this spirit of licence, finding a home, imperceptibly penetrates
|
|
into manners and customs; whence, issuing with greater force,
|
|
it invades contracts between man and man, and from contracts goes
|
|
on to laws and constitutions, in utter recklessness, ending at last,
|
|
Socrates, by an overthrow of all rights, private as well as public.
|
|
|
|
Is that true? I said.
|
|
|
|
That is my belief, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then, as I was saying, our youth should be trained
|
|
from the first in a stricter system, for if amusements
|
|
become lawless, and the youths themselves become lawless,
|
|
they can never grow up into well-conducted and virtuous citizens.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when they have made a good beginning in play, and by the help
|
|
of music have gained the habit of good order, then this habit of order,
|
|
in a manner how unlike the lawless play of the others! will accompany
|
|
them in all their actions and be a principle of growth to them,
|
|
and if there be any fallen places a principle in the State will raise
|
|
them up again.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus educated, they will invent for themselves any lesser rules
|
|
which their predecessors have altogether neglected.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean such things as these:--when the young are to be silent
|
|
before their elders; how they are to show respect to them
|
|
by standing and making them sit; what honour is due to parents;
|
|
what garments or shoes are to be worn; the mode of dressing the hair;
|
|
deportment and manners in general. You would agree with me?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But there is, I think, small wisdom in legislating about such matters,--
|
|
I doubt if it is ever done; nor are any precise written enactments
|
|
about them likely to be lasting.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
It would seem, Adeimantus, that the direction in which education
|
|
starts a man, will determine his future life. Does not like always
|
|
attract like?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Until some one rare and grand result is reached which may be good,
|
|
and may be the reverse of good?
|
|
|
|
That is not to be denied.
|
|
|
|
And for this reason, I said, I shall not attempt to legislate
|
|
further about them.
|
|
|
|
Naturally enough, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, and about the business of the agora, dealings and the ordinary
|
|
dealings between man and man, or again about agreements with the
|
|
commencement with artisans; about insult and injury, of the commencement
|
|
of actions, and the appointment of juries, what would you say? there
|
|
may also arise questions about any impositions and extractions
|
|
of market and harbour dues which may be required, and in general
|
|
about the regulations of markets, police, harbours, and the like.
|
|
But, oh heavens! shall we condescend to legislate on any of these particulars?
|
|
|
|
I think, he said, that there is no need to impose laws about them
|
|
on good men; what regulations are necessary they will find out soon
|
|
enough for themselves.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my friend, if God will only preserve to them the laws
|
|
which we have given them.
|
|
|
|
And without divine help, said Adeimantus, they will go on for
|
|
ever making and mending their laws and their lives in the hope
|
|
of attaining perfection.
|
|
|
|
You would compare them, I said, to those invalids who, having no
|
|
self-restraint, will not leave off their habits of intemperance?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and what a delightful life they lead! they are always
|
|
doctoring and increasing and complicating their disorders,
|
|
and always fancying that they will be cured by any nostrum
|
|
which anybody advises them to try.
|
|
|
|
Such cases are very common, he said, with invalids of this sort.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; and the charming thing is that they deem him
|
|
their worst enemy who tells them the truth, which is simply that,
|
|
unless they give up eating and drinking and wenching and idling,
|
|
neither drug nor cautery nor spell nor amulet nor any other remedy
|
|
will avail.
|
|
|
|
Charming! he replied. I see nothing charming in going into a passion
|
|
with a man who tells you what is right.
|
|
|
|
These gentlemen, I said, do not seem to be in your good graces.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor would you praise the behaviour of States which act like the men whom
|
|
I was just now describing. For are there not ill-ordered States in which
|
|
the citizens are forbidden under pain of death to alter the constitution;
|
|
and yet he who most sweetly courts those who live under this regime
|
|
and indulges them and fawns upon them and is skilful in anticipating
|
|
and gratifying their humours is held to be a great and good statesman--
|
|
do not these States resemble the persons whom I was describing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the States are as bad as the men; and I am very far
|
|
from praising them.
|
|
|
|
But do you not admire, I said, the coolness and dexterity
|
|
of these ready ministers of political corruption?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I do; but not of all of them, for there are some whom
|
|
the applause of the multitude has deluded into the belief that they
|
|
are really statesmen, and these are not much to be admired.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? I said; you should have more feeling for them.
|
|
When a man cannot measure, and a great many others who cannot measure
|
|
declare that he is four cubits high, can he help believing what
|
|
they say?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, certainly not in that case.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, do not be angry with them; for are they not as good as
|
|
a play, trying their hand at paltry reforms such as I was describing;
|
|
they are always fancying that by legislation they will make
|
|
an end of frauds in contracts, and the other rascalities which I
|
|
was mentioning, not knowing that they are in reality cutting off
|
|
the heads of a hydra?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is just what they are doing.
|
|
|
|
I conceive, I said, that the true legislator will not trouble
|
|
himself with this class of enactments whether concerning laws or
|
|
the constitution either in an ill-ordered or in a well-ordered State;
|
|
for in the former they are quite useless, and in the latter
|
|
there will be no difficulty in devising them; and many of them
|
|
will naturally flow out of our previous regulations.
|
|
|
|
What, then, he said, is still remaining to us of the work of legislation?
|
|
|
|
Nothing to us, I replied; but to Apollo, the God of Delphi,
|
|
there remains the ordering of the greatest and noblest and chiefest
|
|
things of all.
|
|
|
|
Which are they? he said.
|
|
|
|
The institution of temples and sacrifices, and the entire service
|
|
of gods, demigods, and heroes; also the ordering of the repositories
|
|
of the dead, and the rites which have to be observed by him who would
|
|
propitiate the inhabitants of the world below. These are matters
|
|
of which we are ignorant ourselves, and as founders of a city we should
|
|
be unwise in trusting them to any interpreter but our ancestral deity.
|
|
He is the god who sits in the center, on the navel of the earth,
|
|
and he is the interpreter of religion to all mankind.
|
|
|
|
You are right, and we will do as you propose.
|
|
|
|
But where, amid all this, is justice? son of Ariston, tell me where.
|
|
Now that our city has been made habitable, light a candle and search,
|
|
and get your brother and Polemarchus and the rest of our friends to help,
|
|
and let us see where in it we can discover justice and where injustice,
|
|
and in what they differ from one another, and which of them the man
|
|
who would be happy should have for his portion, whether seen or unseen
|
|
by gods and men.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
Nonsense, said Glaucon: did you not promise to search yourself,
|
|
saying that for you not to help justice in her need would be
|
|
an impiety?
|
|
|
|
I do not deny that I said so, and as you remind me, I will be
|
|
as good as my word; but you must join.
|
|
|
|
We will, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, then, I hope to make the discovery in this way: I mean
|
|
to begin with the assumption that our State, if rightly ordered,
|
|
is perfect.
|
|
|
|
That is most certain.
|
|
|
|
And being perfect, is therefore wise and valiant and temperate
|
|
and just.
|
|
|
|
That is likewise clear.
|
|
|
|
And whichever of these qualities we find in the State, the one
|
|
which is not found will be the residue?
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
If there were four things, and we were searching for one of them,
|
|
wherever it might be, the one sought for might be known to us
|
|
from the first, and there would be no further trouble; or we
|
|
might know the other three first, and then the fourth would clearly
|
|
be the one left.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is not a similar method to be pursued about the virtues,
|
|
which are also four in number?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
First among the virtues found in the State, wisdom comes into view,
|
|
and in this I detect a certain peculiarity.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The State which we have been describing is said to be wise as being
|
|
good in counsel?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And good counsel is clearly a kind of knowledge, for not by ignorance,
|
|
but by knowledge, do men counsel well?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the kinds of knowledge in a State are many and diverse?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
There is the knowledge of the carpenter; but is that the sort
|
|
of knowledge which gives a city the title of wise and good in counsel?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not; that would only give a city the reputation of skill
|
|
in carpentering.
|
|
|
|
Then a city is not to be called wise because possessing a knowledge
|
|
which counsels for the best about wooden implements?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Nor by reason of a knowledge which advises about brazen pots, I said,
|
|
nor as possessing any other similar knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Not by reason of any of them, he said.
|
|
|
|
Nor yet by reason of a knowledge which cultivates the earth;
|
|
that would give the city the name of agricultural?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and is there any knowledge in our recently founded
|
|
State among any of the citizens which advises, not about any
|
|
particular thing in the State, but about the whole, and considers
|
|
how a State can best deal with itself and with other States?
|
|
|
|
There certainly is.
|
|
|
|
And what is knowledge, and among whom is it found? I asked.
|
|
|
|
It is the knowledge of the guardians, he replied, and found among
|
|
those whom we were just now describing as perfect guardians.
|
|
|
|
And what is the name which the city derives from the possession
|
|
of this sort of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
The name of good in counsel and truly wise.
|
|
|
|
And will there be in our city more of these true guardians
|
|
or more smiths?
|
|
|
|
The smiths, he replied, will be far more numerous.
|
|
|
|
Will not the guardians be the smallest of all the classes who receive
|
|
a name from the profession of some kind of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Much the smallest.
|
|
|
|
And so by reason of the smallest part or class, and of the knowledge
|
|
which resides in this presiding and ruling part of itself,
|
|
the whole State, being thus constituted according to nature, will be wise;
|
|
and this, which has the only knowledge worthy to be called wisdom,
|
|
has been ordained by nature to be of all classes the least.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
Thus, then, I said, the nature and place in the State of one
|
|
of the four virtues has somehow or other been discovered.
|
|
|
|
And, in my humble opinion, very satisfactorily discovered,
|
|
he replied.
|
|
|
|
Again, I said, there is no difficulty in seeing the nature of courage;
|
|
and in what part that quality resides which gives the name of
|
|
courageous to the State.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, every one who calls any State courageous or cowardly,
|
|
will be thinking of the part which fights and goes out to war on
|
|
the State's behalf.
|
|
|
|
No one, he replied, would ever think of any other.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
The rest of the citizens may be courageous or may be cowardly but
|
|
their courage or cowardice will not, as I conceive, have the effect
|
|
of making the city either the one or the other.
|
|
|
|
The city will be courageous in virtue of a portion of herself
|
|
which preserves under all circumstances that opinion about the nature
|
|
of things to be feared and not to be feared in which our legislator
|
|
educated them; and this is what you term courage.
|
|
|
|
I should like to hear what you are saying once more, for I do not
|
|
think that I perfectly understand you.
|
|
|
|
I mean that courage is a kind of salvation.
|
|
|
|
Salvation of what?
|
|
|
|
Of the opinion respecting things to be feared, what they are
|
|
and of what nature, which the law implants through education;
|
|
and I mean by the words `under all circumstances' to intimate that
|
|
in pleasure or in pain, or under the influence of desire or fear,
|
|
a man preserves, and does not lose this opinion. Shall I give you
|
|
an illustration?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
You know, I said, that dyers, when they want to dye wool for making
|
|
the true sea-purple, begin by selecting their white colour first;
|
|
this they prepare and dress with much care and pains, in order
|
|
that the white ground may take the purple hue in full perfection.
|
|
The dyeing then proceeds; and whatever is dyed in this manner becomes
|
|
a fast colour, and no washing either with lyes or without them can
|
|
take away the bloom. But, when the ground has not been duly prepared,
|
|
you will have noticed how poor is the look either of purple or of any
|
|
other colour.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I know that they have a washed-out and ridiculous appearance.
|
|
|
|
Then now, I said, you will understand what our object was in
|
|
selecting our soldiers, and educating them in music and gymnastic;
|
|
we were contriving influences which would prepare them to take the dye
|
|
of the laws in perfection, and the colour of their opinion about dangers
|
|
and of every other opinion was to be indelibly fixed by their nurture
|
|
and training, not to be washed away by such potent lyes as pleasure--
|
|
mightier agent far in washing the soul than any soda or lye;
|
|
or by sorrow, fear, and desire, the mightiest of all other solvents.
|
|
And this sort of universal saving power of true opinion in conformity
|
|
with law about real and false dangers I call and maintain to be courage,
|
|
unless you disagree.
|
|
|
|
But I agree, he replied; for I suppose that you mean to exclude mere
|
|
uninstructed courage, such as that of a wild beast or of a slave--
|
|
this, in your opinion, is not the courage which the law ordains,
|
|
and ought to have another name.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then I may infer courage to be such as you describe?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, said I, you may, and if you add the words `of a citizen,'
|
|
you will not be far wrong;--hereafter, if you like, we will carry
|
|
the examination further, but at present we are we w seeking not
|
|
for courage but justice; and for the purpose of our enquiry we have
|
|
said enough.
|
|
|
|
You are right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Two virtues remain to be discovered in the State-first temperance,
|
|
and then justice which is the end of our search.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, can we find justice without troubling ourselves about temperance?
|
|
|
|
I do not know how that can be accomplished, he said, nor do I desire
|
|
that justice should be brought to light and temperance lost sight of;
|
|
and therefore I wish that you would do me the favour of considering
|
|
temperance first.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I replied, I should not be justified in refusing
|
|
your request.
|
|
|
|
Then consider, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied; I will; and as far as I can at present see,
|
|
the virtue of temperance has more of the nature of harmony
|
|
and symphony than the preceding.
|
|
|
|
How so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Temperance, I replied, is the ordering or controlling of certain
|
|
pleasures and desires; this is curiously enough implied in the saying
|
|
of `a man being his own master' and other traces of the same notion
|
|
may be found in language.
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is something ridiculous in the expression `master of himself';
|
|
for the master is also the servant and the servant the master;
|
|
and in all these modes of speaking the same person is denoted.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
The meaning is, I believe, that in the human soul there is a better
|
|
and also a worse principle; and when the better has the worse
|
|
under control, then a man is said to be master of himself;
|
|
and this is a term of praise: but when, owing to evil education
|
|
or association, the better principle, which is also the smaller,
|
|
is overwhelmed by the greater mass of the worse--in this case he is
|
|
blamed and is called the slave of self and unprincipled.
|
|
|
|
Yes, there is reason in that.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, look at our newly created State, and there you
|
|
will find one of these two conditions realised; for the State,
|
|
as you will acknowledge, may be justly called master of itself,
|
|
if the words `temperance' and `self-mastery' truly express the rule
|
|
of the better part over the worse.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I see that what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
Let me further note that the manifold and complex pleasures
|
|
and desires and pains are generally found in children and women
|
|
and servants, and in the freemen so called who are of the lowest
|
|
and more numerous class.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the simple and moderate desires which follow reason,
|
|
and are under the guidance of mind and true opinion, are to be found
|
|
only in a few, and those the best born and best educated.
|
|
|
|
Very true. These two, as you may perceive, have a place in our State;
|
|
and the meaner desires of the are held down by the virtuous desires
|
|
and wisdom of the few.
|
|
|
|
That I perceive, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if there be any city which may be described as master of its
|
|
own pleasures and desires, and master of itself, ours may claim
|
|
such a designation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
It may also be called temperate, and for the same reasons?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And if there be any State in which rulers and subjects will be agreed
|
|
as to the question who are to rule, that again will be our State?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And the citizens being thus agreed among themselves, in which class
|
|
will temperance be found--in the rulers or in the subjects?
|
|
|
|
In both, as I should imagine, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Do you observe that we were not far wrong in our guess that temperance
|
|
was a sort of harmony?
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, because temperance is unlike courage and wisdom, each of
|
|
which resides in a part only, the one making the State wise and
|
|
the other valiant; not so temperance, which extends to the whole,
|
|
and runs through all the notes of the scale, and produces a harmony
|
|
of the weaker and the stronger and the middle class, whether you
|
|
suppose them to be stronger or weaker in wisdom or power or numbers
|
|
or wealth, or anything else. Most truly then may we deem temperance
|
|
to be the agreement of the naturally superior and inferior,
|
|
as to the right to rule of either, both in states and individuals.
|
|
|
|
I entirely agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And so, I said, we may consider three out of the four virtues
|
|
to have been discovered in our State. The last of those qualities
|
|
which make a state virtuous must be justice, if we only knew what that was.
|
|
|
|
The inference is obvious.
|
|
|
|
The time then has arrived, Glaucon, when, like huntsmen, we should
|
|
surround the cover, and look sharp that justice does not steal away,
|
|
and pass out of sight and escape us; for beyond a doubt she is somewhere
|
|
in this country: watch therefore and strive to catch a sight of her,
|
|
and if you see her first, let me know.
|
|
|
|
Would that I could! but you should regard me rather as a follower
|
|
who has just eyes enough to, see what you show him--that is about
|
|
as much as I am good for.
|
|
|
|
Offer up a prayer with me and follow.
|
|
|
|
I will, but you must show me the way.
|
|
|
|
Here is no path, I said, and the wood is dark and perplexing;
|
|
still we must push on.
|
|
|
|
Let us push on.
|
|
|
|
Here I saw something: Halloo! I said, I begin to perceive a track,
|
|
and I believe that the quarry will not escape.
|
|
|
|
Good news, he said.
|
|
|
|
Truly, I said, we are stupid fellows.
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, my good sir, at the beginning of our enquiry, ages ago,
|
|
there was justice tumbling out at our feet, and we never saw her;
|
|
nothing could be more ridiculous. Like people who go about looking
|
|
for what they have in their hands--that was the way with us--we looked
|
|
not at what we were seeking, but at what was far off in the distance;
|
|
and therefore, I suppose, we missed her.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that in reality for a long time past we have been
|
|
talking of justice, and have failed to recognise her.
|
|
|
|
I grow impatient at the length of your exordium.
|
|
|
|
Well then, tell me, I said, whether I am right or not:
|
|
You remember the original principle which we were always laying
|
|
down at the foundation of the State, that one man should practise
|
|
one thing only, the thing to which his nature was best adapted;--
|
|
now justice is this principle or a part of it.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we often said that one man should do one thing only.
|
|
|
|
Further, we affirmed that justice was doing one's own business,
|
|
and not being a busybody; we said so again and again, and many others
|
|
have said the same to us.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we said so.
|
|
|
|
Then to do one's own business in a certain way may be assumed
|
|
to be justice. Can you tell me whence I derive this inference?
|
|
|
|
I cannot, but I should like to be told.
|
|
|
|
Because I think that this is the only virtue which remains
|
|
in the State when the other virtues of temperance and courage
|
|
and wisdom are abstracted; and, that this is the ultimate cause
|
|
and condition of the existence of all of them, and while remaining
|
|
in them is also their preservative; and we were saying that if
|
|
the three were discovered by us, justice would be the fourth or remaining one.
|
|
|
|
That follows of necessity.
|
|
|
|
If we are asked to determine which of these four qualities
|
|
by its presence contributes most to the excellence of the State,
|
|
whether the agreement of rulers and subjects, or the preservation
|
|
in the soldiers of the opinion which the law ordains about the true
|
|
nature of dangers, or wisdom and watchfulness in the rulers, or whether
|
|
this other which I am mentioning, and which is found in children
|
|
and women, slave and freeman, artisan, ruler, subject,--the quality,
|
|
I mean, of every one doing his own work, and not being a busybody,
|
|
would claim the palm--the question is not so easily answered.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied, there would be a difficulty in saying which.
|
|
|
|
Then the power of each individual in the State to do his own work appears
|
|
to compete with the other political virtues, wisdom, temperance, courage.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the virtue which enters into this competition is justice?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Let us look at the question from another point of view:
|
|
Are not the rulers in a State those to whom you would entrust
|
|
the office of determining suits at law?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And are suits decided on any other ground but that a man may neither
|
|
take what is another's, nor be deprived of what is his own?
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is their principle.
|
|
|
|
Which is a just principle?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then on this view also justice will be admitted to be the having
|
|
and doing what is a man's own, and belongs to him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Think, now, and say whether you agree with me or not. Suppose a carpenter
|
|
to be doing the business of a cobbler, or a cobbler of a carpenter;
|
|
and suppose them to exchange their implements or their duties,
|
|
or the same person to be doing the work of both, or whatever be the change;
|
|
do you think that any great harm would result to the State?
|
|
|
|
Not much.
|
|
|
|
But when the cobbler or any other man whom nature designed
|
|
to be a trader, having his heart lifted up by wealth or strength
|
|
or the number of his followers, or any like advantage,
|
|
attempts to force his way into the class of warriors, or a warrior
|
|
into that of legislators and guardians, for which he is unfitted,
|
|
and either to take the implements or the duties of the other;
|
|
or when one man is trader, legislator, and warrior all in one,
|
|
then I think you will agree with me in saying that this interchange
|
|
and this meddling of one with another is the ruin of the State.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
Seeing then, I said, that there are three distinct classes,
|
|
any meddling of one with another, or the change of one into another,
|
|
is the greatest harm to the State, and may be most justly termed
|
|
evil-doing?
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
And the greatest degree of evil-doing to one's own city would
|
|
be termed by you injustice?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
This then is injustice; and on the other hand when the trader,
|
|
the auxiliary, and the guardian each do their own business,
|
|
that is justice, and will make the city just.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you.
|
|
|
|
We will not, I said, be over-positive as yet; but if, on trial,
|
|
this conception of justice be verified in the individual as well
|
|
as in the State, there will be no longer any room for doubt;
|
|
if it be not verified, we must have a fresh enquiry. First let us
|
|
complete the old investigation, which we began, as you remember,
|
|
under the impression that, if we could previously examine justice
|
|
on the larger scale, there would be less difficulty in discerning
|
|
her in the individual. That larger example appeared to be the State,
|
|
and accordingly we constructed as good a one as we could, knowing well
|
|
that in the good State justice would be found. Let the discovery
|
|
which we made be now applied to the individual--if they agree,
|
|
we shall be satisfied; or, if there be a difference in the individual,
|
|
we will come back to the State and have another trial of the theory.
|
|
The friction of the two when rubbed together may possibly strike
|
|
a light in which justice will shine forth, and the vision which is
|
|
then revealed we will fix in our souls.
|
|
|
|
That will be in regular course; let us do as you say.
|
|
|
|
I proceeded to ask: When two things, a greater and less,
|
|
are called by the same name, are they like or unlike in so far
|
|
as they are called the same?
|
|
|
|
Like, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The just man then, if we regard the idea of justice only,
|
|
will be like the just State?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And a State was thought by us to be just when the three classes
|
|
in the State severally did their own business; and also thought
|
|
to be temperate and valiant and wise by reason of certain other
|
|
affections and qualities of these same classes?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so of the individual; we may assume that he has the same
|
|
three principles in his own soul which are found in the State;
|
|
and he may be rightly described in the same terms, because he is
|
|
affected in the same manner?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Once more then, O my friend, we have alighted upon an easy question--
|
|
whether the soul has these three principles or not?
|
|
|
|
An easy question! Nay, rather, Socrates, the proverb holds
|
|
that hard is the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; and I do not think that the method which we are
|
|
employing is at all adequate to the accurate solution of this question;
|
|
the true method is another and a longer one. Still we may arrive
|
|
at a solution not below the level of the previous enquiry.
|
|
|
|
May we not be satisfied with that? he said;--under the circumstances,
|
|
I am quite content.
|
|
|
|
I too, I replied, shall be extremely well satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Then faint not in pursuing the speculation, he said.
|
|
|
|
Must we not acknowledge, I said, that in each of us there are
|
|
the same principles and habits which there are in the State;
|
|
and that from the individual they pass into the State?--how else can
|
|
they come there? Take the quality of passion or spirit;--it would
|
|
be ridiculous to imagine that this quality, when found in States,
|
|
is not derived from the individuals who are supposed to possess it,
|
|
e.g. the Thracians, Scythians, and in general the northern nations;
|
|
and the same may be said of the love of knowledge, which is the special
|
|
characteristic of our part of the world, or of the love of money,
|
|
which may, with equal truth, be attributed to the Phoenicians
|
|
and Egyptians.
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty in understanding this.
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
But the question is not quite so easy when we proceed to ask
|
|
whether these principles are three or one; whether, that is to say,
|
|
we learn with one part of our nature, are angry with another,
|
|
and with a third part desire the satisfaction of our natural appetites;
|
|
or whether the whole soul comes into play in each sort of action--
|
|
to determine that is the difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; there lies the difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now try and determine whether they are the same or different.
|
|
|
|
How can we? he asked.
|
|
|
|
I replied as follows: The same thing clearly cannot act or be
|
|
acted upon in the same part or in relation to the same thing
|
|
at the same time, in contrary ways; and therefore whenever
|
|
this contradiction occurs in things apparently the same,
|
|
we know that they are really not the same, but different.
|
|
|
|
Good.
|
|
|
|
For example, I said, can the same thing be at rest and in motion
|
|
at the same time in the same part?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Still, I said, let us have a more precise statement of terms,
|
|
lest we should hereafter fall out by the way. Imagine the case
|
|
of a man who is standing and also moving his hands and his head,
|
|
and suppose a person to say that one and the same person is in motion
|
|
and at rest at the same moment-to such a mode of speech we should object,
|
|
and should rather say that one part of him is in motion while another
|
|
is at rest.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And suppose the objector to refine still further, and to draw
|
|
the nice distinction that not only parts of tops, but whole tops,
|
|
when they spin round with their pegs fixed on the spot, are at
|
|
rest and in motion at the same time (and he may say the same
|
|
of anything which revolves in the same spot), his objection would
|
|
not be admitted by us, because in such cases things are not at rest
|
|
and in motion in the same parts of themselves; we should rather say
|
|
that they have both an axis and a circumference, and that the axis
|
|
stands still, for there is no deviation from the perpendicular;
|
|
and that the circumference goes round. But if, while revolving,
|
|
the axis inclines either to the right or left, forwards or backwards,
|
|
then in no point of view can they be at rest.
|
|
|
|
That is the correct mode of describing them, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then none of these objections will confuse us, or incline us to believe
|
|
that the same thing at the same time, in the same part or in relation
|
|
to the same thing, can act or be acted upon in contrary ways.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, according to my way of thinking.
|
|
|
|
Yet, I said, that we may not be compelled to examine all such objections,
|
|
and prove at length that they are untrue, let us assume their absurdity,
|
|
and go forward on the understanding that hereafter, if this assumption
|
|
turn out to be untrue, all the consequences which follow shall be withdrawn.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that will be the best way.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, would you not allow that assent and dissent,
|
|
desire and aversion, attraction and repulsion, are all of
|
|
them opposites, whether they are regarded as active or passive
|
|
(for that makes no difference in the fact of their opposition)?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, they are opposites.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and hunger and thirst, and the desires in general,
|
|
and again willing and wishing,--all these you would refer to the classes
|
|
already mentioned. You would say--would you not?--that the soul
|
|
of him who desires is seeking after the object of his desires;
|
|
or that he is drawing to himself the thing which he wishes to possess:
|
|
or again, when a person wants anything to be given him, his mind,
|
|
longing for the realisation of his desires, intimates his wish to have it
|
|
by a nod of assent, as if he had been asked a question?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what would you say of unwillingness and dislike and the absence
|
|
of desire; should not these be referred to the opposite class
|
|
of repulsion and rejection?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Admitting this to be true of desire generally, let us suppose
|
|
a particular class of desires, and out of these we will select hunger
|
|
and thirst, as they are termed, which are the most obvious of them?
|
|
|
|
Let us take that class, he said.
|
|
|
|
The object of one is food, and of the other drink?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And here comes the point: is not thirst the desire which the soul has
|
|
of drink, and of drink only; not of drink qualified by anything else;
|
|
for example, warm or cold, or much or little, or, in a word,
|
|
drink of any particular sort: but if the thirst be accompanied by heat,
|
|
then the desire is of cold drink; or, if accompanied by cold,
|
|
then of warm drink; or, if the thirst be excessive, then the drink
|
|
which is desired will be excessive; or, if not great, the quantity
|
|
of drink will also be small: but thirst pure and simple will desire
|
|
drink pure and simple, which is the natural satisfaction of thirst,
|
|
as food is of hunger?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; the simple desire is, as you say, in every case
|
|
of the simple object, and the qualified desire of the qualified object.
|
|
|
|
But here a confusion may arise; and I should wish to guard against
|
|
an opponent starting up and saying that no man desires drink only,
|
|
but good drink, or food only, but good food; for good is the universal
|
|
object of desire, and thirst being a desire, will necessarily be
|
|
thirst after good drink; and the same is true of every other desire.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, the opponent might have something to say.
|
|
|
|
Nevertheless I should still maintain, that of relatives
|
|
some have a quality attached to either term of the relation;
|
|
others are simple and have their correlatives simple.
|
|
|
|
I do not know what you mean.
|
|
|
|
Well, you know of course that the greater is relative to the less?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the much greater to the much less?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the sometime greater to the sometime less, and the greater
|
|
that is to be to the less that is to be?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so of more and less, and of other correlative terms, such as
|
|
the double and the half, or again, the heavier and the lighter,
|
|
the swifter and the slower; and of hot and cold, and of any
|
|
other relatives;--is not this true of all of them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And does not the same principle hold in the sciences? The object
|
|
of science is knowledge (assuming that to be the true definition),
|
|
but the object of a particular science is a particular kind of knowledge;
|
|
I mean, for example, that the science of house-building is a kind
|
|
of knowledge which is defined and distinguished from other kinds
|
|
and is therefore termed architecture.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Because it has a particular quality which no other has?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And it has this particular quality because it has an object
|
|
of a particular kind; and this is true of the other arts and sciences?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Now, then, if I have made myself clear, you will understand my
|
|
original meaning in what I said about relatives. My meaning was,
|
|
that if one term of a relation is taken alone, the other is
|
|
taken alone; if one term is qualified, the other is also qualified.
|
|
I do not mean to say that relatives may not be disparate, or that
|
|
the science of health is healthy, or of disease necessarily diseased,
|
|
or that the sciences of good and evil are therefore good and evil;
|
|
but only that, when the term science is no longer used absolutely,
|
|
but has a qualified object which in this case is the nature of health
|
|
and disease, it becomes defined, and is hence called not merely science,
|
|
but the science of medicine.
|
|
|
|
I quite understand, and I think as you do.
|
|
|
|
Would you not say that thirst is one of these essentially relative terms,
|
|
having clearly a relation--
|
|
|
|
Yes, thirst is relative to drink.
|
|
|
|
And a certain kind of thirst is relative to a certain kind of drink;
|
|
but thirst taken alone is neither of much nor little, nor of good nor bad,
|
|
nor of any particular kind of drink, but of drink only?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the soul of the thirsty one, in so far as he is thirsty,
|
|
desires only drink; for this he yearns and tries to obtain it?
|
|
|
|
That is plain.
|
|
|
|
And if you suppose something which pulls a thirsty soul away
|
|
from drink, that must be different from the thirsty principle
|
|
which draws him like a beast to drink; for, as we were saying,
|
|
the same thing cannot at the same time with the same part of itself
|
|
act in contrary ways about the same.
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
No more than you can say that the hands of the archer push and pull
|
|
the bow at the same time, but what you say is that one hand pushes
|
|
and the other pulls.
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And might a man be thirsty, and yet unwilling to drink?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, it constantly happens.
|
|
|
|
And in such a case what is one to say? Would you not say that there
|
|
was something in the soul bidding a man to drink, and something
|
|
else forbidding him, which is other and stronger than the principle
|
|
which bids him?
|
|
|
|
I should say so.
|
|
|
|
And the forbidding principle is derived from reason, and that
|
|
which bids and attracts proceeds from passion and disease?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then we may fairly assume that they are two, and that they differ
|
|
from one another; the one with which man reasons, we may call
|
|
the rational principle of the soul, the other, with which he loves
|
|
and hungers and thirsts and feels the flutterings of any other desire,
|
|
may be termed the irrational or appetitive, the ally of sundry
|
|
pleasures and satisfactions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, we may fairly assume them to be different.
|
|
|
|
Then let us finally determine that there are two principles existing
|
|
in the soul. And what of passion, or spirit? Is it a third,
|
|
or akin to one of the preceding?
|
|
|
|
I should be inclined to say--akin to desire.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, there is a story which I remember to have heard, and in
|
|
which I put faith. The story is, that Leontius, the son of Aglaion,
|
|
coming up one day from the Piraeus, under the north wall on the outside,
|
|
observed some dead bodies lying on the ground at the place of execution.
|
|
He felt a desire to see them, and also a dread and abhorrence of them;
|
|
for a time he struggled and covered his eyes, but at length
|
|
the desire got the better of him; and forcing them open, he ran
|
|
up to the dead bodies, saying, Look, ye wretches, take your fill
|
|
of the fair sight.
|
|
|
|
I have heard the story myself, he said.
|
|
|
|
The moral of the tale is, that anger at times goes to war with desire,
|
|
as though they were two distinct things.
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is the meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
And are there not many other cases in which we observe that when a
|
|
man's desires violently prevail over his reason, he reviles himself,
|
|
and is angry at the violence within him, and that in this struggle,
|
|
which is like the struggle of factions in a State, his spirit
|
|
is on the side of his reason;--but for the passionate or spirited
|
|
element to take part with the desires when reason that she should not
|
|
be opposed, is a sort of thing which thing which I believe that you
|
|
never observed occurring in yourself, nor, as I should imagine,
|
|
in any one else?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Suppose that a man thinks he has done a wrong to another, the nobler
|
|
he is the less able is he to feel indignant at any suffering,
|
|
such as hunger, or cold, or any other pain which the injured person
|
|
may inflict upon him--these he deems to be just, and, as I say,
|
|
his anger refuses to be excited by them.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when he thinks that he is the sufferer of the wrong, then he boils
|
|
and chafes, and is on the side of what he believes to be justice;
|
|
and because he suffers hunger or cold or other pain he is only
|
|
the more determined to persevere and conquer. His noble spirit
|
|
will not be quelled until he either slays or is slain; or until he
|
|
hears the voice of the shepherd, that is, reason, bidding his dog
|
|
bark no more.
|
|
|
|
The illustration is perfect, he replied; and in our State,
|
|
as we were saying, the auxiliaries were to be dogs, and to hear
|
|
the voice of the rulers, who are their shepherds.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you quite understand me; there is,
|
|
however, a further point which I wish you to consider.
|
|
|
|
What point?
|
|
|
|
You remember that passion or spirit appeared at first sight
|
|
to be a kind of desire, but now we should say quite the contrary;
|
|
for in the conflict of the soul spirit is arrayed on the side
|
|
of the rational principle.
|
|
|
|
Most assuredly.
|
|
|
|
But a further question arises: Is passion different from
|
|
reason also, or only a kind of reason; in which latter case,
|
|
instead of three principles in the soul, there will only be two,
|
|
the rational and the concupiscent; or rather, as the State was composed
|
|
of three classes, traders, auxiliaries, counsellors, so may there
|
|
not be in the individual soul a third element which is passion
|
|
or spirit, and when not corrupted by bad education is the natural
|
|
auxiliary of reason
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there must be a third.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, if passion, which has already been shown to be
|
|
different from desire, turn out also to be different from reason.
|
|
|
|
But that is easily proved:--We may observe even in young children
|
|
that they are full of spirit almost as soon as they are born,
|
|
whereas some of them never seem to attain to the use of reason,
|
|
and most of them late enough.
|
|
|
|
Excellent, I said, and you may see passion equally in brute animals,
|
|
which is a further proof of the truth of what you are saying.
|
|
And we may once more appeal to the words of Homer, which have been
|
|
already quoted by us,
|
|
|
|
He smote his breast, and thus rebuked his soul,
|
|
|
|
for in this verse Homer has clearly supposed the power which reasons
|
|
about the better and worse to be different from the unreasoning
|
|
anger which is rebuked by it.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so, after much tossing, we have reached land, and are fairly
|
|
agreed that the same principles which exist in the State exist
|
|
also in the individual, and that they are three in number.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Must we not then infer that the individual is wise in the same way,
|
|
and in virtue of the same quality which makes the State wise?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Also that the same quality which constitutes courage in the State
|
|
constitutes courage in the individual, and that both the State
|
|
and the individual bear the same relation to all the other virtues?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And the individual will be acknowledged by us to be just in the same
|
|
way in which the State is just?
|
|
|
|
That follows, of course.
|
|
|
|
We cannot but remember that the justice of the State consisted
|
|
in each of the three classes doing the work of its own class?
|
|
|
|
We are not very likely to have forgotten, he said.
|
|
|
|
We must recollect that the individual in whom the several qualities
|
|
of his nature do their own work will be just, and will do his own work?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, we must remember that too.
|
|
|
|
And ought not the rational principle, which is wise, and has
|
|
the care of the whole soul, to rule, and the passionate or spirited
|
|
principle to be the subject and ally?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And, as we were saying, the united influence of music and gymnastic
|
|
will bring them into accord, nerving and sustaining the reason
|
|
with noble words and lessons, and moderating and soothing
|
|
and civilizing the wildness of passion by harmony and rhythm?
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And these two, thus nurtured and educated, and having learned truly
|
|
to know their own functions, will rule over the concupiscent,
|
|
which in each of us is the largest part of the soul and by nature
|
|
most insatiable of gain; over this they will keep guard, lest,
|
|
waxing great and strong with the fulness of bodily pleasures,
|
|
as they are termed, the concupiscent soul, no longer confined
|
|
to her own sphere, should attempt to enslave and rule those who are
|
|
not her natural-born subjects, and overturn the whole life of man?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Both together will they not be the best defenders of the whole soul
|
|
and the whole body against attacks from without; the one counselling,
|
|
and the other fighting under his leader, and courageously executing
|
|
his commands and counsels?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And he is to be deemed courageous whose spirit retains in pleasure
|
|
and in pain the commands of reason about what he ought or ought
|
|
not to fear?
|
|
|
|
Right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And him we call wise who has in him that little part which rules,
|
|
and which proclaims these commands; that part too being supposed
|
|
to have a knowledge of what is for the interest of each of the three
|
|
parts and of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
And would you not say that he is temperate who has these same elements
|
|
in friendly harmony, in whom the one ruling principle of reason,
|
|
and the two subject ones of spirit and desire are equally agreed
|
|
that reason ought to rule, and do not rebel?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, that is the true account of temperance whether
|
|
in the State or individual.
|
|
|
|
And surely, I said, we have explained again and again how and
|
|
by virtue of what quality a man will be just.
|
|
|
|
That is very certain.
|
|
|
|
And is justice dimmer in the individual, and is her form different,
|
|
or is she the same which we found her to be in the State?
|
|
|
|
There is no difference in my opinion, he said.
|
|
|
|
Because, if any doubt is still lingering in our minds, a few
|
|
commonplace instances will satisfy us of the truth of what I am saying.
|
|
|
|
What sort of instances do you mean?
|
|
|
|
If the case is put to us, must we not admit that the just State,
|
|
or the man who is trained in the principles of such a State, will be less
|
|
likely than the unjust to make away with a deposit of gold or silver?
|
|
Would any one deny this?
|
|
|
|
No one, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Will the just man or citizen ever be guilty of sacrilege or theft,
|
|
or treachery either to his friends or to his country?
|
|
|
|
Never.
|
|
|
|
Neither will he ever break faith where there have been oaths
|
|
or agreements?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
No one will be less likely to commit adultery, or to dishonour
|
|
his father and mother, or to fall in his religious duties?
|
|
|
|
No one.
|
|
|
|
And the reason is that each part of him is doing its own business,
|
|
whether in ruling or being ruled?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
Are you satisfied then that the quality which makes such men
|
|
and such states is justice, or do you hope to discover some other?
|
|
|
|
Not I, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then our dream has been realised; and the suspicion which we
|
|
entertained at the beginning of our work of construction, that some
|
|
divine power must have conducted us to a primary form of justice,
|
|
has now been verified?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the division of labour which required the carpenter and the shoemaker
|
|
and the rest of the citizens to be doing each his own business,
|
|
and not another's, was a shadow of justice, and for that reason
|
|
it was of use?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But in reality justice was such as we were describing,
|
|
being concerned however, not with the outward man, but with the inward,
|
|
which is the true self and concernment of man: for the just man
|
|
does not permit the several elements within him to interfere
|
|
with one another, or any of them to do the work of others,--he sets
|
|
in order his own inner life, and is his own master and his own law,
|
|
and at peace with himself; and when he has bound together the three
|
|
principles within him, which may be compared to the higher, lower,
|
|
and middle notes of the scale, and the intermediate intervals--
|
|
when he has bound all these together, and is no longer many, but has
|
|
become one entirely temperate and perfectly adjusted nature, then he
|
|
proceeds to act, if he has to act, whether in a matter of property,
|
|
or in the treatment of the body, or in some affair of politics
|
|
or private business; always thinking and calling that which preserves
|
|
and co-operates with this harmonious condition, just and good action,
|
|
and the knowledge which presides over it, wisdom, and that which
|
|
at any time impairs this condition, he will call unjust action,
|
|
and the opinion which presides over it ignorance.
|
|
|
|
You have said the exact truth, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
Very good; and if we were to affirm that we had discovered the just
|
|
man and the just State, and the nature of justice in each of them,
|
|
we should not be telling a falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly not.
|
|
|
|
May we say so, then?
|
|
|
|
Let us say so.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, injustice has to be considered.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Must not injustice be a strife which arises among the three principles--
|
|
a meddlesomeness, and interference, and rising up of a part
|
|
of the soul against the whole, an assertion of unlawful authority,
|
|
which is made by a rebellious subject against a true prince,
|
|
of whom he is the natural vassal,--what is all this confusion and
|
|
delusion but injustice, and intemperance and cowardice and ignorance,
|
|
and every form of vice?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And if the nature of justice and injustice be known, then the meaning
|
|
of acting unjustly and being unjust, or, again, of acting justly,
|
|
will also be perfectly clear?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, they are like disease and health; being in the soul
|
|
just what disease and health are in the body.
|
|
|
|
How so? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, that which is healthy causes health, and that which
|
|
is unhealthy causes disease.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And just actions cause justice, and unjust actions cause injustice?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And the creation of health is the institution of a natural order
|
|
and government of one by another in the parts of the body;
|
|
and the creation of disease is the production of a state of things
|
|
at variance with this natural order?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And is not the creation of justice the institution of a natural
|
|
order and government of one by another in the parts of the soul,
|
|
and the creation of injustice the production of a state of things
|
|
at variance with the natural order?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then virtue is the health and beauty and well-being of the soul,
|
|
and vice the disease and weakness and deformity of the same?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And do not good practices lead to virtue, and evil practices to vice?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Still our old question of the comparative advantage of justice
|
|
and injustice has not been answered: Which is the more profitable,
|
|
to be just and act justly and practise virtue, whether seen
|
|
or unseen of gods and men, or to be unjust and act unjustly,
|
|
if only unpunished and unreformed?
|
|
|
|
In my judgment, Socrates, the question has now become ridiculous.
|
|
We know that, when the bodily constitution is gone, life is no
|
|
longer endurable, though pampered with all kinds of meats and drinks,
|
|
and having all wealth and all power; and shall we be told that when
|
|
the very essence of the vital principle is undermined and corrupted,
|
|
life is still worth having to a man, if only he be allowed to do
|
|
whatever he likes with the single exception that he is not to
|
|
acquire justice and virtue, or to escape from injustice and vice;
|
|
assuming them both to be such as we have described?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, the question is, as you say, ridiculous. Still, as we
|
|
are near the spot at which we may see the truth in the clearest
|
|
manner with our own eyes, let us not faint by the way.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Come up hither, I said, and behold the various forms of vice,
|
|
those of them, I mean, which are worth looking at.
|
|
|
|
I am following you, he replied: proceed.
|
|
|
|
I said, The argument seems to have reached a height from which,
|
|
as from some tower of speculation, a man may look down and see
|
|
that virtue is one, but that the forms of vice are innumerable;
|
|
there being four special ones which are deserving of note.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean, I replied, that there appear to be as many forms of the soul
|
|
as there are distinct forms of the State.
|
|
|
|
How many?
|
|
|
|
There are five of the State, and five of the soul, I said.
|
|
|
|
What are they?
|
|
|
|
The first, I said, is that which we have been describing,
|
|
and which may be said to have two names, monarchy and aristocracy,
|
|
accordingly as rule is exercised by one distinguished man or by many.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But I regard the two names as describing one form only;
|
|
for whether the government is in the hands of one or many,
|
|
if the governors have been trained in the manner which we have supposed,
|
|
the fundamental laws of the State will be maintained.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK V
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
SUCH is the good and true City or State, and the good and man
|
|
is of the same pattern; and if this is right every other is wrong;
|
|
and the evil is one which affects not only the ordering of the State,
|
|
but also the regulation of the individual soul, and is exhibited in
|
|
four forms.
|
|
|
|
What are they? he said.
|
|
|
|
I was proceeding to tell the order in which the four evil forms appeared
|
|
to me to succeed one another, when Pole marchus, who was sitting
|
|
a little way off, just beyond Adeimantus, began to whisper to him:
|
|
stretching forth his hand, he took hold of the upper part of his
|
|
coat by the shoulder, and drew him towards him, leaning forward
|
|
himself so as to be quite close and saying something in his ear,
|
|
of which I only caught the words, `Shall we let him off, or what shall
|
|
we do?'
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, said Adeimantus, raising his voice.
|
|
|
|
Who is it, I said, whom you are refusing to let off?
|
|
|
|
You, he said.
|
|
|
|
I repeated, Why am I especially not to be let off?
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, we think that you are lazy, and mean to cheat us
|
|
out of a whole chapter which is a very important part of the story;
|
|
and you fancy that we shall not notice your airy way of proceeding;
|
|
as if it were self-evident to everybody, that in the matter of women
|
|
and children `friends have all things in common.'
|
|
|
|
And was I not right, Adeimantus?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but what is right in this particular case,
|
|
like everything else, requires to be explained; for community may be of
|
|
many kinds. Please, therefore, to say what sort of community you mean.
|
|
We have been long expecting that you would tell us something about
|
|
the family life of your citizens--how they will bring children into
|
|
the world, and rear them when they have arrived, and, in general,
|
|
what is the nature of this community of women and children-for we
|
|
are of opinion that the right or wrong management of such matters
|
|
will have a great and paramount influence on the State for good
|
|
or for evil. And now, since the question is still undetermined,
|
|
and you are taking in hand another State, we have resolved,
|
|
as you heard, not to let you go until you give an account of all this.
|
|
|
|
To that resolution, said Glaucon, you may regard me as saying Agreed.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS - GLAUCON - THRASYMACHUS
|
|
|
|
And without more ado, said Thrasymachus, you may consider us
|
|
all to be equally agreed.
|
|
|
|
I said, You know not what you are doing in thus assailing me:
|
|
What an argument are you raising about the State! Just as I
|
|
thought that I had finished, and was only too glad that I had
|
|
laid this question to sleep, and was reflecting how fortunate I
|
|
was in your acceptance of what I then said, you ask me to begin
|
|
again at the very foundation, ignorant of what a hornet's nest
|
|
of words you are stirring. Now I foresaw this gathering trouble,
|
|
and avoided it.
|
|
|
|
For what purpose do you conceive that we have come here,
|
|
said Thrasymachus,--to look for gold, or to hear discourse?
|
|
|
|
Yes, but discourse should have a limit.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, said Glaucon, and the whole of life is the only limit
|
|
which wise men assign to the hearing of such discourses. But never mind
|
|
about us; take heart yourself and answer the question in your own way:
|
|
What sort of community of women and children is this which is
|
|
to prevail among our guardians? and how shall we manage the period
|
|
between birth and education, which seems to require the greatest care?
|
|
Tell us how these things will be.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my simple friend, but the answer is the reverse of easy;
|
|
many more doubts arise about this than about our previous conclusions.
|
|
For the practicability of what is said may be doubted; and looked at
|
|
in another point of view, whether the scheme, if ever so practicable,
|
|
would be for the best, is also doubtful. Hence I feel a reluctance
|
|
to approach the subject, lest our aspiration, my dear friend,
|
|
should turn out to be a dream only.
|
|
|
|
Fear not, he replied, for your audience will not be hard upon you;
|
|
they are not sceptical or hostile.
|
|
|
|
I said: My good friend, I suppose that you mean to encourage me
|
|
by these words.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let me tell you that you are doing just the reverse;
|
|
the encouragement which you offer would have been all very well
|
|
had I myself believed that I knew what I was talking about:
|
|
to declare the truth about matters of high interest which a man
|
|
honours and loves among wise men who love him need occasion no fear
|
|
or faltering in his mind; but to carry on an argument when you
|
|
are yourself only a hesitating enquirer, which is my condition,
|
|
is a dangerous and slippery thing; and the danger is not that I
|
|
shall be laughed at (of which the fear would be childish),
|
|
but that I shall miss the truth where I have most need to be sure
|
|
of my footing, and drag my friends after me in my fall. And I pray
|
|
Nemesis not to visit upon me the words which I am going to utter.
|
|
For I do indeed believe that to be an involuntary homicide is a less
|
|
crime than to be a deceiver about beauty or goodness or justice
|
|
in the matter of laws. And that is a risk which I would rather
|
|
run among enemies than among friends, and therefore you do well to
|
|
encourage me.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon laughed and said: Well then, Socrates, in case you
|
|
and your argument do us any serious injury you shall be acquitted
|
|
beforehand of the and shall not be held to be a deceiver;
|
|
take courage then and speak.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, the law says that when a man is acquitted he is free
|
|
from guilt, and what holds at law may hold in argument.
|
|
|
|
Then why should you mind?
|
|
|
|
Well, I replied, I suppose that I must retrace my steps and say
|
|
what I perhaps ought to have said before in the proper place.
|
|
The part of the men has been played out, and now properly enough
|
|
comes the turn of the women. Of them I will proceed to speak,
|
|
and the more readily since I am invited by you.
|
|
|
|
For men born and educated like our citizens, the only way, in my opinion,
|
|
of arriving at a right conclusion about the possession and use of women
|
|
and children is to follow the path on which we originally started,
|
|
when we said that the men were to be the guardians and watchdogs
|
|
of the herd.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Let us further suppose the birth and education of our women to be
|
|
subject to similar or nearly similar regulations; then we shall
|
|
see whether the result accords with our design.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
What I mean may be put into the form of a question, I said:
|
|
Are dogs divided into hes and shes, or do they both share equally
|
|
in hunting and in keeping watch and in the other duties of dogs? or do
|
|
we entrust to the males the entire and exclusive care of the flocks,
|
|
while we leave the females at home, under the idea that the bearing
|
|
and suckling their puppies is labour enough for them?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, they share alike; the only difference between them
|
|
is that the males are stronger and the females weaker.
|
|
|
|
But can you use different animals for the same purpose, unless they
|
|
are bred and fed in the same way?
|
|
|
|
You cannot.
|
|
|
|
Then, if women are to have the same duties as men, they must
|
|
have the same nurture and education?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
The education which was assigned to the men was music and gymnastic. Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then women must be taught music and gymnastic and also the art of war,
|
|
which they must practise like the men?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference, I suppose.
|
|
|
|
I should rather expect, I said, that several of our proposals,
|
|
if they are carried out, being unusual, may appear ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
No doubt of it.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and the most ridiculous thing of all will be the sight of women
|
|
naked in the palaestra, exercising with the men, especially when they
|
|
are no longer young; they certainly will not be a vision of beauty,
|
|
any more than the enthusiastic old men who in spite of wrinkles
|
|
and ugliness continue to frequent the gymnasia.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said: according to present notions the proposal
|
|
would be thought ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
But then, I said, as we have determined to speak our minds,
|
|
we must not fear the jests of the wits which will be directed
|
|
against this sort of innovation; how they will talk of women's
|
|
attainments both in music and gymnastic, and above all about
|
|
their wearing armour and riding upon horseback!
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yet having begun we must go forward to the rough places of the law;
|
|
at the same time begging of these gentlemen for once in their life
|
|
to be serious. Not long ago, as we shall remind them, the Hellenes were
|
|
of the opinion, which is still generally received among the barbarians,
|
|
that the sight of a naked man was ridiculous and improper;
|
|
and when first the Cretans and then the Lacedaemonians introduced
|
|
the custom, the wits of that day might equally have ridiculed
|
|
the innovation.
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
But when experience showed that to let all things be uncovered was far
|
|
better than to cover them up, and the ludicrous effect to the outward
|
|
eye vanished before the better principle which reason asserted,
|
|
then the man was perceived to be a fool who directs the shafts
|
|
of his ridicule at any other sight but that of folly and vice,
|
|
or seriously inclines to weigh the beautiful by any other standard
|
|
but that of the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
First, then, whether the question is to be put in jest or in earnest,
|
|
let us come to an understanding about the nature of woman: Is she
|
|
capable of sharing either wholly or partially in the actions of men,
|
|
or not at all? And is the art of war one of those arts in which she can
|
|
or can not share? That will be the best way of commencing the enquiry,
|
|
and will probably lead to the fairest conclusion.
|
|
|
|
That will be much the best way.
|
|
|
|
Shall we take the other side first and begin by arguing against ourselves;
|
|
in this manner the adversary's position will not be undefended.
|
|
|
|
Why not? he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let us put a speech into the mouths of our opponents. They will say:
|
|
`Socrates and Glaucon, no adversary need convict you, for you yourselves,
|
|
at the first foundation of the State, admitted the principle
|
|
that everybody was to do the one work suited to his own nature.'
|
|
And certainly, if I am not mistaken, such an admission was made by us.
|
|
`And do not the natures of men and women differ very much indeed?'
|
|
And we shall reply: Of course they do. Then we shall be asked,
|
|
`Whether the tasks assigned to men and to women should not
|
|
be different, and such as are agreeable to their different natures?'
|
|
Certainly they should. `But if so, have you not fallen into a
|
|
serious inconsistency in saying that men and women, whose natures
|
|
are so entirely different, ought to perform the same actions?'--
|
|
What defence will you make for us, my good Sir, against any one who offers
|
|
these objections?
|
|
|
|
That is not an easy question to answer when asked suddenly;
|
|
and I shall and I do beg of you to draw out the case on our side.
|
|
|
|
These are the objections, Glaucon, and there are many others of a like kind,
|
|
which I foresaw long ago; they made me afraid and reluctant to take
|
|
in hand any law about the possession and nurture of women and children.
|
|
|
|
By Zeus, he said, the problem to be solved is anything but easy.
|
|
|
|
Why yes, I said, but the fact is that when a man is out of his depth,
|
|
whether he has fallen into a little swimming bath or into mid-ocean,
|
|
he has to swim all the same.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And must not we swim and try to reach the shore: we will hope
|
|
that Arion's dolphin or some other miraculous help may save us?
|
|
|
|
I suppose so, he said.
|
|
|
|
Well then, let us see if any way of escape can be found.
|
|
We acknowledged--did we not? that different natures ought to have
|
|
different pursuits, and that men's and women's natures are different.
|
|
And now what are we saying?--that different natures ought to have
|
|
the same pursuits,--this is the inconsistency which is charged
|
|
upon us.
|
|
|
|
Precisely.
|
|
|
|
Verily, Glaucon, I said, glorious is the power of the art of contradiction!
|
|
|
|
Why do you say so?
|
|
|
|
Because I think that many a man falls into the practice against his will.
|
|
When he thinks that he is reasoning he is really disputing,
|
|
just because he cannot define and divide, and so know that of which
|
|
he is speaking; and he will pursue a merely verbal opposition
|
|
in the spirit of contention and not of fair discussion.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, such is very often the case; but what has
|
|
that to do with us and our argument?
|
|
|
|
A great deal; for there is certainly a danger of our getting
|
|
unintentionally into a verbal opposition.
|
|
|
|
In what way?
|
|
|
|
Why, we valiantly and pugnaciously insist upon the verbal truth,
|
|
that different natures ought to have different pursuits, but we
|
|
never considered at all what was the meaning of sameness or difference
|
|
of nature, or why we distinguished them when we assigned different
|
|
pursuits to different natures and the same to the same natures.
|
|
|
|
Why, no, he said, that was never considered by us.
|
|
|
|
I said: Suppose that by way of illustration we were to ask
|
|
the question whether there is not an opposition in nature between
|
|
bald men and hairy men; and if this is admitted by us, then, if bald
|
|
men are cobblers, we should forbid the hairy men to be cobblers,
|
|
and conversely?
|
|
|
|
That would be a jest, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, a jest; and why? because we never meant when we
|
|
constructed the State, that the opposition of natures should extend
|
|
to every difference, but only to those differences which affected
|
|
the pursuit in which the individual is engaged; we should have argued,
|
|
for example, that a physician and one who is in mind a physician
|
|
may be said to have the same nature.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the physician and the carpenter have different natures?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if, I said, the male and female sex appear to differ in
|
|
their fitness for any art or pursuit, we should say that such
|
|
pursuit or art ought to be assigned to one or the other of them;
|
|
but if the difference consists only in women bearing and men
|
|
begetting children, this does not amount to a proof that a woman differs
|
|
from a man in respect of the sort of education she should receive;
|
|
and we shall therefore continue to maintain that our guardians
|
|
and their wives ought to have the same pursuits.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, we shall ask our opponent how, in reference to any of the pursuits
|
|
or arts of civic life, the nature of a woman differs from that of a man?
|
|
|
|
That will be quite fair.
|
|
|
|
And perhaps he, like yourself, will reply that to give a sufficient
|
|
answer on the instant is not easy; but after a little reflection
|
|
there is no difficulty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, perhaps.
|
|
|
|
Suppose then that we invite him to accompany us in the argument,
|
|
and then we may hope to show him that there is nothing peculiar in
|
|
the constitution of women which would affect them in the administration
|
|
of the State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Let us say to him: Come now, and we will ask you a question:--
|
|
when you spoke of a nature gifted or not gifted in any respect,
|
|
did you mean to say that one man will acquire a thing easily,
|
|
another with difficulty; a little learning will lead the one to discover
|
|
a great deal; whereas the other, after much study and application,
|
|
no sooner learns than he forgets; or again, did you mean,
|
|
that the one has a body which is a good servant to his mind,
|
|
while the body of the other is a hindrance to him?-would not these be
|
|
the sort of differences which distinguish the man gifted by nature
|
|
from the one who is ungifted?
|
|
|
|
No one will deny that.
|
|
|
|
And can you mention any pursuit of mankind in which the male sex
|
|
has not all these gifts and qualities in a higher degree than
|
|
the female? Need I waste time in speaking of the art of weaving,
|
|
and the management of pancakes and preserves, in which womankind
|
|
does really appear to be great, and in which for her to be beaten
|
|
by a man is of all things the most absurd?
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he replied, in maintaining the general
|
|
inferiority of the female sex: although many women are in many
|
|
things superior to many men, yet on the whole what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
And if so, my friend, I said, there is no special faculty of
|
|
administration in a state which a woman has because she is a woman,
|
|
or which a man has by virtue of his sex, but the gifts of nature
|
|
are alike diffused in both; all the pursuits of men are the pursuits
|
|
of women also, but in all of them a woman is inferior to a man.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then are we to impose all our enactments on men and none of them
|
|
on women?
|
|
|
|
That will never do.
|
|
|
|
One woman has a gift of healing, another not; one is a musician,
|
|
and another has no music in her nature?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And one woman has a turn for gymnastic and military exercises,
|
|
and another is unwarlike and hates gymnastics?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And one woman is a philosopher, and another is an enemy of philosophy;
|
|
one has spirit, and another is without spirit?
|
|
|
|
That is also true.
|
|
|
|
Then one woman will have the temper of a guardian, and another not.
|
|
Was not the selection of the male guardians determined by differences
|
|
of this sort?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Men and women alike possess the qualities which make a guardian;
|
|
they differ only in their comparative strength or weakness.
|
|
|
|
Obviously.
|
|
|
|
And those women who have such qualities are to be selected as
|
|
the companions and colleagues of men who have similar qualities
|
|
and whom they resemble in capacity and in character?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And ought not the same natures to have the same pursuits?
|
|
|
|
They ought.
|
|
|
|
Then, as we were saying before, there is nothing unnatural
|
|
in assigning music and gymnastic to the wives of the guardians--
|
|
to that point we come round again.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
The law which we then enacted was agreeable to nature, and therefore
|
|
not an impossibility or mere aspiration; and the contrary practice,
|
|
which prevails at present, is in reality a violation of nature.
|
|
|
|
That appears to be true.
|
|
|
|
We had to consider, first, whether our proposals were possible,
|
|
and secondly whether they were the most beneficial?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the possibility has been acknowledged?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
The very great benefit has next to be established?
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
You will admit that the same education which makes a man a good
|
|
guardian will make a woman a good guardian; for their original
|
|
nature is the same?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
I should like to ask you a question.
|
|
|
|
What is it?
|
|
|
|
Would you say that all men are equal in excellence, or is one man
|
|
better than another?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
And in the commonwealth which we were founding do you conceive
|
|
the guardians who have been brought up on our model system to be
|
|
more perfect men, or the cobblers whose education has been cobbling?
|
|
|
|
What a ridiculous question!
|
|
|
|
You have answered me, I replied: Well, and may we not further say
|
|
that our guardians are the best of our citizens?
|
|
|
|
By far the best.
|
|
|
|
And will not their wives be the best women?
|
|
|
|
Yes, by far the best.
|
|
|
|
And can there be anything better for the interests of the State
|
|
than that the men and women of a State should be as good as possible?
|
|
|
|
There can be nothing better.
|
|
|
|
And this is what the arts of music and gymnastic, when present
|
|
in such manner as we have described, will accomplish?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have made an enactment not only possible but in the highest
|
|
degree beneficial to the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then let the wives of our guardians strip, for their virtue will be
|
|
their robe, and let them share in the toils of war and the defence
|
|
of their country; only in the distribution of labours the lighter
|
|
are to be assigned to the women, who are the weaker natures,
|
|
but in other respects their duties are to be the same.
|
|
And as for the man who laughs at naked women exercising their bodies
|
|
from the best of motives, in his laughter he is plucking
|
|
|
|
A fruit of unripe wisdom,
|
|
|
|
and he himself is ignorant of what he is laughing at, or what he
|
|
is about;--for that is, and ever will be, the best of sayings,
|
|
That the useful is the noble and the hurtful is the base.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Here, then, is one difficulty in our law about women, which we
|
|
may say that we have now escaped; the wave has not swallowed us up
|
|
alive for enacting that the guardians of either sex should have all
|
|
their pursuits in common; to the utility and also to the possibility
|
|
of this arrangement the consistency of the argument with itself
|
|
bears witness.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was a mighty wave which you have escaped.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but a greater is coming; you will of this when you
|
|
see the next.
|
|
|
|
Go on; let me see.
|
|
|
|
The law, I said, which is the sequel of this and of all that
|
|
has preceded, is to the following effect,--'that the wives of our
|
|
guardians are to be common, and their children are to be common,
|
|
and no parent is to know his own child, nor any child his parent.'
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is a much greater wave than the other;
|
|
and the possibility as well as the utility of such a law are far
|
|
more questionable.
|
|
|
|
I do not think, I said, that there can be any dispute about
|
|
the very great utility of having wives and children in common;
|
|
the possibility is quite another matter, and will be very much disputed.
|
|
|
|
I think that a good many doubts may be raised about both.
|
|
|
|
You imply that the two questions must be combined, I replied.
|
|
Now I meant that you should admit the utility; and in this way,
|
|
as I thought; I should escape from one of them, and then there would
|
|
remain only the possibility.
|
|
|
|
But that little attempt is detected, and therefore you will please
|
|
to give a defence of both.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I submit to my fate. Yet grant me a little favour:
|
|
let me feast my mind with the dream as day dreamers are in
|
|
the habit of feasting themselves when they are walking alone;
|
|
for before they have discovered any means of effecting their wishes--
|
|
that is a matter which never troubles them--they would rather
|
|
not tire themselves by thinking about possibilities; but assuming
|
|
that what they desire is already granted to them, they proceed
|
|
with their plan, and delight in detailing what they mean to do
|
|
when their wish has come true--that is a way which they have of
|
|
not doing much good to a capacity which was never good for much.
|
|
Now I myself am beginning to lose heart, and I should like,
|
|
with your permission, to pass over the question of possibility
|
|
at present. Assuming therefore the possibility of the proposal,
|
|
I shall now proceed to enquire how the rulers will carry out
|
|
these arrangements, and I shall demonstrate that our plan, if executed,
|
|
will be of the greatest benefit to the State and to the guardians.
|
|
First of all, then, if you have no objection, I will endeavour with
|
|
your help to consider the advantages of the measure; and hereafter
|
|
the question of possibility.
|
|
|
|
I have no objection; proceed.
|
|
|
|
First, I think that if our rulers and their auxiliaries are to be
|
|
worthy of the name which they bear, there must be willingness
|
|
to obey in the one and the power of command in the other;
|
|
the guardians must themselves obey the laws, and they must also imitate
|
|
the spirit of them in any details which are entrusted to their care.
|
|
|
|
That is right, he said.
|
|
|
|
You, I said, who are their legislator, having selected the men,
|
|
will now select the women and give them to them;--they must be
|
|
as far as possible of like natures with them; and they must live
|
|
in common houses and meet at common meals, None of them will have
|
|
anything specially his or her own; they will be together, and will
|
|
be brought up together, and will associate at gymnastic exercises.
|
|
And so they will be drawn by a necessity of their natures to have
|
|
intercourse with each other--necessity is not too strong a word,
|
|
I think?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said;--necessity, not geometrical, but another sort
|
|
of necessity which lovers know, and which is far more convincing
|
|
and constraining to the mass of mankind.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; and this, Glaucon, like all the rest, must proceed
|
|
after an orderly fashion; in a city of the blessed, licentiousness is
|
|
an unholy thing which the rulers will forbid.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and it ought not to be permitted.
|
|
|
|
Then clearly the next thing will be to make matrimony sacred in
|
|
the highest degree, and what is most beneficial will be deemed sacred?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And how can marriages be made most beneficial?--that is a question
|
|
which I put to you, because I see in your house dogs for hunting,
|
|
and of the nobler sort of birds not a few. Now, I beseech you,
|
|
do tell me, have you ever attended to their pairing and breeding?
|
|
|
|
In what particulars?
|
|
|
|
Why, in the first place, although they are all of a good sort,
|
|
are not some better than others?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And do you breed from them all indifferently, or do you take care
|
|
to breed from the best only?
|
|
|
|
From the best.
|
|
|
|
And do you take the oldest or the youngest, or only those of ripe age?
|
|
|
|
I choose only those of ripe age.
|
|
|
|
And if care was not taken in the breeding, your dogs and birds
|
|
would greatly deteriorate?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the same of horses and animals in general?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Good heavens! my dear friend, I said, what consummate skill will
|
|
our rulers need if the same principle holds of the human species!
|
|
|
|
Certainly, the same principle holds; but why does this involve
|
|
any particular skill?
|
|
|
|
Because, I said, our rulers will often have to practise upon
|
|
the body corporate with medicines. Now you know that when patients
|
|
do not require medicines, but have only to be put under a regimen,
|
|
the inferior sort of practitioner is deemed to be good enough;
|
|
but when medicine has to be given, then the doctor should be more of
|
|
a man.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said; but to what are you alluding?
|
|
|
|
I mean, I replied, that our rulers will find a considerable dose
|
|
of falsehood and deceit necessary for the good of their subjects:
|
|
we were saying that the use of all these things regarded as medicines
|
|
might be of advantage.
|
|
|
|
And we were very right.
|
|
|
|
And this lawful use of them seems likely to be often needed
|
|
in the regulations of marriages and births.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, the principle has been already laid down that the best
|
|
of either sex should be united with the best as often, and the inferior
|
|
with the inferior, as seldom as possible; and that they should rear
|
|
the offspring of the one sort of union, but not of the other,
|
|
if the flock is to be maintained in first-rate condition.
|
|
Now these goings on must be a secret which the rulers only know,
|
|
or there will be a further danger of our herd, as the guardians may
|
|
be termed, breaking out into rebellion.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Had we not better appoint certain festivals at which we will bring
|
|
together the brides and bridegrooms, and sacrifices will be offered
|
|
and suitable hymeneal songs composed by our poets: the number
|
|
of weddings is a matter which must be left to the discretion of
|
|
the rulers, whose aim will be to preserve the average of population?
|
|
There are many other things which they will have to consider,
|
|
such as the effects of wars and diseases and any similar agencies,
|
|
in order as far as this is possible to prevent the State from becoming
|
|
either too large or too small.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
We shall have to invent some ingenious kind of lots which the less
|
|
worthy may draw on each occasion of our bringing them together,
|
|
and then they will accuse their own ill-luck and not the rulers.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said.
|
|
|
|
And I think that our braver and better youth, besides their other
|
|
honours and rewards, might have greater facilities of intercourse
|
|
with women given them; their bravery will be a reason, and such
|
|
fathers ought to have as many sons as possible.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the proper officers, whether male or female or both, for offices
|
|
are to be held by women as well as by men--
|
|
|
|
Yes--
|
|
|
|
The proper officers will take the offspring of the good parents to
|
|
the pen or fold, and there they will deposit them with certain nurses
|
|
who dwell in a separate quarter; but the offspring of the inferior,
|
|
or of the better when they chance to be deformed, will be put away
|
|
in some mysterious, unknown place, as they should be.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that must be done if the breed of the guardians
|
|
is to be kept pure.
|
|
|
|
They will provide for their nurture, and will bring the mothers
|
|
to the fold when they are full of milk, taking the greatest possible
|
|
care that no mother recognizes her own child; and other wet-nurses
|
|
may be engaged if more are required. Care will also be taken
|
|
that the process of suckling shall not be protracted too long;
|
|
and the mothers will have no getting up at night or other trouble,
|
|
but will hand over all this sort of thing to the nurses and attendants.
|
|
|
|
You suppose the wives of our guardians to have a fine easy time
|
|
of it when they are having children.
|
|
|
|
Why, said I, and so they ought. Let us, however, proceed with our scheme.
|
|
We were saying that the parents should be in the prime of life?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And what is the prime of life? May it not be defined as a period
|
|
of about twenty years in a woman's life, and thirty in a man's?
|
|
|
|
Which years do you mean to include?
|
|
|
|
A woman, I said, at twenty years of age may begin to bear
|
|
children to the State, and continue to bear them until forty;
|
|
a man may begin at five-and-twenty, when he has passed the point
|
|
at which the pulse of life beats quickest, and continue to beget
|
|
children until he be fifty-five.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, both in men and women those years are the prime
|
|
of physical as well as of intellectual vigour.
|
|
|
|
Any one above or below the prescribed ages who takes part in the public
|
|
hymeneals shall be said to have done an unholy and unrighteous thing;
|
|
the child of which he is the father, if it steals into life,
|
|
will have been conceived under auspices very unlike the sacrifices
|
|
and prayers, which at each hymeneal priestesses and priest and
|
|
the whole city will offer, that the new generation may be better
|
|
and more useful than their good and useful parents, whereas his
|
|
child will be the offspring of darkness and strange lust.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the same law will apply to any one of those within the prescribed
|
|
age who forms a connection with any woman in the prime of life
|
|
without the sanction of the rulers; for we shall say that he
|
|
is raising up a bastard to the State, uncertified and unconsecrated.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
This applies, however, only to those who are within the specified age:
|
|
after that we allow them to range at will, except that a man
|
|
may not marry his daughter or his daughter's daughter, or his
|
|
mother or his mother's mother; and women, on the other hand,
|
|
are prohibited from marrying their sons or fathers, or son's son
|
|
or father's father, and so on in either direction. And we grant
|
|
all this, accompanying the permission with strict orders to prevent
|
|
any embryo which may come into being from seeing the light;
|
|
and if any force a way to the birth, the parents must understand
|
|
that the offspring of such an union cannot be maintained,
|
|
and arrange accordingly.
|
|
|
|
That also, he said, is a reasonable proposition. But how will they
|
|
know who are fathers and daughters, and so on?
|
|
|
|
They will never know. The way will be this:--dating from the day
|
|
of the hymeneal, the bridegroom who was then married will call
|
|
all the male children who are born in the seventh and tenth month
|
|
afterwards his sons, and the female children his daughters, and they
|
|
will call him father, and he will call their children his grandchildren,
|
|
and they will call the elder generation grandfathers and grandmothers.
|
|
All who were begotten at the time when their fathers and mothers
|
|
came together will be called their brothers and sisters, and these,
|
|
as I was saying, will be forbidden to inter-marry. This, however,
|
|
is not to be understood as an absolute prohibition of the marriage
|
|
of brothers and sisters; if the lot favours them, and they receive
|
|
the sanction of the Pythian oracle, the law will allow them.
|
|
|
|
Quite right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Such is the scheme, Glaucon, according to which the guardians
|
|
of our State are to have their wives and families in common.
|
|
And now you would have the argument show that this community is consistent
|
|
with the rest of our polity, and also that nothing can be better--
|
|
would you not?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
Shall we try to find a common basis by asking of ourselves
|
|
what ought to be the chief aim of the legislator in making laws
|
|
and in the organization of a State,--what is the greatest I good,
|
|
and what is the greatest evil, and then consider whether our previous
|
|
description has the stamp of the good or of the evil?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Can there be any greater evil than discord and distraction and plurality
|
|
where unity ought to reign? or any greater good than the bond of unity?
|
|
|
|
There cannot.
|
|
|
|
And there is unity where there is community of pleasures and pains--
|
|
where all the citizens are glad or grieved on the same occasions of joy
|
|
and sorrow?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and where there is no common but only private feeling a State
|
|
is disorganized--when you have one half of the world triumphing
|
|
and the other plunged in grief at the same events happening
|
|
to the city or the citizens?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Such differences commonly originate in a disagreement about the use
|
|
of the terms `mine' and `not mine,' `his' and `not his.'
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And is not that the best-ordered State in which the greatest number
|
|
of persons apply the terms `mine' and `not mine' in the same way
|
|
to the same thing?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Or that again which most nearly approaches to the condition
|
|
of the individual--as in the body, when but a finger of one of us
|
|
is hurt, the whole frame, drawn towards the soul as a center and
|
|
forming one kingdom under the ruling power therein, feels the hurt
|
|
and sympathizes all together with the part affected, and we say
|
|
that the man has a pain in his finger; and the same expression
|
|
is used about any other part of the body, which has a sensation
|
|
of pain at suffering or of pleasure at the alleviation of suffering.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied; and I agree with you that in the best-ordered
|
|
State there is the nearest approach to this common feeling
|
|
which you describe.
|
|
|
|
Then when any one of the citizens experiences any good or evil,
|
|
the whole State will make his case their own, and will either rejoice
|
|
or sorrow with him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is what will happen in a well-ordered State.
|
|
|
|
It will now be time, I said, for us to return to our State and see
|
|
whether this or some other form is most in accordance with these
|
|
fundamental principles.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Our State like every other has rulers and subjects?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
All of whom will call one another citizens?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
But is there not another name which people give to their rulers
|
|
in other States?
|
|
|
|
Generally they call them masters, but in democratic States they
|
|
simply call them rulers.
|
|
|
|
And in our State what other name besides that of citizens
|
|
do the people give the rulers?
|
|
|
|
They are called saviours and helpers, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And what do the rulers call the people?
|
|
|
|
Their maintainers and foster-fathers.
|
|
|
|
And what do they call them in other States?
|
|
|
|
Slaves.
|
|
|
|
And what do the rulers call one another in other States?
|
|
|
|
Fellow-rulers.
|
|
|
|
And what in ours?
|
|
|
|
Fellow-guardians.
|
|
|
|
Did you ever know an example in any other State of a ruler who would speak
|
|
of one of his colleagues as his friend and of another as not being his friend?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very often.
|
|
|
|
And the friend he regards and describes as one in whom he has
|
|
an interest, and the other as a stranger in whom he has no interest?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But would any of your guardians think or speak of any other guardian
|
|
as a stranger?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he would not; for every one whom they meet will be
|
|
regarded by them either as a brother or sister, or father or mother,
|
|
or son or daughter, or as the child or parent of those who are thus
|
|
connected with him.
|
|
|
|
Capital, I said; but let me ask you once more: Shall they be a family
|
|
in name only; or shall they in all their actions be true to the name?
|
|
For example, in the use of the word `father,' would the care of a
|
|
father be implied and the filial reverence and duty and obedience
|
|
to him which the law commands; and is the violator of these duties
|
|
to be regarded as an impious and unrighteous person who is not
|
|
likely to receive much good either at the hands of God or of man?
|
|
Are these to be or not to be the strains which the children will hear
|
|
repeated in their ears by all the citizens about those who are intimated
|
|
to them to be their parents and the rest of their kinsfolk?
|
|
|
|
These, he said, and none other; for what can be more ridiculous
|
|
than for them to utter the names of family ties with the lips
|
|
only and not to act in the spirit of them?
|
|
|
|
Then in our city the language of harmony and concord will be more
|
|
often beard than in any other. As I was describing before, when any
|
|
one is well or ill, the universal word will be with me `it is well'
|
|
or `it is ill.'
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And agreeably to this mode of thinking and speaking, were we not
|
|
saying that they will have their pleasures and pains in common?
|
|
|
|
Yes, and so they will.
|
|
|
|
And they will have a common interest in the same thing which they
|
|
will alike call `my own,' and having this common interest they
|
|
will have a common feeling of pleasure and pain?
|
|
|
|
Yes, far more so than in other States.
|
|
|
|
And the reason of this, over and above the general constitution
|
|
of the State, will be that the guardians will have a community
|
|
of women and children?
|
|
|
|
That will be the chief reason.
|
|
|
|
And this unity of feeling we admitted to be the greatest good,
|
|
as was implied in our own comparison of a well-ordered State to
|
|
the relation of the body and the members, when affected by pleasure
|
|
or pain?
|
|
|
|
That we acknowledged, and very rightly.
|
|
|
|
Then the community of wives and children among our citizens
|
|
is clearly the source of the greatest good to the State?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And this agrees with the other principle which we were affirming,--
|
|
that the guardians were not to have houses or lands or any other property;
|
|
their pay was to be their food, which they were to receive from
|
|
the other citizens, and they were to have no private expenses;
|
|
for we intended them to preserve their true character of guardians.
|
|
|
|
Right, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Both the community of property and the community of families,
|
|
as I am saying, tend to make them more truly guardians; they will not
|
|
tear the city in pieces by differing about `mine' and `not mine;'
|
|
each man dragging any acquisition which he has made into a separate
|
|
house of his own, where he has a separate wife and children and private
|
|
pleasures and pains; but all will be affected as far as may be
|
|
by the same pleasures and pains because they are all of one opinion
|
|
about what is near and dear to them, and therefore they all tend
|
|
towards a common end.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And as they have nothing but their persons which they can call
|
|
their own, suits and complaints will have no existence among them;
|
|
they will be delivered from all those quarrels of which money or
|
|
children or relations are the occasion.
|
|
|
|
Of course they will.
|
|
|
|
Neither will trials for assault or insult ever be likely
|
|
to occur among them. For that equals should defend themselves
|
|
against equals we shall maintain to be honourable and right;
|
|
we shall make the protection of the person a matter of necessity.
|
|
|
|
That is good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and there is a further good in the law; viz. that if a man has
|
|
a quarrel with another he will satisfy his resentment then and there,
|
|
and not proceed to more dangerous lengths.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
To the elder shall be assigned the duty of ruling and chastising
|
|
the younger.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Nor can there be a doubt that the younger will not strike or do any
|
|
other violence to an elder, unless the magistrates command him;
|
|
nor will he slight him in any way. For there are two guardians,
|
|
shame and fear, mighty to prevent him: shame, which makes men
|
|
refrain from laying hands on those who are to them in the relation
|
|
of parents; fear, that the injured one will be succoured by the others
|
|
who are his brothers, sons, one wi fathers.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then in every way the laws will help the citizens to keep the peace
|
|
with one another?
|
|
|
|
Yes, there will be no want of peace.
|
|
|
|
And as the guardians will never quarrel among themselves there
|
|
will be no danger of the rest of the city being divided either
|
|
against them or against one another.
|
|
|
|
None whatever.
|
|
|
|
I hardly like even to mention the little meannesses of which they
|
|
will be rid, for they are beneath notice: such, for example,
|
|
as the flattery of the rich by the poor, and all the pains and pangs
|
|
which men experience in bringing up a family, and in finding money
|
|
to buy necessaries for their household, borrowing and then repudiating,
|
|
getting how they can, and giving the money into the hands of women
|
|
and slaves to keep--the many evils of so many kinds which people
|
|
suffer in this way are mean enough and obvious enough, and not worth
|
|
speaking of.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, a man has no need of eyes in order to perceive that.
|
|
|
|
And from all these evils they will be delivered, and their life
|
|
will be blessed as the life of Olympic victors and yet more blessed.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
The Olympic victor, I said, is deemed happy in receiving a part
|
|
only of the blessedness which is secured to our citizens,
|
|
who have won a more glorious victory and have a more complete
|
|
maintenance at the public cost. For the victory which they have won
|
|
is the salvation of the whole State; and the crown with which they
|
|
and their children are crowned is the fulness of all that life needs;
|
|
they receive rewards from the hands of their country while living,
|
|
and after death have an honourable burial.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and glorious rewards they are.
|
|
|
|
Do you remember, I said, how in the course of the previous discussion
|
|
some one who shall be nameless accused us of making our guardians unhappy--
|
|
they had nothing and might have possessed all things-to whom we
|
|
replied that, if an occasion offered, we might perhaps hereafter
|
|
consider this question, but that, as at present advised, we would make
|
|
our guardians truly guardians, and that we were fashioning the State
|
|
with a view to the greatest happiness, not of any particular class,
|
|
but of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say, now that the life of our protectors is made
|
|
out to be far better and nobler than that of Olympic victors--
|
|
is the life of shoemakers, or any other artisans, or of husbandmen,
|
|
to be compared with it?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
At the same time I ought here to repeat what I have said elsewhere,
|
|
that if any of our guardians shall try to be happy in such a manner
|
|
that he will cease to be a guardian, and is not content with this safe
|
|
and harmonious life, which, in our judgment, is of all lives the best,
|
|
but infatuated by some youthful conceit of happiness which gets up
|
|
into his head shall seek to appropriate the whole State to himself,
|
|
then he will have to learn how wisely Hesiod spoke, when he said,
|
|
`half is more than the whole.'
|
|
|
|
If he were to consult me, I should say to him: Stay where you are,
|
|
when you have the offer of such a life.
|
|
|
|
You agree then, I said, that men and women are to have a common way
|
|
of life such as we have described--common education, common children;
|
|
and they are to watch over the citizens in common whether abiding
|
|
in the city or going out to war; they are to keep watch together,
|
|
and to hunt together like dogs; and always and in all things,
|
|
as far as they are able, women are to share with the men?
|
|
And in so doing they will do what is best, and will not violate,
|
|
but preserve the natural relation of the sexes.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The enquiry, I said, has yet to be made, whether such a community
|
|
be found possible--as among other animals, so also among men--
|
|
and if possible, in what way possible?
|
|
|
|
You have anticipated the question which I was about to suggest.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty, I said, in seeing how war will be carried
|
|
on by them.
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
Why, of course they will go on expeditions together; and will take
|
|
with them any of their children who are strong enough, that, after the
|
|
manner of the artisan's child, they may look on at the work which they
|
|
will have to do when they are grown up; and besides looking on they
|
|
will have to help and be of use in war, and to wait upon their fathers
|
|
and mothers. Did you never observe in the arts how the potters'
|
|
boys look on and help, long before they touch the wheel?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I have.
|
|
|
|
And shall potters be more careful in educating their children
|
|
and in giving them the opportunity of seeing and practising
|
|
their duties than our guardians will be?
|
|
|
|
The idea is ridiculous, he said.
|
|
|
|
There is also the effect on the parents, with whom, as with other animals,
|
|
the presence of their young ones will be the greatest incentive to valour.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, Socrates; and yet if they are defeated,
|
|
which may often happen in war, how great the danger is! the children
|
|
will be lost as well as their parents, and the State will never recover.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; but would you never allow them to run any risk?
|
|
|
|
I am far from saying that.
|
|
|
|
Well, but if they are ever to run a risk should they not do so on
|
|
some occasion when, if they escape disaster, they will be the better
|
|
for it?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Whether the future soldiers do or do not see war in the days
|
|
of their youth is a very important matter, for the sake
|
|
of which some risk may fairly be incurred.
|
|
|
|
Yes, very important.
|
|
|
|
This then must be our first step,--to make our children spectators of war;
|
|
but we must also contrive that they shall be secured against danger;
|
|
then all will be well.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Their parents may be supposed not to be blind to the risks of war,
|
|
but to know, as far as human foresight can, what expeditions are safe
|
|
and what dangerous?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
And they will take them on the safe expeditions and be cautious
|
|
about the dangerous ones?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And they will place them under the command of experienced veterans
|
|
who will be their leaders and teachers?
|
|
|
|
Very properly.
|
|
|
|
Still, the dangers of war cannot be always foreseen; there is
|
|
a good deal of chance about them?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then against such chances the children must be at once furnished
|
|
with wings, in order that in the hour of need they may fly away
|
|
and escape.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean that we must mount them on horses in their earliest youth,
|
|
and when they have learnt to ride, take them on horseback to see war:
|
|
the horses must be spirited and warlike, but the most tractable
|
|
and yet the swiftest that can be had. In this way they will get
|
|
an excellent view of what is hereafter to be their own business;
|
|
and if there is danger they have only to follow their elder leaders
|
|
and escape.
|
|
|
|
I believe that you are right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, as to war; what are to be the relations of your soldiers
|
|
to one another and to their enemies? I should be inclined to propose
|
|
that the soldier who leaves his rank or throws away his arms,
|
|
or is guilty of any other act of cowardice, should be degraded
|
|
into the rank of a husbandman or artisan. What do you think?
|
|
|
|
By all means, I should say.
|
|
|
|
And he who allows himself to be taken prisoner may as well be made
|
|
a present of to his enemies; he is their lawful prey, and let them
|
|
do what they like with him.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But the hero who has distinguished himself, what shall be done to him?
|
|
In the first place, he shall receive honour in the army from his
|
|
youthful comrades; every one of them in succession shall crown him.
|
|
What do you say?
|
|
|
|
I approve.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say to his receiving the right hand of fellowship?
|
|
|
|
To that too, I agree.
|
|
|
|
But you will hardly agree to my next proposal.
|
|
|
|
What is your proposal?
|
|
|
|
That he should kiss and be kissed by them.
|
|
|
|
Most certainly, and I should be disposed to go further, and say:
|
|
Let no one whom he has a mind to kiss refuse to be kissed by him
|
|
while the expedition lasts. So that if there be a lover in the army,
|
|
whether his love be youth or maiden, he may be more eager to win
|
|
the prize of valour.
|
|
|
|
Capital, I said. That the brave man is to have more wives than others has
|
|
been already determined: and he is to have first choices in such matters
|
|
more than others, in order that he may have as many children as possible?
|
|
|
|
Agreed.
|
|
|
|
Again, there is another manner in which, according to Homer,
|
|
brave youths should be honoured; for he tells how Ajax, after he
|
|
had distinguished himself in battle, was rewarded with long chines,
|
|
which seems to be a compliment appropriate to a hero in the flower
|
|
of his age, being not only a tribute of honour but also a very
|
|
strengthening thing.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then in this, I said, Homer shall be our teacher; and we too,
|
|
at sacrifices and on the like occasions, will honour the brave
|
|
according to the measure of their valour, whether men or women,
|
|
with hymns and those other distinctions which we were mentioning;
|
|
also with
|
|
|
|
seats of precedence, and meats and full cups;
|
|
|
|
and in honouring them, we shall be at the same time training them.
|
|
|
|
That, he replied, is excellent.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and when a man dies gloriously in war shall we not say,
|
|
in the first place, that he is of the golden race?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Nay, have we not the authority of Hesiod for affirming that when
|
|
they are dead
|
|
|
|
They are holy angels upon the earth, authors of good,
|
|
averters of evil, the guardians of speech-gifted men?
|
|
|
|
Yes; and we accept his authority.
|
|
|
|
We must learn of the god how we are to order the sepulture of divine
|
|
and heroic personages, and what is to be their special distinction
|
|
and we must do as he bids?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And in ages to come we will reverence them and knee. before their
|
|
sepulchres as at the graves of heroes. And not only they but any
|
|
who are deemed pre-eminently good, whether they die from age,
|
|
or in any other way, shall be admitted to the same honours.
|
|
|
|
That is very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Next, how shall our soldiers treat their enemies? What about this?
|
|
|
|
In what respect do you mean?
|
|
|
|
First of all, in regard to slavery? Do you think it right that Hellenes
|
|
should enslave Hellenic States, or allow others to enslave them,
|
|
if they can help? Should not their custom be to spare them,
|
|
considering the danger which there is that the whole race may one
|
|
day fall under the yoke of the barbarians?
|
|
|
|
To spare them is infinitely better.
|
|
|
|
Then no Hellene should be owned by them as a slave; that is a rule
|
|
which they will observe and advise the other Hellenes to observe.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; they will in this way be united against
|
|
the barbarians and will keep their hands off one another.
|
|
|
|
Next as to the slain; ought the conquerors, I said, to take anything
|
|
but their armour? Does not the practice of despoiling an enemy afford
|
|
an excuse for not facing the battle? Cowards skulk about the dead,
|
|
pretending that they are fulfilling a duty, and many an army
|
|
before now has been lost from this love of plunder.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is there not illiberality and avarice in robbing a corpse,
|
|
and also a degree of meanness and womanishness in making an enemy
|
|
of the dead body when the real enemy has flown away and left
|
|
only his fighting gear behind him,--is not this rather like a dog
|
|
who cannot get at his assailant, quarrelling with the stones
|
|
which strike him instead?
|
|
|
|
Very like a dog, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then we must abstain from spoiling the dead or hindering their burial?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, we most certainly must.
|
|
|
|
Neither shall we offer up arms at the temples of the gods,
|
|
least of all the arms of Hellenes, if we care to maintain good
|
|
feeling with other Hellenes; and, indeed, we have reason to fear
|
|
that the offering of spoils taken from kinsmen may be a pollution
|
|
unless commanded by the god himself?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Again, as to the devastation of Hellenic territory or the burning
|
|
of houses, what is to be the practice?
|
|
|
|
May I have the pleasure, he said, of hearing your opinion?
|
|
|
|
Both should be forbidden, in my judgment; I would take the annual
|
|
produce and no more. Shall I tell you why?
|
|
|
|
Pray do.
|
|
|
|
Why, you see, there is a difference in the names `discord' and `war,'
|
|
and I imagine that there is also a difference in their natures;
|
|
the one is expressive of what is internal and domestic, the other
|
|
of what is external and foreign; and the first of the two is
|
|
termed discord, and only the second, war.
|
|
|
|
That is a very proper distinction, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And may I not observe with equal propriety that the Hellenic race
|
|
is all united together by ties of blood and friendship, and alien
|
|
and strange to the barbarians?
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
And therefore when Hellenes fight with barbarians and barbarians
|
|
with Hellenes, they will be described by us as being at war when
|
|
they fight, and by nature enemies, and this kind of antagonism
|
|
should be called war; but when Hellenes fight with one another we
|
|
shall say that Hellas is then in a state of disorder and discord,
|
|
they being by nature friends and such enmity is to be called discord.
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Consider then, I said, when that which we have acknowledged to be
|
|
discord occurs, and a city is divided, if both parties destroy the lands
|
|
and burn the houses of one another, how wicked does the strife appear!
|
|
No true lover of his country would bring himself to tear in pieces
|
|
his own nurse and mother: There might be reason in the conqueror
|
|
depriving the conquered of their harvest, but still they would
|
|
have the idea of peace in their hearts and would not mean to go
|
|
on fighting for ever.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is a better temper than the other.
|
|
|
|
And will not the city, which you are founding, be an Hellenic city?
|
|
|
|
It ought to be, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then will not the citizens be good and civilized?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very civilized.
|
|
|
|
And will they not be lovers of Hellas, and think of Hellas as their
|
|
own land, and share in the common temples?
|
|
|
|
Most certainly.
|
|
|
|
And any difference which arises among them will be regarded by them
|
|
as discord only--a quarrel among friends, which is not to be called
|
|
a war?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then
|
|
they will quarrel as those who intend some day to be reconciled? Certainly.
|
|
|
|
They will use friendly correction, but will not enslave or destroy
|
|
their opponents; they will be correctors, not enemies?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
And as they are Hellenes themselves they will not devastate Hellas,
|
|
nor will they burn houses, not even suppose that the whole population
|
|
of a city--men, women, and children--are equally their enemies,
|
|
for they know that the guilt of war is always confined to a few persons
|
|
and that the many are their friends. And for all these reasons
|
|
they will be unwilling to waste their lands and raze their houses;
|
|
their enmity to them will only last until the many innocent sufferers
|
|
have compelled the guilty few to give satisfaction?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, that our citizens should thus deal with their
|
|
Hellenic enemies; and with barbarians as the Hellenes now deal
|
|
with one another.
|
|
|
|
Then let us enact this law also for our guardians:-that they are
|
|
neither to devastate the lands of Hellenes nor to burn their houses.
|
|
|
|
Agreed; and we may agree also in thinking that these, all our
|
|
previous enactments, are very good.
|
|
|
|
But still I must say, Socrates, that if you are allowed to go
|
|
on in this way you will entirely forget the other question
|
|
which at the commencement of this discussion you thrust aside:--
|
|
Is such an order of things possible, and how, if at all?
|
|
For I am quite ready to acknowledge that the plan which you propose,
|
|
if only feasible, would do all sorts of good to the State.
|
|
I will add, what you have omitted, that your citizens will be
|
|
the bravest of warriors, and will never leave their ranks, for they
|
|
will all know one another, and each will call the other father,
|
|
brother, son; and if you suppose the women to join their armies,
|
|
whether in the same rank or in the rear, either as a terror to the enemy,
|
|
or as auxiliaries in case of need, I know that they will then be
|
|
absolutely invincible; and there are many domestic tic advantages
|
|
which might also be mentioned and which I also fully acknowledge:
|
|
but, as I admit all these advantages and as many more as you please,
|
|
if only this State of yours were to come into existence, we need
|
|
say no more about them; assuming then the existence of the State,
|
|
let us now turn to the question of possibility and ways and means--
|
|
the rest may be left.
|
|
|
|
If I loiter for a moment, you instantly make a raid upon me, I said,
|
|
and have no mercy; I have hardly escaped the first and second waves,
|
|
and you seem not to be aware that you are now bringing upon me
|
|
the third, which is the greatest and heaviest. When you have seen
|
|
and heard the third wave, I think you be more considerate and will
|
|
acknowledge that some fear and hesitation was natural respecting
|
|
a proposal so extraordinary as that which I have now to state
|
|
and investigate.
|
|
|
|
The more appeals of this sort which you make, he said, the more
|
|
determined are we that you shall tell us how such a State is possible:
|
|
speak out and at once.
|
|
|
|
Let me begin by reminding you that we found our way hither
|
|
in the search after justice and injustice.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied; but what of that?
|
|
|
|
I was only going to ask whether, if we have discovered them,
|
|
we are to require that the just man should in nothing fail of
|
|
absolute justice; or may we be satisfied with an approximation,
|
|
and the attainment in him of a higher degree of justice than is
|
|
to be found in other men?
|
|
|
|
The approximation will be enough.
|
|
|
|
We are enquiring into the nature of absolute justice and into the character
|
|
of the perfectly just, and into injustice and the perfectly unjust,
|
|
that we might have an ideal. We were to look at these in order
|
|
that we might judge of our own happiness and unhappiness according
|
|
to the standard which they exhibited and the degree in which we resembled
|
|
them, but not with any view of showing that they could exist in fact.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Would a painter be any the worse because, after having delineated
|
|
with consummate art an ideal of a perfectly beautiful man,
|
|
he was unable to show that any such man could ever have existed?
|
|
|
|
He would be none the worse.
|
|
|
|
Well, and were we not creating an ideal of a perfect State?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And is our theory a worse theory because we are unable to prove
|
|
the possibility of a city being ordered in the manner described?
|
|
|
|
Surely not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
That is the truth, I said. But if, at your request, I am to try
|
|
and show how and under what conditions the possibility is highest,
|
|
I must ask you, having this in view, to repeat your former admissions.
|
|
|
|
What admissions?
|
|
|
|
I want to know whether ideals are ever fully realised in language?
|
|
Does not the word express more than the fact, and must not the actual,
|
|
whatever a man may think, always, in the nature of things, fall short
|
|
of the truth? What do you say?
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Then you must not insist on my proving that the actual State will
|
|
in every respect coincide with the ideal: if we are only able
|
|
to discover how a city may be governed nearly as we proposed,
|
|
you will admit that we have discovered the possibility which you demand;
|
|
and will be contented. I am sure that I should be contented--
|
|
will not you?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I will.
|
|
|
|
Let me next endeavour to show what is that fault in States which is
|
|
the cause of their present maladministration, and what is the least
|
|
change which will enable a State to pass into the truer form;
|
|
and let the change, if possible, be of one thing only, or if not, of two;
|
|
at any rate, let the changes be as few and slight as possible.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
I think, I said, that there might be a reform of the State if only
|
|
one change were made, which is not a slight or easy though still
|
|
a possible one.
|
|
|
|
What is it? he said.
|
|
|
|
Now then, I said, I go to meet that which I liken to the greatest
|
|
of the waves; yet shall the word be spoken, even though the wave
|
|
break and drown me in laughter and dishonour; and do you mark my words.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I said: Until philosophers are kings, or the kings and princes
|
|
of this world have the spirit and power of philosophy, and political
|
|
greatness and wisdom meet in one, and those commoner natures
|
|
who pursue either to the exclusion of the other are compelled
|
|
to stand aside, cities will never have rest from their evils,--
|
|
nor the human race, as I believe,--and then only will this our
|
|
State have a possibility of life and behold the light of day.
|
|
Such was the thought, my dear Glaucon, which I would fain have
|
|
uttered if it had not seemed too extravagant; for to be convinced
|
|
that in no other State can there be happiness private or public is
|
|
indeed a hard thing.
|
|
|
|
Socrates, what do you mean? I would have you consider that
|
|
the word which you have uttered is one at which numerous persons,
|
|
and very respectable persons too, in a figure pulling off their
|
|
coats all in a moment, and seizing any weapon that comes to hand,
|
|
will run at you might and main, before you know where you are,
|
|
intending to do heaven knows what; and if you don't prepare an answer,
|
|
and put yourself in motion, you will be prepared by their fine wits,'
|
|
and no mistake.
|
|
|
|
You got me into the scrape, I said.
|
|
|
|
And I was quite right; however, I will do all I can to get you out of it;
|
|
but I can only give you good-will and good advice, and, perhaps,
|
|
I may be able to fit answers to your questions better than another--
|
|
that is all. And now, having such an auxiliary, you must do your best
|
|
to show the unbelievers that you are right.
|
|
|
|
I ought to try, I said, since you offer me such invaluable assistance.
|
|
And I think that, if there is to be a chance of our escaping,
|
|
we must explain to them whom we mean when we say that philosophers
|
|
are to rule in the State; then we shall be able to defend ourselves:
|
|
There will be discovered to be some natures who ought to study
|
|
philosophy and to be leaders in the State; and others who are not
|
|
born to be philosophers, and are meant to be followers rather
|
|
than leaders.
|
|
|
|
Then now for a definition, he said.
|
|
|
|
Follow me, I said, and I hope that I may in some way or other
|
|
be able to give you a satisfactory explanation.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
I dare say that you remember, and therefore I need not remind you,
|
|
that a lover, if lie is worthy of the name, ought to show his love,
|
|
not to some one part of that which he loves, but to the whole.
|
|
|
|
I really do not understand, and therefore beg of you to assist
|
|
my memory.
|
|
|
|
Another person, I said, might fairly reply as you do; but a man
|
|
of pleasure like yourself ought to know that all who are in the flower
|
|
of youth do somehow or other raise a pang or emotion in a lover's breast,
|
|
and are thought by him to be worthy of his affectionate regards.
|
|
Is not this a way which you have with the fair: one has a snub nose,
|
|
and you praise his charming face; the hook-nose of another has,
|
|
you say, a royal look; while he who is neither snub nor hooked
|
|
has the grace of regularity: the dark visage is manly, the fair
|
|
are children of the gods; and as to the sweet `honey pale,'
|
|
as they are called, what is the very name but the invention of a
|
|
lover who talks in diminutives, and is not adverse to paleness
|
|
if appearing on the cheek of youth? In a word, there is no excuse
|
|
which you will not make, and nothing which you will not say,
|
|
in order not to lose a single flower that blooms in the spring-time
|
|
of youth.
|
|
|
|
If you make me an authority in matters of love, for the sake
|
|
of the argument, I assent.
|
|
|
|
And what do you say of lovers of wine? Do you not see them doing
|
|
the same? They are glad of any pretext of drinking any wine.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
And the same is true of ambitious men; if they cannot command an army,
|
|
they are willing to command a file; and if they cannot be honoured
|
|
by really great and important persons, they are glad to be honoured
|
|
by lesser and meaner people, but honour of some kind they must have.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Once more let me ask: Does he who desires any class of goods,
|
|
desire the whole class or a part only?
|
|
|
|
The whole.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say of the philosopher that he is a lover,
|
|
not of a part of wisdom only, but of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of the whole.
|
|
|
|
And he who dislikes learnings, especially in youth, when he has
|
|
no power of judging what is good and what is not, such an one
|
|
we maintain not to be a philosopher or a lover of knowledge,
|
|
just as he who refuses his food is not hungry, and may be said
|
|
to have a bad appetite and not a good one?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Whereas he who has a taste for every sort of knowledge and who is curious
|
|
to learn and is never satisfied, may be justly termed a philosopher?
|
|
Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said: If curiosity makes a philosopher, you will find
|
|
many a strange being will have a title to the name. All the lovers
|
|
of sights have a delight in learning, and must therefore be included.
|
|
Musical amateurs, too, are a folk strangely out of place among
|
|
philosophers, for they are the last persons in the world who would
|
|
come to anything like a philosophical discussion, if they could help,
|
|
while they run about at the Dionysiac festivals as if they had
|
|
let out their ears to hear every chorus; whether the performance
|
|
is in town or country--that makes no difference--they are there.
|
|
Now are we to maintain that all these and any who have similar tastes,
|
|
as well as the professors of quite minor arts, are philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I replied; they are only an imitation.
|
|
|
|
He said: Who then are the true philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Those, I said, who are lovers of the vision of truth.
|
|
|
|
That is also good, he said; but I should like to know what you mean?
|
|
|
|
To another, I replied, I might have a difficulty in explaining;
|
|
but I am sure that you will admit a proposition which I am about
|
|
to make.
|
|
|
|
What is the proposition?
|
|
|
|
That since beauty is the opposite of ugliness, they are two?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And inasmuch as they are two, each of them is one?
|
|
|
|
True again.
|
|
|
|
And of just and unjust, good and evil, and of every other class,
|
|
the same remark holds: taken singly, each of them one; but from
|
|
the various combinations of them with actions and things and with
|
|
one another, they are seen in all sorts of lights and appear many?
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And this is the distinction which I draw between the sight-loving,
|
|
art-loving, practical class and those of whom I am speaking,
|
|
and who are alone worthy of the name of philosophers.
|
|
|
|
How do you distinguish them? he said.
|
|
|
|
The lovers of sounds and sights, I replied, are, as I conceive,
|
|
fond of fine tones and colours and forms and all the artificial
|
|
products that are made out of them, but their mind is incapable
|
|
of seeing or loving absolute beauty.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Few are they who are able to attain to the sight of this.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And he who, having a sense of beautiful things has no sense
|
|
of absolute beauty, or who, if another lead him to a knowledge
|
|
of that beauty is unable to follow--of such an one I ask,
|
|
Is he awake or in a dream only? Reflect: is not the dreamer,
|
|
sleeping or waking, one who likens dissimilar things, who puts
|
|
the copy in the place of the real object?
|
|
|
|
I should certainly say that such an one was dreaming.
|
|
|
|
But take the case of the other, who recognises the existence
|
|
of absolute beauty and is able to distinguish the idea from the
|
|
objects which participate in the idea, neither putting the objects
|
|
in the place of the idea nor the idea in the place of the objects--
|
|
is he a dreamer, or is he awake?
|
|
|
|
He is wide awake.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say that the mind of the one who knows has knowledge,
|
|
and that the mind of the other, who opines only, has opinion
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But suppose that the latter should quarrel with us and dispute
|
|
our statement, can we administer any soothing cordial or advice to him,
|
|
without revealing to him that there is sad disorder in his wits?
|
|
|
|
We must certainly offer him some good advice, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Come, then, and let us think of something to say to him. Shall we begin
|
|
by assuring him that he is welcome to any knowledge which he may have,
|
|
and that we are rejoiced at his having it? But we should like to ask
|
|
him a question: Does he who has knowledge know something or nothing?
|
|
(You must answer for him.)
|
|
|
|
I answer that he knows something.
|
|
|
|
Something that is or is not?
|
|
|
|
Something that is; for how can that which is not ever be known?
|
|
|
|
And are we assured, after looking at the matter from many points
|
|
of view, that absolute being is or may be absolutely known,
|
|
but that the utterly non-existent is utterly unknown?
|
|
|
|
Nothing can be more certain.
|
|
|
|
Good. But if there be anything which is of such a nature as to be
|
|
and not to be, that will have a place intermediate between pure
|
|
being and the absolute negation of being?
|
|
|
|
Yes, between them.
|
|
|
|
And, as knowledge corresponded to being and ignorance of necessity
|
|
to not-being, for that intermediate between being and not-being
|
|
there has to be discovered a corresponding intermediate between
|
|
ignorance and knowledge, if there be such?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Do we admit the existence of opinion?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
As being the same with knowledge, or another faculty?
|
|
|
|
Another faculty.
|
|
|
|
Then opinion and knowledge have to do with different kinds of matter
|
|
corresponding to this difference of faculties?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And knowledge is relative to being and knows being. But before I
|
|
proceed further I will make a division.
|
|
|
|
What division?
|
|
|
|
I will begin by placing faculties in a class by themselves:
|
|
they are powers in us, and in all other things, by which we do as we do.
|
|
Sight and hearing, for example, I should call faculties. Have I
|
|
clearly explained the class which I mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I quite understand.
|
|
|
|
Then let me tell you my view about them. I do not see them,
|
|
and therefore the distinctions of fire, colour, and the like, which enable
|
|
me to discern the differences of some things, do not apply to them.
|
|
In speaking of a faculty I think only of its sphere and its result;
|
|
and that which has the same sphere and the same result I call
|
|
the same faculty, but that which has another sphere and another
|
|
result I call different. Would that be your way of speaking?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And will you be so very good as to answer one more question?
|
|
Would you say that knowledge is a faculty, or in what class would you
|
|
place it?
|
|
|
|
Certainly knowledge is a faculty, and the mightiest of all faculties.
|
|
|
|
And is opinion also a faculty?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; for opinion is that with which we are able
|
|
to form an opinion.
|
|
|
|
And yet you were acknowledging a little while ago that knowledge
|
|
is not the same as opinion?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said: how can any reasonable being ever identify
|
|
that which is infallible with that which errs?
|
|
|
|
An excellent answer, proving, I said, that we are quite conscious
|
|
of a distinction between them.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then knowledge and opinion having distinct powers have also distinct
|
|
spheres or subject-matters?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Being is the sphere or subject-matter of knowledge, and knowledge
|
|
is to know the nature of being?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And opinion is to have an opinion?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And do we know what we opine? or is the subject-matter of opinion
|
|
the same as the subject-matter of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he replied, that has been already disproven; if difference
|
|
in faculty implies difference in the sphere or subject matter, and if,
|
|
as we were saying, opinion and knowledge are distinct faculties,
|
|
then the sphere of knowledge and of opinion cannot be the same.
|
|
|
|
Then if being is the subject-matter of knowledge, something else
|
|
must be the subject-matter of opinion?
|
|
|
|
Yes, something else.
|
|
|
|
Well then, is not-being the subject-matter of opinion? or, rather,
|
|
how can there be an opinion at all about not-being? Reflect:
|
|
when a man has an opinion, has he not an opinion about something?
|
|
Can he have an opinion which is an opinion about nothing?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
He who has an opinion has an opinion about some one thing?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And not-being is not one thing but, properly speaking, nothing?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Of not-being, ignorance was assumed to be the necessary correlative;
|
|
of being, knowledge?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then opinion is not concerned either with being or with not-being?
|
|
|
|
Not with either.
|
|
|
|
And can therefore neither be ignorance nor knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That seems to be true.
|
|
|
|
But is opinion to be sought without and beyond either of them,
|
|
in a greater clearness than knowledge, or in a greater darkness
|
|
than ignorance?
|
|
|
|
In neither.
|
|
|
|
Then I suppose that opinion appears to you to be darker than knowledge,
|
|
but lighter than ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Both; and in no small degree.
|
|
|
|
And also to be within and between them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then you would infer that opinion is intermediate?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
But were we not saying before, that if anything appeared to be of a sort
|
|
which is and is not at the same time, that sort of thing would appear
|
|
also to lie in the interval between pure being and absolute not-being;
|
|
and that the corresponding faculty is neither knowledge nor ignorance,
|
|
but will be found in the interval between them?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in that interval there has now been discovered something
|
|
which we call opinion?
|
|
|
|
There has.
|
|
|
|
Then what remains to be discovered is the object which partakes
|
|
equally of the nature of being and not-being, and cannot rightly be
|
|
termed either, pure and simple; this unknown term, when discovered,
|
|
we may truly call the subject of opinion, and assign each to its
|
|
proper faculty, -the extremes to the faculties of the extremes
|
|
and the mean to the faculty of the mean.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
This being premised, I would ask the gentleman who is of opinion
|
|
that there is no absolute or unchangeable idea of beauty--
|
|
in whose opinion the beautiful is the manifold--he, I say,
|
|
your lover of beautiful sights, who cannot bear to be told that
|
|
the beautiful is one, and the just is one, or that anything is one--
|
|
to him I would appeal, saying, Will you be so very kind, sir, as to tell
|
|
us whether, of all these beautiful things, there is one which will
|
|
not be found ugly; or of the just, which will not be found unjust;
|
|
or of the holy, which will not also be unholy?
|
|
|
|
No, he replied; the beautiful will in some point of view be found ugly;
|
|
and the same is true of the rest.
|
|
|
|
And may not the many which are doubles be also halves?--doubles, that is,
|
|
of one thing, and halves of another?
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And things great and small, heavy and light, as they are termed,
|
|
will not be denoted by these any more than by the opposite names?
|
|
|
|
True; both these and the opposite names will always attach to all
|
|
of them.
|
|
|
|
And can any one of those many things which are called by particular
|
|
names be said to be this rather than not to be this?
|
|
|
|
He replied: They are like the punning riddles which are asked
|
|
at feasts or the children's puzzle about the eunuch aiming
|
|
at the bat, with what he hit him, as they say in the puzzle,
|
|
and upon what the bat was sitting. The individual objects of
|
|
which I am speaking are also a riddle, and have a double sense:
|
|
nor can you fix them in your mind, either as being or not-being,
|
|
or both, or neither.
|
|
|
|
Then what will you do with them? I said. Can they have a better
|
|
place than between being and not-being? For they are clearly
|
|
not in greater darkness or negation than not-being, or more full
|
|
of light and existence than being.
|
|
|
|
That is quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Thus then we seem to have discovered that the many ideas which the multitude
|
|
entertain about the beautiful and about all other things are tossing
|
|
about in some region which is halfway between pure being and pure not-being?
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and we had before agreed that anything of this kind which we
|
|
might find was to be described as matter of opinion, and not as
|
|
matter of knowledge; being the intermediate flux which is caught
|
|
and detained by the intermediate faculty.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then those who see the many beautiful, and who yet neither see
|
|
absolute beauty, nor can follow any guide who points the way thither;
|
|
who see the many just, and not absolute justice, and the like,--
|
|
such persons may be said to have opinion but not knowledge?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
But those who see the absolute and eternal and immutable may be said
|
|
to know, and not to have opinion only?
|
|
|
|
Neither can that be denied.
|
|
|
|
The one loves and embraces the subjects of knowledge, the other those
|
|
of opinion? The latter are the same, as I dare say will remember,
|
|
who listened to sweet sounds and gazed upon fair colours, but would
|
|
not tolerate the existence of absolute beauty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
Shall we then be guilty of any impropriety in calling them lovers
|
|
of opinion rather than lovers of wisdom, and will they be very angry
|
|
with us for thus describing them?
|
|
|
|
I shall tell them not to be angry; no man should be angry at what is true.
|
|
|
|
But those who love the truth in each thing are to be called lovers
|
|
of wisdom and not lovers of opinion.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VI
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
AND thus, Glaucon, after the argument has gone a weary way,
|
|
the true and the false philosophers have at length appeared in view.
|
|
|
|
I do not think, he said, that the way could have been shortened.
|
|
|
|
I suppose not, I said; and yet I believe that we might have had
|
|
a better view of both of them if the discussion could have been
|
|
confined to this one subject and if there were not many other
|
|
questions awaiting us, which he who desires to see in what respect
|
|
the life of the just differs from that of the unjust must consider.
|
|
|
|
And what is the next question? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Surely, I said, the one which follows next in order. Inasmuch as
|
|
philosophers only are able to grasp the eternal and unchangeable,
|
|
and those who wander in the region of the many and variable
|
|
are not philosophers, I must ask you which of the two classes
|
|
should be the rulers of our State?
|
|
|
|
And how can we rightly answer that question?
|
|
|
|
Whichever of the two are best able to guard the laws and institutions
|
|
of our State--let them be our guardians.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Neither, I said, can there be any question that the guardian
|
|
who is to keep anything should have eyes rather than no eyes?
|
|
|
|
There can be no question of that.
|
|
|
|
And are not those who are verily and indeed wanting in the knowledge
|
|
of the true being of each thing, and who have in their souls
|
|
no clear pattern, and are unable as with a painter's eye
|
|
to look at the absolute truth and to that original to repair,
|
|
and having perfect vision of the other world to order the laws
|
|
about beauty, goodness, justice in this, if not already ordered,
|
|
and to guard and preserve the order of them--are not such persons,
|
|
I ask, simply blind?
|
|
|
|
Truly, he replied, they are much in that condition.
|
|
|
|
And shall they be our guardians when there are others who,
|
|
besides being their equals in experience and falling short of them
|
|
in no particular of virtue, also know the very truth of each thing?
|
|
|
|
There can be no reason, he said, for rejecting those who have this
|
|
greatest of all great qualities; they must always have the first
|
|
place unless they fail in some other respect.
|
|
|
|
Suppose then, I said, that we determine how far they can unite this
|
|
and the other excellences.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, as we began by observing, the nature of the
|
|
philosopher has to be ascertained. We must come to an understanding
|
|
about him, and, when we have done so, then, if I am not mistaken,
|
|
we shall also acknowledge that such an union of qualities is possible,
|
|
and that those in whom they are united, and those only, should be
|
|
rulers in the State.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Let us suppose that philosophical minds always love knowledge
|
|
of a sort which shows them the eternal nature not varying from
|
|
generation and corruption.
|
|
|
|
Agreed.
|
|
|
|
And further, I said, let us agree that they are lovers of all true being;
|
|
there is no part whether greater or less, or more or less honourable,
|
|
which they are willing to renounce; as we said before of the lover
|
|
and the man of ambition.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And if they are to be what we were describing, is there not another
|
|
quality which they should also possess?
|
|
|
|
What quality?
|
|
|
|
Truthfulness: they will never intentionally receive into their
|
|
mind falsehood, which is their detestation, and they will love
|
|
the truth.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that may be safely affirmed of them.
|
|
|
|
`May be,' my friend, I replied, is not the word; say rather `must
|
|
be affirmed:' for he whose nature is amorous of anything cannot help
|
|
loving all that belongs or is akin to the object of his affections.
|
|
|
|
Right, he said.
|
|
|
|
And is there anything more akin to wisdom than truth?
|
|
|
|
How can there be?
|
|
|
|
Can the same nature be a lover of wisdom and a lover of falsehood?
|
|
|
|
Never.
|
|
|
|
The true lover of learning then must from his earliest youth,
|
|
as far as in him lies, desire all truth?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
But then again, as we know by experience, he whose desires are
|
|
strong in one direction will have them weaker in others; they will
|
|
be like a stream which has been drawn off into another channel.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He whose desires are drawn towards knowledge in every form will be absorbed
|
|
in the pleasures of the soul, and will hardly feel bodily pleasure--
|
|
I mean, if he be a true philosopher and not a sham one.
|
|
|
|
That is most certain.
|
|
|
|
Such an one is sure to be temperate and the reverse of covetous;
|
|
for the motives which make another man desirous of having and spending,
|
|
have no place in his character.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Another criterion of the philosophical nature has also to be considered.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
There should be no secret corner of illiberality; nothing can
|
|
more antagonistic than meanness to a soul which is ever longing
|
|
after the whole of things both divine and human.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then how can he who has magnificence of mind and is the spectator
|
|
of all time and all existence, think much of human life?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
Or can such an one account death fearful?
|
|
|
|
No indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then the cowardly and mean nature has no part in true philosophy?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Or again: can he who is harmoniously constituted, who is not
|
|
covetous or mean, or a boaster, or a coward-can he, I say,
|
|
ever be unjust or hard in his dealings?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then you will soon observe whether a man is just and gentle,
|
|
or rude and unsociable; these are the signs which distinguish even
|
|
in youth the philosophical nature from the unphilosophical.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There is another point which should be remarked.
|
|
|
|
What point?
|
|
|
|
Whether he has or has not a pleasure in learning; for no one will
|
|
love that which gives him pain, and in which after much toil he
|
|
makes little progress.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And again, if he is forgetful and retains nothing of what he learns,
|
|
will he not be an empty vessel?
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Labouring in vain, he must end in hating himself and his
|
|
fruitless occupation? Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then a soul which forgets cannot be ranked among genuine philosophic natures;
|
|
we must insist that the philosopher should have a good memory?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And once more, the inharmonious and unseemly nature can only tend
|
|
to disproportion?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
And do you consider truth to be akin to proportion or to disproportion?
|
|
|
|
To proportion.
|
|
|
|
Then, besides other qualities, we must try to find a naturally
|
|
well-proportioned and gracious mind, which will move spontaneously
|
|
towards the true being of everything.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Well, and do not all these qualities, which we have been enumerating,
|
|
go together, and are they not, in a manner, necessary to a soul,
|
|
which is to have a full and perfect participation of being?
|
|
|
|
They are absolutely necessary, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And must not that be a blameless study which he only can pursue who has
|
|
the gift of a good memory, and is quick to learn,--noble, gracious,
|
|
the friend of truth, justice, courage, temperance, who are his kindred?
|
|
|
|
The god of jealousy himself, he said, could find no fault with such
|
|
a study.
|
|
|
|
And to men like him, I said, when perfected by years and education,
|
|
and to these only you will entrust the State.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
Here Adeimantus interposed and said: To these statements,
|
|
Socrates, no one can offer a reply; but when you talk in this way,
|
|
a strange feeling passes over the minds of your hearers: They fancy
|
|
that they are led astray a little at each step in the argument,
|
|
owing to their own want of skill in asking and answering questions;
|
|
these littles accumulate, and at the end of the discussion they
|
|
are found to have sustained a mighty overthrow and all their former
|
|
notions appear to be turned upside down. And as unskilful players
|
|
of draughts are at last shut up by their more skilful adversaries
|
|
and have no piece to move, so they too find themselves shut up at last;
|
|
for they have nothing to say in this new game of which words
|
|
are the counters; and yet all the time they are in the right.
|
|
The observation is suggested to me by what is now occurring.
|
|
For any one of us might say, that although in words he is not
|
|
able to meet you at each step of the argument, he sees as a fact
|
|
that the votaries of philosophy, when they carry on the study,
|
|
not only in youth as a part of education, but as the pursuit
|
|
of their maturer years, most of them become strange monsters,
|
|
not to say utter rogues, and that those who may be considered the best
|
|
of them are made useless to the world by the very study which
|
|
you extol.
|
|
|
|
Well, and do you think that those who say so are wrong?
|
|
|
|
I cannot tell, he replied; but I should like to know what is
|
|
your opinion.
|
|
|
|
Hear my answer; I am of opinion that they are quite right.
|
|
|
|
Then how can you be justified in saying that cities will not cease
|
|
from evil until philosophers rule in them, when philosophers
|
|
are acknowledged by us to be of no use to them?
|
|
|
|
You ask a question, I said, to which a reply can only be given
|
|
in a parable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates; and that is a way of speaking to which you are not
|
|
at all accustomed, I suppose.
|
|
|
|
I perceive, I said, that you are vastly amused at having plunged me
|
|
into such a hopeless discussion; but now hear the parable, and then
|
|
you will be still more amused at the meagreness of my imagination:
|
|
for the manner in which the best men are treated in their own States
|
|
is so grievous that no single thing on earth is comparable to it;
|
|
and therefore, if I am to plead their cause, I must have recourse
|
|
to fiction, and put together a figure made up of many things,
|
|
like the fabulous unions of goats and stags which are found
|
|
in pictures. Imagine then a fleet or a ship in which there
|
|
is a captain who is taller and stronger than any of the crew,
|
|
but he is a little deaf and has a similar infirmity in sight,
|
|
and his knowledge of navigation is not much better.
|
|
The sailors are quarrelling with one another about the steering--
|
|
every one is of opinion that he has a right to steer, though he has
|
|
never learned the art of navigation and cannot tell who taught him
|
|
or when he learned, and will further assert that it cannot be taught,
|
|
and they are ready to cut in pieces any one who says the contrary.
|
|
They throng about the captain, begging and praying him to commit
|
|
the helm to them; and if at any time they do not prevail, but others
|
|
are preferred to them, they kill the others or throw them overboard,
|
|
and having first chained up the noble captain's senses with drink
|
|
or some narcotic drug, they mutiny and take possession of the ship
|
|
and make free with the stores; thus, eating and drinking, they proceed
|
|
on their voyage in such a manner as might be expected of them.
|
|
Him who is their partisan and cleverly aids them in their plot
|
|
for getting the ship out of the captain's hands into their own
|
|
whether by force or persuasion, they compliment with the name
|
|
of sailor, pilot, able seaman, and abuse the other sort of man,
|
|
whom they call a good-for-nothing; but that the true pilot must
|
|
pay attention to the year and seasons and sky and stars and winds,
|
|
and whatever else belongs to his art, if he intends to be really
|
|
qualified for the command of a ship, and that he must and will
|
|
be the steerer, whether other people like or not-the possibility
|
|
of this union of authority with the steerer's art has never seriously
|
|
entered into their thoughts or been made part of their calling.
|
|
Now in vessels which are in a state of mutiny and by sailors
|
|
who are mutineers, how will the true pilot be regarded?
|
|
Will he not be called by them a prater, a star-gazer, a
|
|
good-for-nothing?
|
|
|
|
Of course, said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Then you will hardly need, I said, to hear the interpretation of the figure,
|
|
which describes the true philosopher in his relation to the State;
|
|
for you understand already.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then suppose you now take this parable to the gentleman who is
|
|
surprised at finding that philosophers have no honour in their cities;
|
|
explain it to him and try to convince him that their having honour
|
|
would be far more extraordinary.
|
|
|
|
I will.
|
|
|
|
Say to him, that, in deeming the best votaries of philosophy to be
|
|
useless to the rest of the world, he is right; but also tell him
|
|
to attribute their uselessness to the fault of those who will not
|
|
use them, and not to themselves. The pilot should not humbly beg
|
|
the sailors to be commanded by him--that is not the order of nature;
|
|
neither are `the wise to go to the doors of the rich'--the ingenious
|
|
author of this saying told a lie--but the truth is, that, when a man
|
|
is ill, whether he be rich or poor, to the physician he must go,
|
|
and he who wants to be governed, to him who is able to govern.
|
|
The ruler who is good for anything ought not to beg his subjects
|
|
to be ruled by him; although the present governors of mankind are of a
|
|
different stamp; they may be justly compared to the mutinous sailors,
|
|
and the true helmsmen to those who are called by them good-for-nothings
|
|
and star-gazers.
|
|
|
|
Precisely so, he said.
|
|
|
|
For these reasons, and among men like these, philosophy, the noblest
|
|
pursuit of all, is not likely to be much esteemed by those of
|
|
the opposite faction; not that the greatest and most lasting injury
|
|
is done to her by her opponents, but by her own professing followers,
|
|
the same of whom you suppose the accuser to say, that the greater
|
|
number of them are arrant rogues, and the best are useless;
|
|
in which opinion I agreed.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the reason why the good are useless has now been explained?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we proceed to show that the corruption of the majority
|
|
is also unavoidable, and that this is not to be laid to the charge
|
|
of philosophy any more than the other?
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
And let us ask and answer in turn, first going back to the description
|
|
of the gentle and noble nature. Truth, as you will remember,
|
|
was his leader, whom he followed always and in all things;
|
|
failing in this, he was an impostor, and had no part or lot
|
|
in true philosophy.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Well, and is not this one quality, to mention no others,
|
|
greatly at variance with present notions of him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And have we not a right to say in his defence, that the true lover
|
|
of knowledge is always striving after being--that is his nature;
|
|
he will not rest in the multiplicity of individuals which is an
|
|
appearance only, but will go on--the keen edge will not be blunted,
|
|
nor the force of his desire abate until he have attained the knowledge
|
|
of the true nature of every essence by a sympathetic and kindred
|
|
power in the soul, and by that power drawing near and mingling and
|
|
becoming incorporate with very being, having begotten mind and truth,
|
|
he will have knowledge and will live and grow truly, and then,
|
|
and not till then, will he cease from his travail.
|
|
|
|
Nothing, he said, can be more just than such a description of him.
|
|
|
|
And will the love of a lie be any part of a philosopher's nature?
|
|
Will he not utterly hate a lie?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And when truth is the captain, we cannot suspect any evil of the band
|
|
which he leads?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Justice and health of mind will be of the company, and temperance
|
|
will follow after?
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Neither is there any reason why I should again set in array
|
|
the philosopher's virtues, as you will doubtless remember
|
|
that courage, magnificence, apprehension, memory, were his
|
|
natural gifts. And you objected that, although no one could deny
|
|
what I then said, still, if you leave words and look at facts,
|
|
the persons who are thus described are some of them manifestly useless,
|
|
and the greater number utterly depraved; we were then led to enquire
|
|
into the grounds of these accusations, and have now arrived at the point
|
|
of asking why are the majority bad, which question of necessity
|
|
brought us back to the examination and definition of the true philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And we have next to consider the of the philosophic nature,
|
|
why so many are spoiled and so few escape spoiling--I am speaking
|
|
of those who were said to be useless but not wicked--and, when we
|
|
have done with them, we will speak of the imitators of philosophy,
|
|
what manner of men are they who aspire after a profession
|
|
which is above them and of which they are unworthy, and then,
|
|
by their manifold inconsistencies, bring upon philosophy, and upon
|
|
all philosophers, that universal reprobation of which we speak.
|
|
|
|
What are these corruptions? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will see if I can explain them to you. Every one will admit that
|
|
a nature having in perfection all the qualities which we required
|
|
in a philosopher, is a rare plant which is seldom seen among men.
|
|
|
|
Rare indeed.
|
|
|
|
And what numberless and powerful causes tend to destroy these
|
|
rare natures!
|
|
|
|
What causes?
|
|
|
|
In the first place there are their own virtues, their courage, temperance,
|
|
and the rest of them, every one of which praise worthy qualities
|
|
(and this is a most singular circumstance) destroys and distracts
|
|
from philosophy the soul which is the possessor of them.
|
|
|
|
That is very singular, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then there are all the ordinary goods of life--beauty, wealth,
|
|
strength, rank, and great connections in the State--you understand
|
|
the sort of things--these also have a corrupting and distracting effect.
|
|
|
|
I understand; but I should like to know more precisely what you
|
|
mean about them.
|
|
|
|
Grasp the truth as a whole, I said, and in the right way; you will
|
|
then have no difficulty in apprehending the preceding remarks,
|
|
and they will no longer appear strange to you.
|
|
|
|
And how am I to do so? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, we know that all germs or seeds, whether vegetable
|
|
or animal, when they fail to meet with proper nutriment or climate
|
|
or soil, in proportion to their vigour, are all the more sensitive
|
|
to the want of a suitable environment, for evil is a greater enemy
|
|
to what is good than what is not.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
There is reason in supposing that the finest natures, when under
|
|
alien conditions, receive more injury than the inferior,
|
|
because the contrast is greater.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say, Adeimantus, that the most gifted minds,
|
|
when they are ill-educated, become pre-eminently bad? Do not
|
|
great crimes and the spirit of pure evil spring out of a fulness
|
|
of nature ruined by education rather than from any inferiority,
|
|
whereas weak natures are scarcely capable of any very great good
|
|
or very great evil?
|
|
|
|
There I think that you are right.
|
|
|
|
And our philosopher follows the same analogy-he is like a plant which,
|
|
having proper nurture, must necessarily grow and mature
|
|
into all virtue, but, if sown and planted in an alien soil,
|
|
becomes the most noxious of all weeds, unless he be preserved
|
|
by some divine power. Do you really think, as people so often say,
|
|
that our youth are corrupted by Sophists, or that private teachers
|
|
of the art corrupt them in any degree worth speaking of?
|
|
Are not the public who say these things the greatest of all Sophists?
|
|
And do they not educate to perfection young and old, men and women alike,
|
|
and fashion them after their own hearts?
|
|
|
|
When is this accomplished? he said.
|
|
|
|
When they meet together, and the world sits down at an assembly,
|
|
or in a court of law, or a theatre, or a camp, or in any other
|
|
popular resort, and there is a great uproar, and they praise
|
|
some things which are being said or done, and blame other things,
|
|
equally exaggerating both, shouting and clapping their hands,
|
|
and the echo of the rocks and the place in which they are assembled
|
|
redoubles the sound of the praise or blame--at such a time will not
|
|
a young man's heart, as they say, leap within him? Will any private
|
|
training enable him to stand firm against the overwhelming flood
|
|
of popular opinion? or will he be carried away by the stream?
|
|
Will he not have the notions of good and evil which the public
|
|
in general have--he will do as they do, and as they are, such will
|
|
he be?
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates; necessity will compel him.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, there is a still greater necessity, which has
|
|
not been mentioned.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The gentle force of attainder or confiscation or death which,
|
|
as you are aware, these new Sophists and educators who are the public,
|
|
apply when their words are powerless.
|
|
|
|
Indeed they do; and in right good earnest.
|
|
|
|
Now what opinion of any other Sophist, or of any private person,
|
|
can be expected to overcome in such an unequal contest?
|
|
|
|
None, he replied.
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, I said, even to make the attempt is a great piece
|
|
of folly; there neither is, nor has been, nor is ever likely to be,
|
|
any different type of character which has had no other training
|
|
in virtue but that which is supplied by public opinion--I speak,
|
|
my friend, of human virtue only; what is more than human,
|
|
as the proverb says, is not included: for I would not have
|
|
you ignorant that, in the present evil state of governments,
|
|
whatever is saved and comes to good is saved by the power of God,
|
|
as we may truly say.
|
|
|
|
I quite assent, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then let me crave your assent also to a further observation.
|
|
|
|
What are you going to say?
|
|
|
|
Why, that all those mercenary individuals, whom the many call
|
|
Sophists and whom they deem to be their adversaries, do, in fact,
|
|
teach nothing but the opinion of the many, that is to say, the opinions
|
|
of their assemblies; and this is their wisdom. I might compare them
|
|
to a man who should study the tempers and desires of a mighty strong
|
|
beast who is fed by him-he would learn how to approach and handle him,
|
|
also at what times and from what causes he is dangerous or the reverse,
|
|
and what is the meaning of his several cries, and by what sounds,
|
|
when another utters them, he is soothed or infuriated; and you
|
|
may suppose further, that when, by continually attending upon him,
|
|
he has become perfect in all this, he calls his knowledge wisdom,
|
|
and makes of it a system or art, which he proceeds to teach,
|
|
although he has no real notion of what he means by the principles
|
|
or passions of which he is speaking, but calls this honourable
|
|
and that dishonourable, or good or evil, or just or unjust,
|
|
all in accordance with the tastes and tempers of the great brute.
|
|
Good he pronounces to be that in which the beast delights and evil to be
|
|
that which he dislikes; and he can give no other account of them except
|
|
that the just and noble are the necessary, having never himself seen,
|
|
and having no power of explaining to others the nature of either,
|
|
or the difference between them, which is immense. By heaven,
|
|
would not such an one be a rare educator?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he would.
|
|
|
|
And in what way does he who thinks that wisdom is the discernment
|
|
of the tempers and tastes of the motley multitude, whether in painting
|
|
or music, or, finally, in politics, differ from him whom I have been
|
|
describing For when a man consorts with the many, and exhibits
|
|
to them his poem or other work of art or the service which he has
|
|
done the State, making them his judges when he is not obliged,
|
|
the so-called necessity of Diomede will oblige him to produce whatever
|
|
they praise. And yet the reasons are utterly ludicrous which they give
|
|
in confirmation of their own notions about the honourable and good.
|
|
Did you ever hear any of them which were not?
|
|
|
|
No, nor am I likely to hear.
|
|
|
|
You recognise the truth of what I have been saying? Then let me ask you
|
|
to consider further whether the world will ever be induced to believe
|
|
in the existence of absolute beauty rather than of the many beautiful,
|
|
or of the absolute in each kind rather than of the many in each kind?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then the world cannot possibly be a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And therefore philosophers must inevitably fall under the censure
|
|
of the world?
|
|
|
|
They must.
|
|
|
|
And of individuals who consort with the mob and seek to please them?
|
|
|
|
That is evident.
|
|
|
|
Then, do you see any way in which the philosopher can be preserved
|
|
in his calling to the end? and remember what we were saying of him,
|
|
that he was to have quickness and memory and courage and magnificence--
|
|
these were admitted by us to be the true philosopher's gifts.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Will not such an one from his early childhood be in all things
|
|
first among all, especially if his bodily endowments are like his
|
|
mental ones?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And his friends and fellow-citizens will want to use him as he gets
|
|
older for their own purposes?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Falling at his feet, they will make requests to him and do him honour
|
|
and flatter him, because they want to get into their hands now,
|
|
the power which he will one day possess.
|
|
|
|
That often happens, he said.
|
|
|
|
And what will a man such as he be likely to do under such circumstances,
|
|
especially if he be a citizen of a great city, rich and noble,
|
|
and a tall proper youth? Will he not be full of boundless aspirations,
|
|
and fancy himself able to manage the affairs of Hellenes and of barbarians,
|
|
and having got such notions into his head will he not dilate
|
|
and elevate himself in the fulness of vain pomp and senseless pride?
|
|
|
|
To be sure he will.
|
|
|
|
Now, when he is in this state of mind, if some one gently comes
|
|
to him and tells him that he is a fool and must get understanding,
|
|
which can only be got by slaving for it, do you think that,
|
|
under such adverse circumstances, he will be easily induced
|
|
to listen?
|
|
|
|
Far otherwise.
|
|
|
|
And even if there be some one who through inherent goodness
|
|
or natural reasonableness has had his eyes opened a little and is
|
|
humbled and taken captive by philosophy, how will his friends
|
|
behave when they think that they are likely to lose the advantage
|
|
which they were hoping to reap from his companionship?
|
|
Will they not do and say anything to prevent him from yielding
|
|
to his better nature and to render his teacher powerless,
|
|
using to this end private intrigues as well as public prosecutions?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt of it.
|
|
|
|
And how can one who is thus circumstanced ever become a philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Then were we not right in saying that even the very qualities
|
|
which make a man a philosopher may, if he be ill-educated, divert
|
|
him from philosophy, no less than riches and their accompaniments
|
|
and the other so-called goods of life?
|
|
|
|
We were quite right.
|
|
|
|
Thus, my excellent friend, is brought about all that ruin and failure
|
|
which I have been describing of the natures best adapted to the best
|
|
of all pursuits; they are natures which we maintain to be rare at any time;
|
|
this being the class out of which come the men who are the authors
|
|
of the greatest evil to States and individuals; and also of the greatest
|
|
good when the tide carries them in that direction; but a small
|
|
man never was the doer of any great thing either to individuals or to States.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And so philosophy is left desolate, with her marriage rite incomplete:
|
|
for her own have fallen away and forsaken her, and while they
|
|
are leading a false and unbecoming life, other unworthy persons,
|
|
seeing that she has no kinsmen to be her protectors, enter in
|
|
and dishonour her; and fasten upon her the reproaches which,
|
|
as you say, her reprovers utter, who affirm of her votaries that
|
|
some are good for nothing, and that the greater number deserve
|
|
the severest punishment.
|
|
|
|
That is certainly what people say.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and what else would you expect, I said, when you think of the puny
|
|
creatures who, seeing this land open to them--a land well stocked
|
|
with fair names and showy titles--like prisoners running out of prison
|
|
into a sanctuary, take a leap out of their trades into philosophy;
|
|
those who do so being probably the cleverest hands at their own
|
|
miserable crafts? For, although philosophy be in this evil case,
|
|
still there remains a dignity about her which is not to be found
|
|
in the arts. And many are thus attracted by her whose natures
|
|
are imperfect and whose souls are maimed and disfigured by
|
|
their meannesses, as their bodies are by their trades and crafts.
|
|
Is not this unavoidable?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Are they not exactly like a bald little tinker who has just got
|
|
out of durance and come into a fortune; he takes a bath and puts
|
|
on a new coat, and is decked out as a bridegroom going to marry
|
|
his master's daughter, who is left poor and desolate?
|
|
|
|
A most exact parallel.
|
|
|
|
What will be the issue of such marriages? Will they not be vile
|
|
and bastard?
|
|
|
|
There can be no question of it.
|
|
|
|
And when persons who are unworthy of education approach philosophy
|
|
and make an alliance with her who is a rank above them what sort
|
|
of ideas and opinions are likely to be generated? Will they not be
|
|
sophisms captivating to the ear, having nothing in them genuine,
|
|
or worthy of or akin to true wisdom?
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, Adeimantus, I said, the worthy disciples of philosophy will be
|
|
but a small remnant: perchance some noble and well-educated person,
|
|
detained by exile in her service, who in the absence of corrupting
|
|
influences remains devoted to her; or some lofty soul born
|
|
in a mean city, the politics of which he contemns and neglects;
|
|
and there may be a gifted few who leave the arts, which they
|
|
justly despise, and come to her;--or peradventure there are some
|
|
who are restrained by our friend Theages' bridle; for everything
|
|
in the life of Theages conspired to divert him from philosophy;
|
|
but ill-health kept him away from politics. My own case of
|
|
the internal sign is hardly worth mentioning, for rarely, if ever,
|
|
has such a monitor been given to any other man. Those who belong
|
|
to this small class have tasted how sweet and blessed a possession
|
|
philosophy is, and have also seen enough of the madness of the multitude;
|
|
and they know that no politician is honest, nor is there any
|
|
champion of justice at whose side they may fight and be saved.
|
|
Such an one may be compared to a man who has fallen among wild beasts--
|
|
he will not join in the wickedness of his fellows, but neither
|
|
is he able singly to resist all their fierce natures, and therefore
|
|
seeing that he would be of no use to the State or to his friends,
|
|
and reflecting that he would have to throw away his life without
|
|
doing any good either to himself or others, he holds his peace,
|
|
and goes his own way. He is like one who, in the storm of dust and
|
|
sleet which the driving wind hurries along, retires under the shelter
|
|
of a wall; and seeing the rest of mankind full of wickedness,
|
|
he is content, if only he can live his own life and be pure from
|
|
evil or unrighteousness, and depart in peace and good-will, with
|
|
bright hopes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he will have done a great work before he departs.
|
|
|
|
A great work--yes; but not the greatest, unless he find a State
|
|
suitable to him; for in a State which is suitable to him,
|
|
he will have a larger growth and be the saviour of his country,
|
|
as well as of himself.
|
|
|
|
The causes why philosophy is in such an evil name have now been
|
|
sufficiently explained: the injustice of the charges against
|
|
her has been shown-is there anything more which you wish to say?
|
|
|
|
Nothing more on that subject, he replied; but I should like to know
|
|
which of the governments now existing is in your opinion the one
|
|
adapted to her.
|
|
|
|
Not any of them, I said; and that is precisely the accusation which I
|
|
bring against them--not one of them is worthy of the philosophic nature,
|
|
and hence that nature is warped and estranged;--as the exotic
|
|
seed which is sown in a foreign land becomes denaturalized,
|
|
and is wont to be overpowered and to lose itself in the new soil,
|
|
even so this growth of philosophy, instead of persisting,
|
|
degenerates and receives another character. But if philosophy ever
|
|
finds in the State that perfection which she herself is, then will
|
|
be seen that she is in truth divine, and that all other things,
|
|
whether natures of men or institutions, are but human;--and now,
|
|
I know that you are going to ask, what that State is.
|
|
|
|
No, he said; there you are wrong, for I was going to ask another question--
|
|
whether it is the State of which. we are the founders and inventors,
|
|
or some other?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, ours in most respects; but you may remember my
|
|
saying before, that some living authority would always be required
|
|
in the State having the same idea of the constitution which guided
|
|
you when as legislator you were laying down the laws.
|
|
|
|
That was said, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, but not in a satisfactory manner; you frightened us by
|
|
interposing objections, which certainly showed that the discussion
|
|
would be long and difficult; and what still remains is the reverse of easy.
|
|
|
|
What is there remaining?
|
|
|
|
The question how the study of philosophy may be so ordered as not to be
|
|
the ruin of the State: All great attempts are attended with risk;
|
|
`hard is the good,' as men say.
|
|
|
|
Still, he said, let the point be cleared up, and the enquiry
|
|
will then be complete.
|
|
|
|
I shall not be hindered, I said, by any want of will, but, if at all,
|
|
by a want of power: my zeal you may see for yourselves; and please
|
|
to remark in what I am about to say how boldly and unhesitatingly I
|
|
declare that States should pursue philosophy, not as they do now,
|
|
but in a different spirit.
|
|
|
|
In what manner?
|
|
|
|
At present, I said, the students of philosophy are quite young;
|
|
beginning when they are hardly past childhood, they devote only the time
|
|
saved from moneymaking and housekeeping to such pursuits; and even
|
|
those of them who are reputed to have most of the philosophic spirit,
|
|
when they come within sight of the great difficulty of the subject,
|
|
I mean dialectic, take themselves off. In after life when invited
|
|
by some one else, they may, perhaps, go and hear a lecture,
|
|
and about this they make much ado, for philosophy is not considered
|
|
by them to be their proper business: at last, when they grow old,
|
|
in most cases they are extinguished more truly than Heracleitus'
|
|
sun, inasmuch as they never light up again.
|
|
|
|
But what ought to be their course?
|
|
|
|
Just the opposite. In childhood and youth their study, and what
|
|
philosophy they learn, should be suited to their tender years:
|
|
during this period while they are growing up towards manhood,
|
|
the chief and special care should be given to their bodies
|
|
that they may have them to use in the service of philosophy;
|
|
as life advances and the intellect begins to mature, let them increase
|
|
the gymnastics of the soul; but when the strength of our citizens
|
|
fails and is past civil and military duties, then let them range
|
|
at will and engage in no serious labour, as we intend them to live
|
|
happily here, and to crown this life with a similar happiness
|
|
in another.
|
|
|
|
How truly in earnest you are, Socrates! he said; I am sure of that;
|
|
and yet most of your hearers, if I am not mistaken, are likely to be still
|
|
more earnest in their opposition to you, and will never be convinced;
|
|
Thrasymachus least of all.
|
|
|
|
Do not make a quarrel, I said, between Thrasymachus and me, who have
|
|
recently become friends, although, indeed, we were never enemies;
|
|
for I shall go on striving to the utmost until I either convert him
|
|
and other men, or do something which may profit them against the day
|
|
when they live again, and hold the like discourse in another state
|
|
of existence.
|
|
|
|
You are speaking of a time which is not very near.
|
|
|
|
Rather, I replied, of a time which is as nothing in comparison
|
|
with eternity. Nevertheless, I do not wonder that the many refuse
|
|
to believe; for they have never seen that of which we are now
|
|
speaking realised; they have seen only a conventional imitation
|
|
of philosophy, consisting of words artificially brought together,
|
|
not like these of ours having a natural unity. But a human being
|
|
who in word and work is perfectly moulded, as far as he can be,
|
|
into the proportion and likeness of virtue--such a man ruling
|
|
in a city which bears the same image, they have never yet seen,
|
|
neither one nor many of them--do you think that they ever did?
|
|
|
|
No indeed.
|
|
|
|
No, my friend, and they have seldom, if ever, heard free and noble sentiments;
|
|
such as men utter when they are earnestly and by every means in their
|
|
power seeking after truth for the sake of knowledge, while they look
|
|
coldly on the subtleties of controversy, of which the end is opinion
|
|
and strife, whether they meet with them in the courts of law or in society.
|
|
|
|
They are strangers, he said, to the words of which you speak.
|
|
|
|
And this was what we foresaw, and this was the reason why truth
|
|
forced us to admit, not without fear and hesitation, that neither
|
|
cities nor States nor individuals will ever attain perfection until
|
|
the small class of philosophers whom we termed useless but not
|
|
corrupt are providentially compelled, whether they will or not,
|
|
to take care of the State, and until a like necessity be laid
|
|
on the State to obey them; or until kings, or if not kings,
|
|
the sons of kings or princes, are divinely inspired with a true
|
|
love of true philosophy. That either or both of these alternatives
|
|
are impossible, I see no reason to affirm: if they were so,
|
|
we might indeed be justly ridiculed as dreamers and visionaries.
|
|
Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Quite right.
|
|
|
|
If then, in the countless ages of the past, or at the present
|
|
hour in some foreign clime which is far away and beyond our ken,
|
|
the perfected philosopher is or has been or hereafter shall be
|
|
compelled by a superior power to have the charge of the State,
|
|
we are ready to assert to the death, that this our constitution has been,
|
|
and is--yea, and will be whenever the Muse of Philosophy is queen.
|
|
There is no impossibility in all this; that there is a difficulty,
|
|
we acknowledge ourselves.
|
|
|
|
My opinion agrees with yours, he said.
|
|
|
|
But do you mean to say that this is not the opinion of the multitude?
|
|
|
|
I should imagine not, he replied.
|
|
|
|
O my friend, I said, do not attack the multitude: they will change
|
|
their minds, if, not in an aggressive spirit, but gently and with
|
|
the view of soothing them and removing their dislike of over-education,
|
|
you show them your philosophers as they really are and describe
|
|
as you were just now doing their character and profession,
|
|
and then mankind will see that he of whom you are speaking is not
|
|
such as they supposed--if they view him in this new light, they will
|
|
surely change their notion of him, and answer in another strain.
|
|
Who can be at enmity with one who loves them, who that is himself
|
|
gentle and free from envy will be jealous of one in whom there
|
|
is no jealousy? Nay, let me answer for you, that in a few this
|
|
harsh temper may be found but not in the majority of mankind.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
And do you not also think, as I do, that the harsh feeling which
|
|
the many entertain towards philosophy originates in the pretenders,
|
|
who rush in uninvited, and are always abusing them, and finding fault
|
|
with them, who make persons instead of things the theme of their
|
|
conversation? and nothing can be more unbecoming in philosophers
|
|
than this.
|
|
|
|
It is most unbecoming.
|
|
|
|
For he, Adeimantus, whose mind is fixed upon true being,
|
|
has surely no time to look down upon the affairs of earth,
|
|
or to be filled with malice and envy, contending against men;
|
|
his eye is ever directed towards things fixed and immutable,
|
|
which he sees neither injuring nor injured by one another,
|
|
but all in order moving according to reason; these he imitates,
|
|
and to these he will, as far as he can, conform himself. Can a man
|
|
help imitating that with which he holds reverential converse?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And the philosopher holding converse with the divine order,
|
|
becomes orderly and divine, as far as the nature of man allows;
|
|
but like every one else, he will suffer from detraction.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And if a necessity be laid upon him of fashioning, not only himself,
|
|
but human nature generally, whether in States or individuals,
|
|
into that which he beholds elsewhere, will he, think you, be an
|
|
unskilful artificer of justice, temperance, and every civil virtue?
|
|
|
|
Anything but unskilful.
|
|
|
|
And if the world perceives that what we are saying about him is the truth,
|
|
will they be angry with philosophy? Will they disbelieve us,
|
|
when we tell them that no State can be happy which is not designed
|
|
by artists who imitate the heavenly pattern?
|
|
|
|
They will not be angry if they understand, he said. But how will
|
|
they draw out the plan of which you are speaking?
|
|
|
|
They will begin by taking the State and the manners of men,
|
|
from which, as from a tablet, they will rub out the picture, and leave
|
|
a clean surface. This is no easy task. But whether easy or not,
|
|
herein will lie the difference between them and every other legislator,--
|
|
they will have nothing to do either with individual or State, and will
|
|
inscribe no laws, until they have either found, or themselves made,
|
|
a clean surface.
|
|
|
|
They will be very right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Having effected this, they will proceed to trace an outline
|
|
of the constitution?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
And when they are filling in the work, as I conceive, they will
|
|
often turn their eyes upwards and downwards: I mean that they
|
|
will first look at absolute justice and beauty and temperance,
|
|
and again at the human copy; and will mingle and temper the various
|
|
elements of life into the image of a man; and thus they will conceive
|
|
according to that other image, which, when existing among men,
|
|
Homer calls the form and likeness of God.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And one feature they will erase, and another they will put in,
|
|
they have made the ways of men, as far as possible, agreeable to
|
|
the ways of God?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, in no way could they make a fairer picture.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, are we beginning to persuade those whom you
|
|
described as rushing at us with might and main, that the painter
|
|
of constitutions is such an one as we are praising; at whom they
|
|
were so very indignant because to his hands we committed the State;
|
|
and are they growing a little calmer at what they have just heard?
|
|
|
|
Much calmer, if there is any sense in them.
|
|
|
|
Why, where can they still find any ground for objection?
|
|
Will they doubt that the philosopher is a lover of truth and being?
|
|
|
|
They would not be so unreasonable.
|
|
|
|
Or that his nature, being such as we have delineated, is akin
|
|
to the highest good?
|
|
|
|
Neither can they doubt this.
|
|
|
|
But again, will they tell us that such a nature, placed under
|
|
favourable circumstances, will not be perfectly good and wise
|
|
if any ever was? Or will they prefer those whom we have rejected?
|
|
|
|
Surely not.
|
|
|
|
Then will they still be angry at our saying, that, until philosophers
|
|
bear rule, States and individuals will have no rest from evil,
|
|
nor will this our imaginary State ever be realised?
|
|
|
|
I think that they will be less angry.
|
|
|
|
Shall we assume that they are not only less angry but quite gentle,
|
|
and that they have been converted and for very shame, if for no
|
|
other reason, cannot refuse to come to terms?
|
|
|
|
By all means, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then let us suppose that the reconciliation has been effected.
|
|
Will any one deny the other point, that there may be sons of kings
|
|
or princes who are by nature philosophers?
|
|
|
|
Surely no man, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when they have come into being will any one say that they must
|
|
of necessity be destroyed; that they can hardly be saved is not
|
|
denied even by us; but that in the whole course of ages no single
|
|
one of them can escape--who will venture to affirm this?
|
|
|
|
Who indeed!
|
|
|
|
But, said I, one is enough; let there be one man who has a city
|
|
obedient to his will, and he might bring into existence the ideal
|
|
polity about which the world is so incredulous.
|
|
|
|
Yes, one is enough.
|
|
|
|
The ruler may impose the laws and institutions which we have
|
|
been describing, and the citizens may possibly be willing to obey them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that others should approve of what we approve, is no miracle
|
|
or impossibility?
|
|
|
|
I think not.
|
|
|
|
But we have sufficiently shown, in what has preceded, that all this,
|
|
if only possible, is assuredly for the best.
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
And now we say not only that our laws, if they could be enacted,
|
|
would be for the best, but also that the enactment of them,
|
|
though difficult, is not impossible.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
And so with pain and toil we have reached the end of one subject,
|
|
but more remains to be discussed;--how and by what studies and pursuits
|
|
will the saviours of the constitution be created, and at what ages
|
|
are they to apply themselves to their several studies?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
I omitted the troublesome business of the possession of women,
|
|
and the procreation of children, and the appointment of the rulers,
|
|
because I knew that the perfect State would be eyed with jealousy
|
|
and was difficult of attainment; but that piece of cleverness was
|
|
not of much service to me, for I had to discuss them all the same.
|
|
The women and children are now disposed of, but the other question
|
|
of the rulers must be investigated from the very beginning.
|
|
We were saying, as you will remember, that they were to be lovers
|
|
of their country, tried by the test of pleasures and pains,
|
|
and neither in hardships, nor in dangers, nor at any other critical
|
|
moment were to lose their patriotism--he was to be rejected
|
|
who failed, but he who always came forth pure, like gold tried
|
|
in the refiner's fire, was to be made a ruler, and to receive
|
|
honours and rewards in life and after death. This was the sort
|
|
of thing which was being said, and then the argument turned aside
|
|
and veiled her face; not liking to stir the question which has
|
|
now arisen.
|
|
|
|
I perfectly remember, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, I said, and I then shrank from hazarding the bold word;
|
|
but now let me dare to say--that the perfect guardian must be
|
|
a philosopher.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, let that be affirmed.
|
|
|
|
And do not suppose that there will be many of them; for the gifts
|
|
which were deemed by us to be essential rarely grow together;
|
|
they are mostly found in shreds and patches.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
You are aware, I replied, that quick intelligence, memory, sagacity,
|
|
cleverness, and similar qualities, do not often grow together,
|
|
and that persons who possess them and are at the same time
|
|
high-spirited and magnanimous are not so constituted by nature
|
|
as to live orderly and in a peaceful and settled manner; they are
|
|
driven any way by their impulses, and all solid principle goes out of them.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, those steadfast natures which can better be
|
|
depended upon, which in a battle are impregnable to fear and immovable,
|
|
are equally immovable when there is anything to be learned;
|
|
they are always in a torpid state, and are apt to yawn and go
|
|
to sleep over any intellectual toil.
|
|
|
|
Quite true.
|
|
|
|
And yet we were saying that both qualities were necessary
|
|
in those to whom the higher education is to be imparted,
|
|
and who are to share in any office or command.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And will they be a class which is rarely found?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Then the aspirant must not only be tested in those labours
|
|
and dangers and pleasures which we mentioned before, but there
|
|
is another kind of probation which we did not mention--he must be
|
|
exercised also in many kinds of knowledge, to see whether the soul
|
|
will be able to endure the highest of all, will faint under them,
|
|
as in any other studies and exercises.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, you are quite right in testing him. But what do you
|
|
mean by the highest of all knowledge?
|
|
|
|
You may remember, I said, that we divided the soul into three parts;
|
|
and distinguished the several natures of justice, temperance, courage,
|
|
and wisdom?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, he said, if I had forgotten, I should not deserve to hear more.
|
|
|
|
And do you remember the word of caution which preceded the discussion
|
|
of them?
|
|
|
|
To what do you refer?
|
|
|
|
We were saying, if I am not mistaken, that he who wanted to see them
|
|
in their perfect beauty must take a longer and more circuitous way,
|
|
at the end of which they would appear; but that we could add on a popular
|
|
exposition of them on a level with the discussion which had preceded.
|
|
And you replied that such an exposition would be enough for you,
|
|
and so the enquiry was continued in what to me seemed to be a very
|
|
inaccurate manner; whether you were satisfied or not, it is for you
|
|
to say.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I thought and the others thought that you gave us
|
|
a fair measure of truth.
|
|
|
|
But, my friend, I said, a measure of such things Which in any degree
|
|
falls short of the whole truth is not fair measure; for nothing
|
|
imperfect is the measure of anything, although persons are too apt
|
|
to be contented and think that they need search no further.
|
|
|
|
Not an uncommon case when people are indolent.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there cannot be any worse fault in a guardian
|
|
of the State and of the laws.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The guardian then, I said, must be required to take the longer circuit,
|
|
and toll at learning as well as at gymnastics, or he will never reach
|
|
the highest knowledge of all which, as we were just now saying,
|
|
is his proper calling.
|
|
|
|
What, he said, is there a knowledge still higher than this--
|
|
higher than justice and the other virtues?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, there is. And of the virtues too we must behold not
|
|
the outline merely, as at present--nothing short of the most finished
|
|
picture should satisfy us. When little things are elaborated
|
|
with an infinity of pains, in order that they may appear in their
|
|
full beauty and utmost clearness, how ridiculous that we should
|
|
not think the highest truths worthy of attaining the highest accuracy!
|
|
|
|
A right noble thought; but do you suppose that we shall refrain
|
|
from asking you what is this highest knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Nay, I said, ask if you will; but I am certain that you have heard
|
|
the answer many times, and now you either do not understand me or,
|
|
as I rather think, you are disposed to be troublesome; for you
|
|
have of been told that the idea of good is the highest knowledge,
|
|
and that all other things become useful and advantageous only
|
|
by their use of this. You can hardly be ignorant that of this
|
|
I was about to speak, concerning which, as you have often heard
|
|
me say, we know so little; and, without which, any other knowledge
|
|
or possession of any kind will profit us nothing. Do you think
|
|
that the possession of all other things is of any value if we do
|
|
not possess the good? or the knowledge of all other things if we
|
|
have no knowledge of beauty and goodness?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not.
|
|
|
|
You are further aware that most people affirm pleasure to be the good,
|
|
but the finer sort of wits say it is knowledge
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you are aware too that the latter cannot explain what they mean
|
|
by knowledge, but are obliged after all to say knowledge of the good?
|
|
|
|
How ridiculous!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, that they should begin by reproaching us with our
|
|
ignorance of the good, and then presume our knowledge of it--
|
|
for the good they define to be knowledge of the good, just as if we
|
|
understood them when they use the term `good'--this is of course ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And those who make pleasure their good are in equal perplexity;
|
|
for they are compelled to admit that there are bad pleasures as well
|
|
as good.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And therefore to acknowledge that bad and good are the same?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt about the numerous difficulties in which this
|
|
question is involved.
|
|
|
|
There can be none.
|
|
|
|
Further, do we not see that many are willing to do or to have
|
|
or to seem to be what is just and honourable without the reality;
|
|
but no one is satisfied with the appearance of good--the reality
|
|
is what they seek; in the case of the good, appearance is despised
|
|
by every one.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Of this then, which every soul of man pursues and makes the end
|
|
of all his actions, having a presentiment that there is such an end,
|
|
and yet hesitating because neither knowing the nature nor having
|
|
the same assurance of this as of other things, and therefore
|
|
losing whatever good there is in other things,--of a principle
|
|
such and so great as this ought the best men in our State, to whom
|
|
everything is entrusted, to be in the darkness of ignorance?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
I am sure, I said, that he who does not know now the beautiful
|
|
and the just are likewise good will be but a sorry guardian of them;
|
|
and I suspect that no one who is ignorant of the good will have a true
|
|
knowledge of them.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a shrewd suspicion of yours.
|
|
|
|
And if we only have a guardian who has this knowledge our State
|
|
will be perfectly ordered?
|
|
|
|
Of course, he replied; but I wish that you would tell me whether
|
|
you conceive this supreme principle of the good to be knowledge
|
|
or pleasure, or different from either.
|
|
|
|
Aye, I said, I knew all along that a fastidious gentleman like you
|
|
would not be contented with the thoughts of other people about
|
|
these matters.
|
|
|
|
True, Socrates; but I must say that one who like you has passed
|
|
a lifetime in the study of philosophy should not be always repeating
|
|
the opinions of others, and never telling his own.
|
|
|
|
Well, but has any one a right to say positively what he does not know?
|
|
|
|
Not, he said, with the assurance of positive certainty;
|
|
he has no right to do that: but he may say what he thinks,
|
|
as a matter of opinion.
|
|
|
|
And do you not know, I said, that all mere opinions are bad,
|
|
and the best of them blind? You would not deny that those who
|
|
have any true notion without intelligence are only like blind
|
|
men who feel their way along the road?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And do you wish to behold what is blind and crooked and base,
|
|
when others will tell you of brightness and beauty?
|
|
|
|
GLAUCON - SOCRATES
|
|
|
|
Still, I must implore you, Socrates, said Glaucon, not to turn
|
|
away just as you are reaching the goal; if you will only give such
|
|
an explanation of the good as you have already given of justice
|
|
and temperance and the other virtues, we shall be satisfied.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, and I shall be at least equally satisfied,
|
|
but I cannot help fearing that I shall fall, and that my indiscreet
|
|
zeal will bring ridicule upon me. No, sweet sirs, let us not at
|
|
present ask what is the actual nature of the good, for to reach
|
|
what is now in my thoughts would be an effort too great for me.
|
|
But of the child of the good who is likest him, I would fain speak,
|
|
if I could be sure that you wished to hear--otherwise, not.
|
|
|
|
By all means, he said, tell us about the child, and you shall
|
|
remain in our debt for the account of the parent.
|
|
|
|
I do indeed wish, I replied, that I could pay, and you receive,
|
|
the account of the parent, and not, as now, of the offspring only;
|
|
take, however, this latter by way of interest, and at the same time
|
|
have a care that i do not render a false account, although I have
|
|
no intention of deceiving you.
|
|
|
|
Yes, we will take all the care that we can: proceed.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but I must first come to an understanding with you,
|
|
and remind you of what I have mentioned in the course of this discussion,
|
|
and at many other times.
|
|
|
|
What?
|
|
|
|
The old story, that there is a many beautiful and a many good,
|
|
and so of other things which we describe and define; to all of them
|
|
`many' is applied.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And there is an absolute beauty and an absolute good, and of other
|
|
things to which the term `many' is applied there is an absolute;
|
|
for they may be brought under a single idea, which is called
|
|
the essence of each.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
The many, as we say, are seen but not known, and the ideas are known
|
|
but not seen.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And what is the organ with which we see the visible things?
|
|
|
|
The sight, he said.
|
|
|
|
And with the hearing, I said, we hear, and with the other senses
|
|
perceive the other objects of sense?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But have you remarked that sight is by far the most costly and complex
|
|
piece of workmanship which the artificer of the senses ever contrived?
|
|
|
|
No, I never have, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then reflect; has the ear or voice need of any third or additional
|
|
nature in order that the one may be able to hear and the other
|
|
to be heard?
|
|
|
|
Nothing of the sort.
|
|
|
|
No, indeed, I replied; and the same is true of most, if not all,
|
|
the other senses--you would not say that any of them requires such
|
|
an addition?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
But you see that without the addition of some other nature there
|
|
is no seeing or being seen?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Sight being, as I conceive, in the eyes, and he who has eyes
|
|
wanting to see; colour being also present in them, still unless
|
|
there be a third nature specially adapted to the purpose, the owner
|
|
of the eyes will see nothing and the colours will be invisible.
|
|
|
|
Of what nature are you speaking?
|
|
|
|
Of that which you term light, I replied.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Noble, then, is the bond which links together sight and visibility,
|
|
and great beyond other bonds by no small difference of nature;
|
|
for light is their bond, and light is no ignoble thing?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, the reverse of ignoble.
|
|
|
|
And which, I said, of the gods in heaven would you say was the lord
|
|
of this element? Whose is that light which makes the eye to see
|
|
perfectly and the visible to appear?
|
|
|
|
You mean the sun, as you and all mankind say.
|
|
|
|
May not the relation of sight to this deity be described as follows?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
Neither sight nor the eye in which sight resides is the sun?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Yet of all the organs of sense the eye is the most like the sun?
|
|
|
|
By far the most like.
|
|
|
|
And the power which the eye possesses is a sort of effluence
|
|
which is dispensed from the sun?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Then the sun is not sight, but the author of sight who is recognised
|
|
by sight.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And this is he whom I call the child of the good, whom the good
|
|
begat in his own likeness, to be in the visible world, in relation
|
|
to sight and the things of sight, what the good is in the intellectual
|
|
world in relation to mind and the things of mind.
|
|
|
|
Will you be a little more explicit? he said.
|
|
|
|
Why, you know, I said, that the eyes, when a person directs them
|
|
towards objects on which the light of day is no longer shining,
|
|
but the moon and stars only, see dimly, and are nearly blind;
|
|
they seem to have no clearness of vision in them?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
But when they are directed towards objects on which the sun shines,
|
|
they see clearly and there is sight in them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the soul is like the eye: when resting upon that on which truth
|
|
and being shine, the soul perceives and understands and is radiant
|
|
with intelligence; but when turned towards the twilight of becoming
|
|
and perishing, then she has opinion only, and goes blinking about,
|
|
and is first of one opinion and then of another, and seems to have
|
|
no intelligence?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Now, that which imparts truth to the known and the power of knowing
|
|
to the knower is what I would have you term the idea of good,
|
|
and this you will deem to be the cause of science, and of truth
|
|
in so far as the latter becomes the subject of knowledge;
|
|
beautiful too, as are both truth and knowledge, you will be right
|
|
in esteeming this other nature as more beautiful than either;
|
|
and, as in the previous instance, light and sight may be truly said
|
|
to be like the sun, and yet not to be the sun, so in this other sphere,
|
|
science and truth may be deemed to be like the good, but not the good;
|
|
the good has a place of honour yet higher.
|
|
|
|
What a wonder of beauty that must be, he said, which is the author
|
|
of science and truth, and yet surpasses them in beauty; for you
|
|
surely cannot mean to say that pleasure is the good?
|
|
|
|
God forbid, I replied; but may I ask you to consider the image
|
|
in another point of view?
|
|
|
|
In what point of view?
|
|
|
|
You would say, would you not, that the sun is only the author of
|
|
visibility in all visible things, but of generation and nourishment
|
|
and growth, though he himself is not generation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
In like manner the good may be said to be not only the author
|
|
of knowledge to all things known, but of their being and essence,
|
|
and yet the good is not essence, but far exceeds essence in dignity
|
|
and power.
|
|
|
|
Glaucon said, with a ludicrous earnestness: By the light of heaven,
|
|
how amazing!
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and the exaggeration may be set down to you;
|
|
for you made me utter my fancies.
|
|
|
|
And pray continue to utter them; at any rate let us hear if there
|
|
is anything more to be said about the similitude of the sun.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, there is a great deal more.
|
|
|
|
Then omit nothing, however slight.
|
|
|
|
I will do my best, I said; but I should think that a great deal
|
|
will have to be omitted.
|
|
|
|
You have to imagine, then, that there are two ruling powers, and that one
|
|
of them is set over the intellectual world, the other over the visible.
|
|
I do not say heaven, lest you should fancy that I am playing upon
|
|
the name ('ourhanoz, orhatoz'). May I suppose that you have this
|
|
distinction of the visible and intelligible fixed in your mind?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
Now take a line which has been cut into two unequal parts, and divide
|
|
each of them again in the same proportion, and suppose the two main
|
|
divisions to answer, one to the visible and the other to the intelligible,
|
|
and then compare the subdivisions in respect of their clearness
|
|
and want of clearness, and you will find that the first section in
|
|
the sphere of the visible consists of images. And by images I mean,
|
|
in the first place, shadows, and in the second place, reflections in water
|
|
and in solid, smooth and polished bodies and the like: Do you understand?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I understand.
|
|
|
|
Imagine, now, the other section, of which this is only the resemblance,
|
|
to include the animals which we see, and everything that grows
|
|
or is made.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Would you not admit that both the sections of this division have
|
|
different degrees of truth, and that the copy is to the original
|
|
as the sphere of opinion is to the sphere of knowledge?
|
|
|
|
Most undoubtedly.
|
|
|
|
Next proceed to consider the manner in which the sphere
|
|
of the intellectual is to be divided.
|
|
|
|
In what manner?
|
|
|
|
Thus:--There are two subdivisions, in the lower or which the soul
|
|
uses the figures given by the former division as images;
|
|
the enquiry can only be hypothetical, and instead of going upwards
|
|
to a principle descends to the other end; in the higher of the two,
|
|
the soul passes out of hypotheses, and goes up to a principle which
|
|
is above hypotheses, making no use of images as in the former case,
|
|
but proceeding only in and through the ideas themselves.
|
|
|
|
I do not quite understand your meaning, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then I will try again; you will understand me better when I
|
|
have made some preliminary remarks. You are aware that students
|
|
of geometry, arithmetic, and the kindred sciences assume the odd
|
|
and the even and the figures and three kinds of angles and the like
|
|
in their several branches of science; these are their hypotheses,
|
|
which they and everybody are supposed to know, and therefore they do
|
|
not deign to give any account of them either to themselves or others;
|
|
but they begin with them, and go on until they arrive at last,
|
|
and in a consistent manner, at their conclusion?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I know.
|
|
|
|
And do you not know also that although they make use of the visible
|
|
forms and reason about them, they are thinking not of these, but of
|
|
the ideals which they resemble; not of the figures which they draw,
|
|
but of the absolute square and the absolute diameter, and so on--
|
|
the forms which they draw or make, and which have shadows and
|
|
reflections in water of their own, are converted by them into images,
|
|
but they are really seeking to behold the things themselves,
|
|
which can only be seen with the eye of the mind?
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And of this kind I spoke as the intelligible, although in the search
|
|
after it the soul is compelled to use hypotheses; not ascending
|
|
to a first principle, because she is unable to rise above the region
|
|
of hypothesis, but employing the objects of which the shadows below
|
|
are resemblances in their turn as images, they having in relation
|
|
to the shadows and reflections of them a greater distinctness,
|
|
and therefore a higher value.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, that you are speaking of the province
|
|
of geometry and the sister arts.
|
|
|
|
And when I speak of the other division of the intelligible,
|
|
you will understand me to speak of that other sort of knowledge
|
|
which reason herself attains by the power of dialectic,
|
|
using the hypotheses not as first principles, but only as hypotheses--
|
|
that is to say, as steps and points of departure into a world
|
|
which is above hypotheses, in order that she may soar beyond them
|
|
to the first principle of the whole; and clinging to this and then
|
|
to that which depends on this, by successive steps she descends again
|
|
without the aid of any sensible object, from ideas, through ideas,
|
|
and in ideas she ends.
|
|
|
|
I understand you, he replied; not perfectly, for you seem to me
|
|
to be describing a task which is really tremendous; but, at any rate,
|
|
I understand you to say that knowledge and being, which the science
|
|
of dialectic contemplates, are clearer than the notions of the arts,
|
|
as they are termed, which proceed from hypotheses only:
|
|
these are also contemplated by the understanding, and not by
|
|
the senses: yet, because they start from hypotheses and do not
|
|
ascend to a principle, those who contemplate them appear to you
|
|
not to exercise the higher reason upon them, although when a first
|
|
principle is added to them they are cognizable by the higher reason.
|
|
And the habit which is concerned with geometry and the cognate
|
|
sciences I suppose that you would term understanding and not reason,
|
|
as being intermediate between opinion and reason.
|
|
|
|
You have quite conceived my meaning, I said; and now, corresponding to
|
|
these four divisions, let there be four faculties in the soul-reason
|
|
answering to the highest, understanding to the second, faith (or conviction)
|
|
to the third, and perception of shadows to the last-and let there
|
|
be a scale of them, and let us suppose that the several faculties
|
|
have clearness in the same degree that their objects have truth.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he replied, and give my assent, and accept your arrangement.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VII
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
AND now, I said, let me show in a figure how far our nature is enlightened
|
|
or unenlightened:--Behold! human beings living in a underground den,
|
|
which has a mouth open towards the light and reaching all along the den;
|
|
here they have been from their childhood, and have their legs and necks
|
|
chained so that they cannot move, and can only see before them,
|
|
being prevented by the chains from turning round their heads.
|
|
Above and behind them a fire is blazing at a distance,
|
|
and between the fire and the prisoners there is a raised way;
|
|
and you will see, if you look, a low wall built along the way,
|
|
like the screen which marionette players have in front of them,
|
|
over which they show the puppets.
|
|
|
|
I see.
|
|
|
|
And do you see, I said, men passing along the wall carrying all
|
|
sorts of vessels, and statues and figures of animals made of wood
|
|
and stone and various materials, which appear over the wall?
|
|
Some of them are talking, others silent.
|
|
|
|
You have shown me a strange image, and they are strange prisoners.
|
|
|
|
Like ourselves, I replied; and they see only their own shadows,
|
|
or the shadows of one another, which the fire throws on the opposite
|
|
wall of the cave?
|
|
|
|
True, he said; how could they see anything but the shadows if they
|
|
were never allowed to move their heads?
|
|
|
|
And of the objects which are being carried in like manner they
|
|
would only see the shadows?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if they were able to converse with one another, would they
|
|
not suppose that they were naming what was actually before them?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And suppose further that the prison had an echo which came from the
|
|
other side, would they not be sure to fancy when one of the passers-by
|
|
spoke that the voice which they heard came from the passing shadow?
|
|
|
|
No question, he replied.
|
|
|
|
To them, I said, the truth would be literally nothing but the shadows
|
|
of the images.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
And now look again, and see what will naturally follow it'
|
|
the prisoners are released and disabused of their error. At first,
|
|
when any of them is liberated and compelled suddenly to stand
|
|
up and turn his neck round and walk and look towards the light,
|
|
he will suffer sharp pains; the glare will distress him, and he
|
|
will be unable to see the realities of which in his former state
|
|
he had seen the shadows; and then conceive some one saying to him,
|
|
that what he saw before was an illusion, but that now, when he
|
|
is approaching nearer to being and his eye is turned towards more
|
|
real existence, he has a clearer vision, -what will be his reply?
|
|
And you may further imagine that his instructor is pointing
|
|
to the objects as they pass and requiring him to name them,
|
|
-will he not be perplexed? Will he not fancy that the shadows
|
|
which he formerly saw are truer than the objects which are now shown
|
|
to him?
|
|
|
|
Far truer.
|
|
|
|
And if he is compelled to look straight at the light, will he
|
|
not have a pain in his eyes which will make him turn away to take
|
|
and take in the objects of vision which he can see, and which he
|
|
will conceive to be in reality clearer than the things which are
|
|
now being shown to him?
|
|
|
|
True, he now
|
|
|
|
And suppose once more, that he is reluctantly dragged up a steep
|
|
and rugged ascent, and held fast until he's forced into the presence
|
|
of the sun himself, is he not likely to be pained and irritated?
|
|
When he approaches the light his eyes will be dazzled, and he will not
|
|
be able to see anything at all of what are now called realities.
|
|
|
|
Not all in a moment, he said.
|
|
|
|
He will require to grow accustomed to the sight of the upper world.
|
|
And first he will see the shadows best, next the reflections of men
|
|
and other objects in the water, and then the objects themselves;
|
|
then he will gaze upon the light of the moon and the stars and the
|
|
spangled heaven; and he will see the sky and the stars by night better
|
|
than the sun or the light of the sun by day?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Last of he will be able to see the sun, and not mere reflections
|
|
of him in the water, but he will see him in his own proper place,
|
|
and not in another; and he will contemplate him as he is.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
He will then proceed to argue that this is he who gives the season
|
|
and the years, and is the guardian of all that is in the visible world,
|
|
and in a certain way the cause of all things which he and his fellows
|
|
have been accustomed to behold?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, he would first see the sun and then reason about him.
|
|
|
|
And when he remembered his old habitation, and the wisdom of the den
|
|
and his fellow-prisoners, do you not suppose that he would felicitate
|
|
himself on the change, and pity them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he would.
|
|
|
|
And if they were in the habit of conferring honours among themselves
|
|
on those who were quickest to observe the passing shadows and
|
|
to remark which of them went before, and which followed after,
|
|
and which were together; and who were therefore best able to draw
|
|
conclusions as to the future, do you think that he would care
|
|
for such honours and glories, or envy the possessors of them?
|
|
Would he not say with Homer,
|
|
|
|
Better to be the poor servant of a poor master,
|
|
|
|
and to endure anything, rather than think as they do and live
|
|
after their manner?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I think that he would rather suffer anything than
|
|
entertain these false notions and live in this miserable manner.
|
|
|
|
Imagine once more, I said, such an one coming suddenly out of the sun
|
|
to be replaced in his old situation; would he not be certain
|
|
to have his eyes full of darkness?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if there were a contest, and he had to compete in measuring
|
|
the shadows with the prisoners who had never moved out of the den,
|
|
while his sight was still weak, and before his eyes had become steady
|
|
(and the time which would be needed to acquire this new habit
|
|
of sight might be very considerable) would he not be ridiculous?
|
|
Men would say of him that up he went and down he came without
|
|
his eyes; and that it was better not even to think of ascending;
|
|
and if any one tried to loose another and lead him up to the light,
|
|
let them only catch the offender, and they would put him
|
|
to death.
|
|
|
|
No question, he said.
|
|
|
|
This entire allegory, I said, you may now append, dear Glaucon,
|
|
to the previous argument; the prison-house is the world of sight,
|
|
the light of the fire is the sun, and you will not misapprehend me
|
|
if you interpret the journey upwards to be the ascent of the soul
|
|
into the intellectual world according to my poor belief, which,
|
|
at your desire, I have expressed whether rightly or wrongly
|
|
God knows. But, whether true or false, my opinion is that in
|
|
the world of knowledge the idea of good appears last of all,
|
|
and is seen only with an effort; and, when seen, is also inferred
|
|
to be the universal author of all things beautiful and right,
|
|
parent of light and of the lord of light in this visible world,
|
|
and the immediate source of reason and truth in the intellectual;
|
|
and that this is the power upon which he who would act rationally,
|
|
either in public or private life must have his eye fixed.
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said, as far as I am able to understand you.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, I said, you must not wonder that those who attain
|
|
to this beatific vision are unwilling to descend to human affairs;
|
|
for their souls are ever hastening into the upper world where they
|
|
desire to dwell; which desire of theirs is very natural, if our
|
|
allegory may be trusted.
|
|
|
|
Yes, very natural.
|
|
|
|
And is there anything surprising in one who passes from divine
|
|
contemplations to the evil state of man, misbehaving himself in a
|
|
ridiculous manner; if, while his eyes are blinking and before he
|
|
has become accustomed to the surrounding darkness, he is compelled
|
|
to fight in courts of law, or in other places, about the images
|
|
or the shadows of images of justice, and is endeavouring to meet
|
|
the conceptions of those who have never yet seen absolute justice?
|
|
|
|
Anything but surprising, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Any one who has common sense will remember that the bewilderments
|
|
of the eyes are of two kinds, and arise from two causes,
|
|
either from coming out of the light or from going into the light,
|
|
which is true of the mind's eye, quite as much as of the bodily eye;
|
|
and he who remembers this when he sees any one whose vision is
|
|
perplexed and weak, will not be too ready to laugh; he will first
|
|
ask whether that soul of man has come out of the brighter light,
|
|
and is unable to see because unaccustomed to the dark, or having
|
|
turned from darkness to the day is dazzled by excess of light.
|
|
And he will count the one happy in his condition and state of being,
|
|
and he will pity the other; or, if he have a mind to laugh at the soul
|
|
which comes from below into the light, there will be more reason in this
|
|
than in the laugh which greets him who returns from above out of
|
|
the light into the den.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a very just distinction.
|
|
|
|
But then, if I am right, certain professors of education must
|
|
be wrong when they say that they can put a knowledge into the soul
|
|
which was not there before, like sight into blind eyes.
|
|
|
|
They undoubtedly say this, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Whereas, our argument shows that the power and capacity of
|
|
learning exists in the soul already; and that just as the eye
|
|
was unable to turn from darkness to light without the whole body,
|
|
so too the instrument of knowledge can only by the movement
|
|
of the whole soul be turned from the world of becoming into
|
|
that of being, and learn by degrees to endure the sight of being,
|
|
and of the brightest and best of being, or in other words, of the good.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And must there not be some art which will effect conversion in
|
|
the easiest and quickest manner; not implanting the faculty of sight,
|
|
for that exists already, but has been turned in the wrong direction,
|
|
and is looking away from the truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, such an art may be presumed.
|
|
|
|
And whereas the other so-called virtues of the soul seem to be
|
|
akin to bodily qualities, for even when they are not originally
|
|
innate they can be implanted later by habit and exercise,
|
|
the of wisdom more than anything else contains a divine element
|
|
which always remains, and by this conversion is rendered useful
|
|
and profitable; or, on the other hand, hurtful and useless.
|
|
Did you never observe the narrow intelligence flashing from the keen
|
|
eye of a clever rogue--how eager he is, how clearly his paltry soul
|
|
sees the way to his end; he is the reverse of blind, but his keen
|
|
eyesight is forced into the service of evil, and he is mischievous
|
|
in proportion to his cleverness.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But what if there had been a circumcision of such natures in the days
|
|
of their youth; and they had been severed from those sensual pleasures,
|
|
such as eating and drinking, which, like leaden weights, were attached
|
|
to them at their birth, and which drag them down and turn the vision
|
|
of their souls upon the things that are below--if, I say, they had been
|
|
released from these impediments and turned in the opposite direction,
|
|
the very same faculty in them would have seen the truth as keenly
|
|
as they see what their eyes are turned to now.
|
|
|
|
Very likely.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there is another thing which is likely.
|
|
or rather a necessary inference from what has preceded, that neither
|
|
the uneducated and uninformed of the truth, nor yet those who never
|
|
make an end of their education, will be able ministers of State;
|
|
not the former, because they have no single aim of duty which
|
|
is the rule of all their actions, private as well as public;
|
|
nor the latter, because they will not act at all except upon compulsion,
|
|
fancying that they are already dwelling apart in the islands of
|
|
the blest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, the business of us who are the founders of the State
|
|
will be to compel the best minds to attain that knowledge which we
|
|
have already shown to be the greatest of all-they must continue
|
|
to ascend until they arrive at the good; but when they have ascended
|
|
and seen enough we must not allow them to do as they do now.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that they remain in the upper world: but this must not be allowed;
|
|
they must be made to descend again among the prisoners in the den,
|
|
and partake of their labours and honours, whether they are worth
|
|
having or not.
|
|
|
|
But is not this unjust? he said; ought we to give them a worse life,
|
|
when they might have a better?
|
|
|
|
You have again forgotten, my friend, I said, the intention of
|
|
the legislator, who did not aim at making any one class in the State
|
|
happy above the rest; the happiness was to be in the whole State,
|
|
and he held the citizens together by persuasion and necessity,
|
|
making them benefactors of the State, and therefore benefactors
|
|
of one another; to this end he created them, not to please themselves,
|
|
but to be his instruments in binding up the State.
|
|
|
|
True, he said, I had forgotten.
|
|
|
|
Observe, Glaucon, that there will be no injustice in compelling
|
|
our philosophers to have a care and providence of others; we shall
|
|
explain to them that in other States, men of their class are not
|
|
obliged to share in the toils of politics: and this is reasonable,
|
|
for they grow up at their own sweet will, and the government would
|
|
rather not have them. Being self-taught, they cannot be expected
|
|
to show any gratitude for a culture which they have never received.
|
|
But we have brought you into the world to be rulers of the hive,
|
|
kings of yourselves and of the other citizens, and have educated you
|
|
far better and more perfectly than they have been educated, and you
|
|
are better able to share in the double duty. Wherefore each of you,
|
|
when his turn comes, must go down to the general underground abode,
|
|
and get the habit of seeing in the dark. When you have acquired the habit,
|
|
you will see ten thousand times better than the inhabitants of the den,
|
|
and you will know what the several images are, and what they represent,
|
|
because you have seen the beautiful and just and good in their truth.
|
|
And thus our State which is also yours will be a reality,
|
|
and not a dream only, and will be administered in a spirit unlike
|
|
that of other States, in which men fight with one another about
|
|
shadows only and are distracted in the struggle for power, which in
|
|
their eyes is a great good. Whereas the truth is that the State
|
|
in which the rulers are most reluctant to govern is always the best
|
|
and most quietly governed, and the State in which they are most eager,
|
|
the worst.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And will our pupils, when they hear this, refuse to take their turn
|
|
at the toils of State, when they are allowed to spend the greater
|
|
part of their time with one another in the heavenly light?
|
|
|
|
Impossible, he answered; for they are just men, and the commands
|
|
which we impose upon them are just; there can be no doubt
|
|
that every one of them will take office as a stern necessity,
|
|
and not after the fashion of our present rulers of State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my friend, I said; and there lies the point. You must contrive
|
|
for your future rulers another and a better life than that of a ruler,
|
|
and then you may have a well-ordered State; for only in the State which
|
|
offers this, will they rule who are truly rich, not in silver and gold,
|
|
but in virtue and wisdom, which are the true blessings of life.
|
|
Whereas if they go to the administration of public affairs,
|
|
poor and hungering after the' own private advantage, thinking that
|
|
hence they are to snatch the chief good, order there can never be;
|
|
for they will be fighting about office, and the civil and domestic
|
|
broils which thus arise will be the ruin of the rulers themselves and
|
|
of the whole State.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And the only life which looks down upon the life of political
|
|
ambition is that of true philosophy. Do you know of any other?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, I do not, he said.
|
|
|
|
And those who govern ought not to be lovers of the task?
|
|
For, if they are, there will be rival lovers, and they will fight.
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Who then are those whom we shall compel to be guardians?
|
|
Surely they will be the men who are wisest about affairs of State,
|
|
and by whom the State is best administered, and who at the same
|
|
time have other honours and another and a better life than that
|
|
of politics?
|
|
|
|
They are the men, and I will choose them, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And now shall we consider in what way such guardians will be produced,
|
|
and how they are to be brought from darkness to light,--as some are
|
|
said to have ascended from the world below to the gods?
|
|
|
|
By all means, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The process, I said, is not the turning over of an oyster-shell,
|
|
but the turning round of a soul passing from a day which is little
|
|
better than night to the true day of being, that is, the ascent
|
|
from below, which we affirm to be true philosophy?
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
And should we not enquire what sort of knowledge has the power
|
|
of effecting such a change?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
What sort of knowledge is there which would draw the soul from becoming
|
|
to being? And another consideration has just occurred to me:
|
|
You will remember that our young men are to be warrior athletes
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Then this new kind of knowledge must have an additional quality?
|
|
|
|
What quality?
|
|
|
|
Usefulness in war.
|
|
|
|
Yes, if possible.
|
|
|
|
There were two parts in our former scheme of education, were there not?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
There was gymnastic which presided over the growth and decay of the body,
|
|
and may therefore be regarded as having to do with generation and corruption?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then that is not the knowledge which we are seeking to discover?
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
But what do you say of music, which also entered to a certain
|
|
extent into our former scheme?
|
|
|
|
Music, he said, as you will remember, was the counterpart of gymnastic,
|
|
and trained the guardians by the influences of habit, by harmony making
|
|
them harmonious, by rhythm rhythmical, but not giving them science;
|
|
and the words, whether fabulous or possibly true, had kindred elements
|
|
of rhythm and harmony in them. But in music there was nothing
|
|
which tended to that good which you are now seeking.
|
|
|
|
You are most accurate, I said, in your recollection; in music there
|
|
certainly was nothing of the kind. But what branch of knowledge
|
|
is there, my dear Glaucon, which is of the desired nature;
|
|
since all the useful arts were reckoned mean by us?
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly; and yet if music and gymnastic are excluded,
|
|
and the arts are also excluded, what remains?
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, there may be nothing left of our special subjects;
|
|
and then we shall have to take something which is not special,
|
|
but of universal application.
|
|
|
|
What may that be?
|
|
|
|
A something which all arts and sciences and intelligences use
|
|
in common, and which every one first has to learn among the elements
|
|
of education.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The little matter of distinguishing one, two, and three--in a word,
|
|
number and calculation:--do not all arts and sciences necessarily
|
|
partake of them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the art of war partakes of them?
|
|
|
|
To the sure.
|
|
|
|
Then Palamedes, whenever he appears in tragedy, proves Agamemnon
|
|
ridiculously unfit to be a general. Did you never remark how he
|
|
declares that he had invented number, and had numbered the ships
|
|
and set in array the ranks of the army at Troy; which implies
|
|
that they had never been numbered before, and Agamemnon must be
|
|
supposed literally to have been incapable of counting his own feet--
|
|
how could he if he was ignorant of number? And if that is true,
|
|
what sort of general must he have been?
|
|
|
|
I should say a very strange one, if this was as you say.
|
|
|
|
Can we deny that a warrior should have a knowledge of arithmetic?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he should, if he is to have the smallest understanding
|
|
of military tactics, or indeed, I should rather say, if he
|
|
is to be a man at all.
|
|
|
|
I should like to know whether you have the same notion which I
|
|
have of this study?
|
|
|
|
What is your notion?
|
|
|
|
It appears to me to be a study of the kind which we are seeking,
|
|
and which leads naturally to reflection, but never to have been
|
|
rightly used; for the true use of it is simply to draw the soul
|
|
towards being.
|
|
|
|
Will you explain your meaning? he said.
|
|
|
|
I will try, I said; and I wish you would share the enquiry with me,
|
|
and say `yes' or `no' when I attempt to distinguish in my own mind
|
|
what branches of knowledge have this attracting power, in order
|
|
that we may have clearer proof that arithmetic is, as I suspect,
|
|
one of them.
|
|
|
|
Explain, he said.
|
|
|
|
I mean to say that objects of sense are of two kinds; some of them
|
|
do not invite thought because the sense is an adequate judge of them;
|
|
while in the case of other objects sense is so untrustworthy that
|
|
further enquiry is imperatively demanded.
|
|
|
|
You are clearly referring, he said, to the manner in which the senses
|
|
are imposed upon by distance, and by painting in light and shade.
|
|
|
|
No, I said, that is not at all my meaning.
|
|
|
|
Then what is your meaning?
|
|
|
|
When speaking of uninviting objects, I mean those which do not pass
|
|
from one sensation to the opposite; inviting objects are those which do;
|
|
in this latter case the sense coming upon the object, whether at a
|
|
distance or near, gives no more vivid idea of anything in particular
|
|
than of its opposite. An illustration will make my meaning clearer:--
|
|
here are three fingers--a little finger, a second finger,
|
|
and a middle finger.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
You may suppose that they are seen quite close: And here comes
|
|
the point.
|
|
|
|
What is it?
|
|
|
|
Each of them equally appears a finger, whether seen in the middle
|
|
or at the extremity, whether white or black, or thick or thin--
|
|
it makes no difference; a finger is a finger all the same.
|
|
In these cases a man is not compelled to ask of thought the question,
|
|
what is a finger? for the sight never intimates to the mind that a finger
|
|
is other than a finger.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, as we might expect, there is nothing here
|
|
which invites or excites intelligence.
|
|
|
|
There is not, he said.
|
|
|
|
But is this equally true of the greatness and smallness of the fingers?
|
|
Can sight adequately perceive them? and is no difference made by the
|
|
circumstance that one of the fingers is in the middle and another at
|
|
the extremity? And in like manner does the touch adequately perceive
|
|
the qualities of thickness or thinness, or softness or hardness?
|
|
And so of the other senses; do they give perfect intimations
|
|
of such matters? Is not their mode of operation on this wise--
|
|
the sense which is concerned with the quality of hardness is
|
|
necessarily concerned also with the quality of softness, and only
|
|
intimates to the soul that the same thing is felt to be both hard
|
|
and soft?
|
|
|
|
You are quite right, he said.
|
|
|
|
And must not the soul be perplexed at this intimation which the sense
|
|
gives of a hard which is also soft? What, again, is the meaning
|
|
of light and heavy, if that which is light is also heavy,
|
|
and that which is heavy, light?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, these intimations which the soul receives
|
|
are very curious and require to be explained.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and in these perplexities the soul naturally summons
|
|
to her aid calculation and intelligence, that she may see whether
|
|
the several objects announced to her are one or two.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And if they turn out to be two, is not each of them one and different?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if each is one, and both are two, she will conceive the two
|
|
as in a state of division, for if there were undivided they could
|
|
only be conceived of as one?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The eye certainly did see both small and great, but only
|
|
in a confused manner; they were not distinguished.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Whereas the thinking mind, intending to light up the chaos,
|
|
was compelled to reverse the process, and look at small and great
|
|
as separate and not confused.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Was not this the beginning of the enquiry `What is great?'
|
|
and `What is small?'
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
And thus arose the distinction of the visible and the intelligible.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
This was what I meant when I spoke of impressions which invited
|
|
the intellect, or the reverse--those which are simultaneous with
|
|
opposite impressions, invite thought; those which are not simultaneous do not.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he said, and agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And to which class do unity and number belong?
|
|
|
|
I do not know, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Think a little and you will see that what has preceded will supply
|
|
the answer; for if simple unity could be adequately perceived by
|
|
the sight or by any other sense, then, as we were saying in the case
|
|
of the finger, there would be nothing to attract towards being;
|
|
but when there is some contradiction always present, and one is
|
|
the reverse of one and involves the conception of plurality,
|
|
then thought begins to be aroused within us, and the soul perplexed
|
|
and wanting to arrive at a decision asks `What is absolute unity?'
|
|
This is the way in which the study of the one has a power of drawing
|
|
and converting the mind to the contemplation of true being.
|
|
|
|
And surely, he said, this occurs notably in the case of one;
|
|
for we see the same thing to be both one and infinite in multitude?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and this being true of one must be equally true
|
|
of all number?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And all arithmetic and calculation have to do with number?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And they appear to lead the mind towards truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, in a very remarkable manner.
|
|
|
|
Then this is knowledge of the kind for which we are seeking,
|
|
having a double use, military and philosophical; for the man of war
|
|
must learn the art of number or he will not know how to array
|
|
his troops, and the philosopher also, because he has to rise out
|
|
of the sea of change and lay hold of true being, and therefore
|
|
he must be an arithmetician.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And our guardian is both warrior and philosopher?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then this is a kind of knowledge which legislation may fitly prescribe;
|
|
and we must endeavour to persuade those who are prescribe
|
|
to be the principal men of our State to go and learn arithmetic,
|
|
not as amateurs, but they must carry on the study until they
|
|
see the nature of numbers with the mind only; nor again,
|
|
like merchants or retail-traders, with a view to buying or selling,
|
|
but for the sake of their military use, and of the soul herself;
|
|
and because this will be the easiest way for her to pass from becoming
|
|
to truth and being.
|
|
|
|
That is excellent, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and now having spoken of it, I must add how charming
|
|
the science is! and in how many ways it conduces to our desired end,
|
|
if pursued in the spirit of a philosopher, and not of a shopkeeper!
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean, as I was saying, that arithmetic has a very great and
|
|
elevating effect, compelling the soul to reason about abstract number,
|
|
and rebelling against the introduction of visible or tangible
|
|
objects into the argument. You know how steadily the masters of
|
|
the art repel and ridicule any one who attempts to divide absolute
|
|
unity when he is calculating, and if you divide, they multiply,
|
|
taking care that one shall continue one and not become lost in fractions.
|
|
|
|
That is very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, suppose a person were to say to them: O my friends, what are
|
|
these wonderful numbers about which you are reasoning, in which,
|
|
as you say, there is a unity such as you demand, and each unit
|
|
is equal, invariable, indivisible,--what would they answer?
|
|
|
|
They would answer, as I should conceive, that they were speaking
|
|
of those numbers which can only be realised in thought.
|
|
|
|
Then you see that this knowledge may be truly called necessary,
|
|
necessitating as it clearly does the use of the pure intelligence
|
|
in the attainment of pure truth?
|
|
|
|
Yes; that is a marked characteristic of it.
|
|
|
|
And have you further observed, that those who have a natural talent
|
|
for calculation are generally quick at every other kind of knowledge;
|
|
and even the dull if they have had an arithmetical training,
|
|
although they may derive no other advantage from it, always become much
|
|
quicker than they would otherwise have been.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And indeed, you will not easily find a more difficult study,
|
|
and not many as difficult.
|
|
|
|
You will not.
|
|
|
|
And, for all these reasons, arithmetic is a kind of knowledge in
|
|
which the best natures should be trained, and which must not be given up.
|
|
|
|
I agree.
|
|
|
|
Let this then be made one of our subjects of education. And next,
|
|
shall we enquire whether the kindred science also concerns us?
|
|
|
|
You mean geometry?
|
|
|
|
Exactly so.
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said, we are concerned with that part of geometry which
|
|
relates to war; for in pitching a camp, or taking up a position,
|
|
or closing or extending the lines of an army, or any other
|
|
military manoeuvre, whether in actual battle or on a march, it will
|
|
make all the difference whether a general is or is not a geometrician.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, but for that purpose a very little of either geometry
|
|
or calculation will be enough; the question relates rather to
|
|
the greater and more advanced part of geometry--whether that tends
|
|
in any degree to make more easy the vision of the idea of good;
|
|
and thither, as I was saying, all things tend which compel the soul
|
|
to turn her gaze towards that place, where is the full perfection
|
|
of being, which she ought, by all means, to behold.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then if geometry compels us to view being, it concerns us;
|
|
if becoming only, it does not concern us?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is what we assert.
|
|
|
|
Yet anybody who has the least acquaintance with geometry will not
|
|
deny that such a conception of the science is in flat contradiction
|
|
to the ordinary language of geometricians.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
They have in view practice only, and are always speaking? in a narrow
|
|
and ridiculous manner, of squaring and extending and applying and the like--
|
|
they confuse the necessities of geometry with those of daily life;
|
|
whereas knowledge is the real object of the whole science.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then must not a further admission be made?
|
|
|
|
What admission?
|
|
|
|
That the knowledge at which geometry aims is knowledge of the eternal,
|
|
and not of aught perishing and transient.
|
|
|
|
That, he replied, may be readily allowed, and is true.
|
|
|
|
Then, my noble friend, geometry will draw the soul towards truth,
|
|
and create the spirit of philosophy, and raise up that which is now
|
|
unhappily allowed to fall down.
|
|
|
|
Nothing will be more likely to have such an effect.
|
|
|
|
Then nothing should be more sternly laid down than that the
|
|
inhabitants of your fair city should by all means learn geometry.
|
|
Moreover the science has indirect effects, which are not small.
|
|
|
|
Of what kind? he said.
|
|
|
|
There are the military advantages of which you spoke, I said;
|
|
and in all departments of knowledge, as experience proves, any one
|
|
who has studied geometry is infinitely quicker of apprehension than
|
|
one who has not.
|
|
|
|
Yes indeed, he said, there is an infinite difference between them.
|
|
|
|
Then shall we propose this as a second branch of knowledge
|
|
which our youth will study?
|
|
|
|
Let us do so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And suppose we make astronomy the third--what do you say?
|
|
|
|
I am strongly inclined to it, he said; the observation of the seasons
|
|
and of months and years is as essential to the general as it
|
|
is to the farmer or sailor.
|
|
|
|
I am amused, I said, at your fear of the world, which makes you
|
|
guard against the appearance of insisting upon useless studies;
|
|
and I quite admit the difficulty of believing that in every man there
|
|
is an eye of the soul which, when by other pursuits lost and dimmed,
|
|
is by these purified and re-illumined; and is more precious far
|
|
than ten thousand bodily eyes, for by it alone is truth seen.
|
|
Now there are two classes of persons: one class of those who
|
|
will agree with you and will take your words as a revelation;
|
|
another class to whom they will be utterly unmeaning, and who will
|
|
naturally deem them to be idle tales, for they see no sort of profit
|
|
which is to be obtained from them. And therefore you had better
|
|
decide at once with which of the two you are proposing to argue.
|
|
You will very likely say with neither, and that your chief
|
|
aim in carrying on the argument is your own improvement;
|
|
at the same time you do not grudge to others any benefit which they
|
|
may receive.
|
|
|
|
I think that I should prefer to carry on the argument mainly
|
|
on my own behalf.
|
|
|
|
Then take a step backward, for we have gone wrong in the order
|
|
of the sciences.
|
|
|
|
What was the mistake? he said.
|
|
|
|
After plane geometry, I said, we proceeded at once to solids
|
|
in revolution, instead of taking solids in themselves;
|
|
whereas after the second dimension the third, which is concerned
|
|
with cubes and dimensions of depth, ought to have followed.
|
|
|
|
That is true, Socrates; but so little seems to be known as yet
|
|
about these subjects.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, I said, and for two reasons:--in the first place,
|
|
no government patronises them; this leads to a want of energy
|
|
in the pursuit of them, and they are difficult; in the second place,
|
|
students cannot learn them unless they have a director.
|
|
But then a director can hardly be found, and even if he could,
|
|
as matters now stand, the students, who are very conceited, would not
|
|
attend to him. That, however, would be otherwise if the whole
|
|
State became the director of these studies and gave honour to them;
|
|
then disciples would want to come, and there would be continuous
|
|
and earnest search, and discoveries would be made; since even now,
|
|
disregarded as they are by the world, and maimed of their fair proportions,
|
|
and although none of their votaries can tell the use of them,
|
|
still these studies force their way by their natural charm,
|
|
and very likely, if they had the help of the State, they would some day
|
|
emerge into light.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is a remarkable charm in them.
|
|
But I do not clearly understand the change in the order.
|
|
First you began with a geometry of plane surfaces?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said.
|
|
|
|
And you placed astronomy next, and then you made a step backward?
|
|
|
|
Yes, and I have delayed you by my hurry; the ludicrous state
|
|
of solid geometry, which, in natural order, should have followed,
|
|
made me pass over this branch and go on to astronomy, or motion
|
|
of solids.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then assuming that the science now omitted would come into
|
|
existence if encouraged by the State, let us go on to astronomy,
|
|
which will be fourth.
|
|
|
|
The right order, he replied. And now, Socrates, as you rebuked
|
|
the vulgar manner in which I praised astronomy before, my praise
|
|
shall be given in your own spirit. For every one, as I think,
|
|
must see that astronomy compels the soul to look upwards and leads us
|
|
from this world to another.
|
|
|
|
Every one but myself, I said; to every one else this may be clear,
|
|
but not to me.
|
|
|
|
And what then would you say?
|
|
|
|
I should rather say that those who elevate astronomy into philosophy
|
|
appear to me to make us look downwards and not upwards.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he asked.
|
|
|
|
You, I replied, have in your mind a truly sublime conception of our
|
|
knowledge of the things above. And I dare say that if a person
|
|
were to throw his head back and study the fretted ceiling, you would
|
|
still think that his mind was the percipient, and not his eyes.
|
|
And you are very likely right, and I may be a simpleton:
|
|
but, in my opinion, that knowledge only which is of being and of
|
|
the unseen can make the soul look upwards, and whether a man gapes
|
|
at the heavens or blinks on the ground, seeking to learn some
|
|
particular of sense, I would deny that he can learn, for nothing
|
|
of that sort is matter of science; his soul is looking downwards,
|
|
not upwards, whether his way to knowledge is by water or by land,
|
|
whether he floats, or only lies on his back.
|
|
|
|
I acknowledge, he said, the justice of your rebuke. Still, I should
|
|
like to ascertain how astronomy can be learned in any manner
|
|
more conducive to that knowledge of which we are speaking?
|
|
|
|
I will tell you, I said: The starry heaven which we behold is wrought
|
|
upon a visible ground, and therefore, although the fairest and most
|
|
perfect of visible things, must necessarily be deemed inferior far
|
|
to the true motions of absolute swiftness and absolute slowness,
|
|
which are relative to each other, and carry with them that which is
|
|
contained in them, in the true number and in every true figure.
|
|
Now, these are to be apprehended by reason and intelligence,
|
|
but not by sight.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
The spangled heavens should be used as a pattern and with a view
|
|
to that higher knowledge; their beauty is like the beauty of
|
|
figures or pictures excellently wrought by the hand of Daedalus,
|
|
or some other great artist, which we may chance to behold;
|
|
any geometrician who saw them would appreciate the exquisiteness
|
|
of their workmanship, but he would never dream of thinking
|
|
that in them he could find the true equal or the true double,
|
|
or the truth of any other proportion.
|
|
|
|
No, he replied, such an idea would be ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
And will not a true astronomer have the same feeling when he looks at
|
|
the movements of the stars? Will he not think that heaven and the things
|
|
in heaven are framed by the Creator of them in the most perfect manner?
|
|
But he will never imagine that the proportions of night and day,
|
|
or of both to the month, or of the month to the year, or of the stars
|
|
to these and to one another, and any other things that are material
|
|
and visible can also be eternal and subject to no deviation--
|
|
that would be absurd; and it is equally absurd to take so much pains
|
|
in investigating their exact truth.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree, though I never thought of this before.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, in astronomy, as in geometry, we should employ problems,
|
|
and let the heavens alone if we would approach the subject in the right
|
|
way and so make the natural gift of reason to be of any real use.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a work infinitely beyond our present astronomers.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and there are many other things which must also have a similar
|
|
extension given to them, if our legislation is to be of any value.
|
|
But can you tell me of any other suitable study?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, not without thinking.
|
|
|
|
Motion, I said, has many forms, and not one only; two of them are
|
|
obvious enough even to wits no better than ours; and there are others,
|
|
as I imagine, which may be left to wiser persons.
|
|
|
|
But where are the two?
|
|
|
|
There is a second, I said, which is the counterpart of the one
|
|
already named.
|
|
|
|
And what may that be?
|
|
|
|
The second, I said, would seem relatively to the ears to be what
|
|
the first is to the eyes; for I conceive that as the eyes are designed
|
|
to look up at the stars, so are the ears to hear harmonious motions;
|
|
and these are sister sciences--as the Pythagoreans say,
|
|
and we, Glaucon, agree with them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But this, I said, is a laborious study, and therefore we had
|
|
better go and learn of them; and they will tell us whether there
|
|
are any other applications of these sciences. At the same time,
|
|
we must not lose sight of our own higher object.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
There is a perfection which all knowledge ought to reach,
|
|
and which our pupils ought also to attain, and not to fall short of,
|
|
as I was saying that they did in astronomy. For in the science
|
|
of harmony, as you probably know, the same thing happens.
|
|
The teachers of harmony compare the sounds and consonances which
|
|
are heard only, and their labour, like that of the astronomers,
|
|
is in vain.
|
|
|
|
Yes, by heaven! he said; and 'tis as good as a play to hear
|
|
them talking about their condensed notes, as they call them;
|
|
they put their ears close alongside of the strings like persons
|
|
catching a sound from their neighbour's wall--one set of them
|
|
declaring that they distinguish an intermediate note and have
|
|
found the least interval which should be the unit of measurement;
|
|
the others insisting that the two sounds have passed into the same--
|
|
either party setting their ears before their understanding.
|
|
|
|
You mean, I said, those gentlemen who tease and torture the strings
|
|
and rack them on the pegs of the instrument: might carry on the metaphor
|
|
and speak after their manner of the blows which the plectrum gives,
|
|
and make accusations against the strings, both of backwardness
|
|
and forwardness to sound; but this would be tedious, and therefore
|
|
I will only say that these are not the men, and that I am referring
|
|
to the Pythagoreans, of whom I was just now proposing to enquire
|
|
about harmony. For they too are in error, like the astronomers;
|
|
they investigate the numbers of the harmonies which are heard,
|
|
but they never attain to problems-that is to say, they never reach
|
|
the natural harmonies of number, or reflect why some numbers are
|
|
harmonious and others not.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is a thing of more than mortal knowledge.
|
|
|
|
A thing, I replied, which I would rather call useful; that is,
|
|
if sought after with a view to the beautiful and good; but if pursued
|
|
in any other spirit, useless. Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now, when all these studies reach the point of inter-communion
|
|
and connection with one another, and come to be considered
|
|
in their mutual affinities, then, I think, but not till then,
|
|
will the pursuit of them have a value for our objects;
|
|
otherwise there is no profit in them.
|
|
|
|
I suspect so; but you are speaking, Socrates, of a vast work.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? I said; the prelude or what? Do you not know
|
|
that all this is but the prelude to the actual strain which we
|
|
have to learn? For you surely would not regard the skilled
|
|
mathematician as a dialectician?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly not, he said; I have hardly ever known a mathematician
|
|
who was capable of reasoning.
|
|
|
|
But do you imagine that men who are unable to give and take a reason
|
|
will have the knowledge which we require of them?
|
|
|
|
Neither can this be supposed.
|
|
|
|
And so, Glaucon, I said, we have at last arrived at the hymn
|
|
of dialectic. This is that strain which is of the intellect only,
|
|
but which the faculty of sight will nevertheless be found to imitate;
|
|
for sight, as you may remember, was imagined by us after a while to
|
|
behold the real animals and stars, and last of all the sun himself.
|
|
And so with dialectic; when a person starts on the discovery of
|
|
the absolute by the light of reason only, and without any assistance
|
|
of sense, and perseveres until by pure intelligence he arrives
|
|
at the perception of the absolute good, he at last finds himself at
|
|
the end of the intellectual world, as in the case of sight at the end
|
|
of the visible.
|
|
|
|
Exactly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then this is the progress which you call dialectic?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But the release of the prisoners from chains, and their translation
|
|
from the shadows to the images and to the light, and the ascent
|
|
from the underground den to the sun, while in his presence they are
|
|
vainly trying to look on animals and plants and the light of the sun,
|
|
but are able to perceive even with their weak eyes the images in
|
|
the water (which are divine), and are the shadows of true existence
|
|
(not shadows of images cast by a light of fire, which compared
|
|
with the sun is only an image)--this power of elevating the highest
|
|
principle in the soul to the contemplation of that which is best
|
|
in existence, with which we may compare the raising of that faculty
|
|
which is the very light of the body to the sight of that which is
|
|
brightest in the material and visible world--this power is given,
|
|
as I was saying, by all that study and pursuit of the arts which has
|
|
been described.
|
|
|
|
I agree in what you are saying, he replied, which may be hard
|
|
to believe, yet, from another point of view, is harder still to deny.
|
|
This, however, is not a theme to be treated of in passing only,
|
|
but will have to be discussed again and again. And so,
|
|
whether our conclusion be true or false, let us assume all this,
|
|
and proceed at once from the prelude or preamble to the chief strain,
|
|
and describe that in like manner. Say, then, what is the nature
|
|
and what are the divisions of dialectic, and what are the paths
|
|
which lead thither; for these paths will also lead to our final rest?
|
|
|
|
Dear Glaucon, I said, you will not be able to follow me here,
|
|
though I would do my best, and you should behold not an image only
|
|
but the absolute truth, according to my notion. Whether what I told
|
|
you would or would not have been a reality I cannot venture to say;
|
|
but you would have seen something like reality; of that I am confident.
|
|
|
|
Doubtless, he replied.
|
|
|
|
But I must also remind you, that the power of dialectic alone can
|
|
reveal this, and only to one who is a disciple of the previous sciences.
|
|
|
|
Of that assertion you may be as confident as of the last.
|
|
|
|
And assuredly no one will argue that there is any other method
|
|
of comprehending by any regular process all true existence or of
|
|
ascertaining what each thing is in its own nature; for the arts
|
|
in general are concerned with the desires or opinions of men,
|
|
or are cultivated with a view to production and construction,
|
|
or for the preservation of such productions and constructions;
|
|
and as to the mathematical sciences which, as we were saying,
|
|
have some apprehension of true being--geometry and the like--
|
|
they only dream about being, but never can they behold the waking
|
|
reality so long as they leave the hypotheses which they use unexamined,
|
|
and are unable to give an account of them. For when a man
|
|
knows not his own first principle, and when the conclusion and
|
|
intermediate steps are also constructed out of he knows not what,
|
|
how can he imagine that such a fabric of convention can ever
|
|
become science?
|
|
|
|
Impossible, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then dialectic, and dialectic alone, goes directly to the first
|
|
principle and is the only science which does away with hypotheses
|
|
in order to make her ground secure; the eye of the soul, which is
|
|
literally buried in an outlandish slough, is by her gentle aid
|
|
lifted upwards; and she uses as handmaids and helpers in the work
|
|
of conversion, the sciences which we have been discussing.
|
|
Custom terms them sciences, but they ought to have some other name,
|
|
implying greater clearness than opinion and less clearness than science:
|
|
and this, in our previous sketch, was called understanding.
|
|
But why should we dispute about names when we have realities of such
|
|
importance to consider?
|
|
|
|
Why indeed, he said, when any name will do which expresses
|
|
the thought of the mind with clearness?
|
|
|
|
At any rate, we are satisfied, as before, to have four divisions;
|
|
two for intellect and two for opinion, and to call the first
|
|
division science, the second understanding, the third belief,
|
|
and the fourth perception of shadows, opinion being concerned
|
|
with becoming, and intellect with being; and so to make a proportion:--
|
|
|
|
As being is to becoming, so is pure intellect to opinion.
|
|
And as intellect is to opinion, so is science to belief, and
|
|
understanding to the perception of shadows.
|
|
|
|
But let us defer the further correlation and subdivision of the
|
|
subjects of opinion and of intellect, for it will be a long enquiry,
|
|
many times longer than this has been.
|
|
|
|
As far as I understand, he said, I agree.
|
|
|
|
And do you also agree, I said, in describing the dialectician
|
|
as one who attains a conception of the essence of each thing?
|
|
And he who does not possess and is therefore unable to impart
|
|
this conception, in whatever degree he fails, may in that degree
|
|
also be said to fail in intelligence? Will you admit so much?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; how can I deny it?
|
|
|
|
And you would say the same of the conception of the good?
|
|
|
|
Until the person is able to abstract and define rationally the idea
|
|
of good, and unless he can run the gauntlet of all objections,
|
|
and is ready to disprove them, not by appeals to opinion,
|
|
but to absolute truth, never faltering at any step of the argument--
|
|
unless he can do all this, you would say that he knows neither
|
|
the idea of good nor any other good; he apprehends only a shadow,
|
|
if anything at all, which is given by opinion and not by science;--
|
|
dreaming and slumbering in this life, before he is well awake here,
|
|
he arrives at the world below, and has his final quietus.
|
|
|
|
In all that I should most certainly agree with you.
|
|
|
|
And surely you would not have the children of your ideal State,
|
|
whom you are nurturing and educating--if the ideal ever becomes
|
|
a reality--you would not allow the future rulers to be like posts,
|
|
having no reason in them, and yet to be set in authority over
|
|
the highest matters?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Then you will make a law that they shall have such an education
|
|
as will enable them to attain the greatest skill in asking
|
|
and answering questions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, you and I together will make it.
|
|
|
|
Dialectic, then, as you will agree, is the coping-stone of the sciences,
|
|
and is set over them; no other science can be placed higher--
|
|
the nature of knowledge can no further go?
|
|
|
|
I agree, he said.
|
|
|
|
But to whom we are to assign these studies, and in what way they
|
|
are to be assigned, are questions which remain to be considered?
|
|
|
|
Yes, clearly.
|
|
|
|
You remember, I said, how the rulers were chosen before?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
The same natures must still be chosen, and the preference
|
|
again given to the surest and the bravest, and, if possible,
|
|
to the fairest; and, having noble and generous tempers, they should
|
|
also have the natural gifts which will facilitate their education.
|
|
|
|
And what are these?
|
|
|
|
Such gifts as keenness and ready powers of acquisition;
|
|
for the mind more often faints from the severity of study than from
|
|
the severity of gymnastics: the toil is more entirely the mind's own,
|
|
and is not shared with the body.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Further, he of whom we are in search should have a good memory,
|
|
and be an unwearied solid man who is a lover of labour in any line;
|
|
or he will never be able to endure the great amount of bodily exercise
|
|
and to go through all the intellectual discipline and study which we
|
|
require of him.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; he must have natural gifts.
|
|
|
|
The mistake at present is, that those who study philosophy have
|
|
no vocation, and this, as I was before saying, is the reason
|
|
why she has fallen into disrepute: her true sons should take
|
|
her by the hand and not bastards.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
In the first place, her votary should not have a lame or halting industry--
|
|
I mean, that he should not be half industrious and half idle:
|
|
as, for example, when a man is a lover of gymnastic and hunting,
|
|
and all other bodily exercises, but a hater rather than a lover
|
|
of the labour of learning or listening or enquiring. Or the
|
|
occupation to which he devotes himself may be of an opposite kind,
|
|
and he may have the other sort of lameness.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And as to truth, I said, is not a soul equally to be deemed
|
|
halt and lame which hates voluntary falsehood and is extremely
|
|
indignant at herself and others when they tell lies, but is patient
|
|
of involuntary falsehood, and does not mind wallowing like a swinish
|
|
beast in the mire of ignorance, and has no shame at being detected?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And, again, in respect of temperance, courage, magnificence, and every
|
|
other virtue, should we not carefully distinguish between the true
|
|
son and the bastard? for where there is no discernment of such
|
|
qualities States and individuals unconsciously err and the State makes
|
|
a ruler, and the individual a friend, of one who, being defective
|
|
in some part of virtue, is in a figure lame or a bastard.
|
|
|
|
That is very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
All these things, then, will have to be carefully considered by us;
|
|
and if only those whom we introduce to this vast system of education
|
|
and training are sound in body and mind, justice herself will have nothing
|
|
to say against us, and we shall be the saviours of the constitution
|
|
and of the State; but, if our pupils are men of another stamp,
|
|
the reverse will happen, and we shall pour a still greater flood
|
|
of ridicule on philosophy than she has to endure at present.
|
|
|
|
That would not be creditable.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, I said; and yet perhaps, in thus turning jest
|
|
into earnest I am equally ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
In what respect?
|
|
|
|
I had forgotten, I said, that we were not serious, and spoke with too
|
|
much excitement. For when I saw philosophy so undeservedly trampled
|
|
under foot of men I could not help feeling a sort of indignation
|
|
at the authors of her disgrace: and my anger made me too vehement.
|
|
|
|
Indeed! I was listening, and did not think so.
|
|
|
|
But I, who am the speaker, felt that I was. And now let me remind
|
|
you that, although in our former selection we chose old men,
|
|
we must not do so in this. Solon was under a delusion when he
|
|
said that a man when he grows old may learn many things--for he
|
|
can no more learn much than he can run much; youth is the time
|
|
for any extraordinary toil.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And, therefore, calculation and geometry and all the other elements
|
|
of instruction, which are a preparation for dialectic, should be
|
|
presented to the mind in childhood; not, however, under any notion
|
|
of forcing our system of education.
|
|
|
|
Why not?
|
|
|
|
Because a freeman ought not to be a slave in the acquisition
|
|
of knowledge of any kind. Bodily exercise, when compulsory,
|
|
does no harm to the body; but knowledge which is acquired under
|
|
compulsion obtains no hold on the mind.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then, my good friend, I said, do not use compulsion, but let early
|
|
education be a sort of amusement; you will then be better able
|
|
to find out the natural bent.
|
|
|
|
That is a very rational notion, he said.
|
|
|
|
Do you remember that the children, too, were to be taken to see
|
|
the battle on horseback; and that if there were no danger they
|
|
were to be brought close up and, like young hounds, have a taste
|
|
of blood given them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember.
|
|
|
|
The same practice may be followed, I said, in all these things--
|
|
labours, lessons, dangers--and he who is most at home in all
|
|
of them ought to be enrolled in a select number.
|
|
|
|
At what age?
|
|
|
|
At the age when the necessary gymnastics are over: the period whether
|
|
of two or three years which passes in this sort of training is useless
|
|
for any other purpose; for sleep and exercise are unpropitious
|
|
to learning; and the trial of who is first in gymnastic exercises
|
|
is one of the most important tests to which our youth are subjected.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied.
|
|
|
|
After that time those who are selected from the class of twenty
|
|
years old will be promoted to higher honour, and the sciences
|
|
which they learned without any order in their early education will
|
|
now be brought together, and they will be able to see the natural
|
|
relationship of them to one another and to true being.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the only kind of knowledge which takes
|
|
lasting root.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and the capacity for such knowledge is the great
|
|
criterion of dialectical talent: the comprehensive mind is always
|
|
the dialectical.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you, he said.
|
|
|
|
These, I said, are the points which you must consider; and those
|
|
who have most of this comprehension, and who are more steadfast
|
|
in their learning, and in their military and other appointed duties,
|
|
when they have arrived at the age of thirty have to be chosen
|
|
by you out of the select class, and elevated to higher honour;
|
|
and you will have to prove them by the help of dialectic, in order
|
|
to learn which of them is able to give up the use of sight and the
|
|
other senses, and in company with truth to attain absolute being:
|
|
And here, my friend, great caution is required.
|
|
|
|
Why great caution?
|
|
|
|
Do you not remark, I said, how great is the evil which dialectic
|
|
has introduced?
|
|
|
|
What evil? he said.
|
|
|
|
The students of the art are filled with lawlessness.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Do you think that there is anything so very unnatural or inexcusable
|
|
in their case? or will you make allowance for them?
|
|
|
|
In what way make allowance?
|
|
|
|
I want you, I said, by way of parallel, to imagine a supposititious
|
|
son who is brought up in great wealth; he is one of a great
|
|
and numerous family, and has many flatterers. When he grows up
|
|
to manhood, he learns that his alleged are not his real parents;
|
|
but who the real are he is unable to discover. Can you guess
|
|
how he will be likely to behave towards his flatterers and his
|
|
supposed parents, first of all during the period when he is
|
|
ignorant of the false relation, and then again when he knows?
|
|
Or shall I guess for you?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
Then I should say, that while he is ignorant of the truth he will
|
|
be likely to honour his father and his mother and his supposed
|
|
relations more than the flatterers; he will be less inclined to
|
|
neglect them when in need, or to do or say anything against them;
|
|
and he will be less willing to disobey them in any important matter.
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
But when he has made the discovery, I should imagine that he would
|
|
diminish his honour and regard for them, and would become more devoted
|
|
to the flatterers; their influence over him would greatly increase;
|
|
he would now live after their ways, and openly associate with them,
|
|
and, unless he were of an unusually good disposition, he would
|
|
trouble himself no more about his supposed parents or other relations.
|
|
|
|
Well, all that is very probable. But how is the image applicable
|
|
to the disciples of philosophy?
|
|
|
|
In this way: you know that there are certain principles about justice
|
|
and honour, which were taught us in childhood, and under their
|
|
parental authority we have been brought up, obeying and honouring them.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
There are also opposite maxims and habits of pleasure which flatter
|
|
and attract the soul, but do not influence those of us who have any
|
|
sense of right, and they continue to obey and honour the maxims
|
|
of their fathers.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Now, when a man is in this state, and the questioning spirit asks
|
|
what is fair or honourable, and he answers as the legislator has
|
|
taught him, and then arguments many and diverse refute his words,
|
|
until he is driven into believing that nothing is honourable any
|
|
more than dishonourable, or just and good any more than the reverse,
|
|
and so of all the notions which he most valued, do you think that he
|
|
will still honour and obey them as before?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And when he ceases to think them honourable and natural as heretofore,
|
|
and he fails to discover the true, can he be expected to pursue
|
|
any life other than that which flatters his desires?
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
And from being a keeper of the law he is converted into a breaker
|
|
of it?
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably.
|
|
|
|
Now all this is very natural in students of philosophy such as I
|
|
have described, and also, as I was just now saying, most excusable.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and, I may add, pitiable.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, that your feelings may not be moved to pity about our
|
|
citizens who are now thirty years of age, every care must be taken
|
|
in introducing them to dialectic.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
There is a danger lest they should taste the dear delight too early;
|
|
for youngsters, as you may have observed, when they first get
|
|
the taste in their mouths, argue for amusement, and are always
|
|
contradicting and refuting others in imitation of those who refute them;
|
|
like puppy-dogs, they rejoice in pulling and tearing at all who come
|
|
near them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is nothing which they like better.
|
|
|
|
And when they have made many conquests and received defeats
|
|
at the hands of many, they violently and speedily get into a way
|
|
of not believing anything which they believed before, and hence,
|
|
not only they, but philosophy and all that relates to it is apt
|
|
to have a bad name with the rest of the world.
|
|
|
|
Too true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when a man begins to get older, he will no longer be guilty of
|
|
such insanity; he will imitate the dialectician who is seeking for truth,
|
|
and not the eristic, who is contradicting for the sake of amusement;
|
|
and the greater moderation of his character will increase instead
|
|
of diminishing the honour of the pursuit.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And did we not make special provision for this, when we said
|
|
that the disciples of philosophy were to be orderly and steadfast,
|
|
not, as now, any chance aspirant or intruder?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Suppose, I said, the study of philosophy to take the place of gymnastics
|
|
and to be continued diligently and earnestly and exclusively
|
|
for twice the number of years which were passed in bodily exercise--
|
|
will that be enough?
|
|
|
|
Would you say six or four years? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Say five years, I replied; at the end of the time they must
|
|
be sent down again into the den and compelled to hold any
|
|
military or other office which young men are qualified to hold:
|
|
in this way they will get their experience of life, and there
|
|
will be an opportunity of trying whether, when they are drawn
|
|
all manner of ways by temptation, they will stand firm or flinch.
|
|
|
|
And how long is this stage of their lives to last?
|
|
|
|
Fifteen years, I answered; and when they have reached fifty years
|
|
of age, then let those who still survive and have distinguished
|
|
themselves in every action of their lives and in every branch
|
|
of knowledge come at last to their consummation; the time has now
|
|
arrived at which they must raise the eye of the soul to the universal
|
|
light which lightens all things, and behold the absolute good;
|
|
for that is the, pattern according to which they are to order the State
|
|
and the lives of individuals, and the remainder of their own lives also;
|
|
making philosophy their chief pursuit, but, when their turn comes,
|
|
toiling also at politics and ruling for the public good, not as though
|
|
they were performing some heroic action, but simply as a matter of duty;
|
|
and when they have brought up in each generation others like
|
|
themselves and left them in their place to be governors of the State,
|
|
then they will depart to the Islands of the Blest and dwell there;
|
|
and the city will give them public memorials and sacrifices and
|
|
honour them, if the Pythian oracle consent, as demi-gods, but if not,
|
|
as in any case blessed and divine.
|
|
|
|
You are a sculptor, Socrates, and have made statues of our governors
|
|
faultless in beauty.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, Glaucon, and of our governesses too;
|
|
for you must not suppose that what I have been
|
|
saying applies to men only and not to women as far as their natures can go.
|
|
|
|
There you are right, he said, since we have made them to share
|
|
in all things like the men.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and you would agree (would you not?) that what has
|
|
been said about the State and the government is not a mere dream,
|
|
and although difficult not impossible, but only possible in the way
|
|
which has been supposed; that is to say, when the true philosopher
|
|
kings are born in a State, one or more of them, despising the
|
|
honours of this present world which they deem mean and worthless,
|
|
esteeming above all things right and the honour that springs from right,
|
|
and regarding justice as the greatest and most necessary of all things,
|
|
whose ministers they are, and whose principles will be exalted
|
|
by them when they set in order their own city?
|
|
|
|
How will they proceed?
|
|
|
|
They will begin by sending out into the country all the inhabitants
|
|
of the city who are more than ten years old, and will take possession
|
|
of their children, who will be unaffected by the habits of their parents;
|
|
these they will train in their own habits and laws, I mean in the laws
|
|
which we have given them: and in this way the State and constitution
|
|
of which we were speaking will soonest and most easily attain happiness,
|
|
and the nation which has such a constitution will gain most.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that will be the best way. And I think, Socrates, that you
|
|
have very well described how, if ever, such a constitution might
|
|
come into being.
|
|
|
|
Enough then of the perfect State, and of the man who bears its image--
|
|
there is no difficulty in seeing how we shall describe him.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty, he replied; and I agree with you in thinking
|
|
that nothing more need be said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK VIII
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
AND so, Glaucon, we have arrived at the conclusion that in the
|
|
perfect State wives and children are to be in common; and that all
|
|
education and the pursuits of war and peace are also to be common,
|
|
and the best philosophers and the bravest warriors are to be their kings?
|
|
|
|
That, replied Glaucon, has been acknowledged.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and we have further acknowledged that the governors,
|
|
when appointed themselves, will take their soldiers and place them
|
|
in houses such as we were describing, which are common to all,
|
|
and contain nothing private, or individual; and about their property,
|
|
you remember what we agreed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I remember that no one was to have any of the ordinary possessions
|
|
of mankind; they were to be warrior athletes and guardians,
|
|
receiving from the other citizens, in lieu of annual payment,
|
|
only their maintenance, and they were to take care of themselves
|
|
and of the whole State.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; and now that this division of our task is concluded,
|
|
let us find the point at which we digressed, that we may return into
|
|
the old path.
|
|
|
|
There is no difficulty in returning; you implied, then as now,
|
|
that you had finished the description of the State: you said
|
|
that such a State was good, and that the man was good who
|
|
answered to it, although, as now appears, you had more excellent
|
|
things to relate both of State and man. And you said further,
|
|
that if this was the true form, then the others were false;
|
|
and of the false forms, you said, as I remember, that there
|
|
were four principal ones, and that their defects, and the defects
|
|
of the individuals corresponding to them, were worth examining.
|
|
When we had seen all the individuals, and finally agreed as to who was
|
|
the best and who was the worst of them, we were to consider whether
|
|
the best was not also the happiest, and the worst the most miserable.
|
|
I asked you what were the four forms of government of which you spoke,
|
|
and then Polemarchus and Adeimantus put in their word; and you
|
|
began again, and have found your way to the point at which we have
|
|
now arrived.
|
|
|
|
Your recollection, I said, is most exact.
|
|
|
|
Then, like a wrestler, he replied, you must put yourself again
|
|
in the same position; and let me ask the same questions, and do you
|
|
give me the same answer which you were about to give me then.
|
|
|
|
Yes, if I can, I will, I said.
|
|
|
|
I shall particularly wish to hear what were the four constitutions
|
|
of which you were speaking.
|
|
|
|
That question, I said, is easily answered: the four governments
|
|
of which I spoke, so far as they have distinct names, are, first,
|
|
those of Crete and Sparta, which are generally applauded;
|
|
what is termed oligarchy comes next; this is not equally approved,
|
|
and is a form of government which teems with evils: thirdly, democracy,
|
|
which naturally follows oligarchy, although very different:
|
|
and lastly comes tyranny, great and famous, which differs from them all,
|
|
and is the fourth and worst disorder of a State. I do not know,
|
|
do you? of any other constitution which can be said to have a
|
|
distinct character. There are lordships and principalities which are
|
|
bought and sold, and some other intermediate forms of government.
|
|
But these are nondescripts and may be found equally among Hellenes
|
|
and among barbarians.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, we certainly hear of many curious forms of government
|
|
which exist among them.
|
|
|
|
Do you know, I said, that governments vary as the dispositions of men vary,
|
|
and that there must be as many of the one as there are of the other?
|
|
For we cannot suppose that States are made of `oak and rock,'
|
|
and not out of the human natures which are in them, and which in a
|
|
figure turn the scale and draw other things after them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the States are as the men are; they grow
|
|
out of human characters.
|
|
|
|
Then if the constitutions of States are five, the dispositions
|
|
of individual minds will also be five?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Him who answers to aristocracy, and whom we rightly call just and good,
|
|
we have already described.
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Then let us now proceed to describe the inferior sort of natures,
|
|
being the contentious and ambitious, who answer to the Spartan polity;
|
|
also the oligarchical, democratical, and tyrannical. Let us place
|
|
the most just by the side of the most unjust, and when we see them
|
|
we shall be able to compare the relative happiness or unhappiness
|
|
of him who leads a life of pure justice or pure injustice.
|
|
The enquiry will then be completed. And we shall know whether we ought
|
|
to pursue injustice, as Thrasymachus advises, or in accordance with
|
|
the conclusions of the argument to prefer justice.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he replied, we must do as you say.
|
|
|
|
Shall we follow our old plan, which we adopted with a view to clearness,
|
|
of taking the State first and then proceeding to the individual,
|
|
and begin with the government of honour?--I know of no name
|
|
for such a government other than timocracy, or perhaps timarchy.
|
|
We will compare with this the like character in the individual;
|
|
and, after that, consider oligarchical man; and then again we
|
|
will turn our attention to democracy and the democratical man;
|
|
and lastly, we will go and view the city of tyranny, and once
|
|
more take a look into the tyrant's soul, and try to arrive at a
|
|
satisfactory decision.
|
|
|
|
That way of viewing and judging of the matter will be very suitable.
|
|
|
|
First, then, I said, let us enquire how timocracy (the government of honour)
|
|
arises out of aristocracy (the government of the best). Clearly,
|
|
all political changes originate in divisions of the actual governing power;
|
|
a government which is united, however small, cannot be moved.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
In what way, then, will our city be moved, and in what manner
|
|
the two classes of auxiliaries and rulers disagree among themselves
|
|
or with one another? Shall we, after the manner of Homer, pray the
|
|
Muses to tell us `how discord first arose'? Shall we imagine them
|
|
in solemn mockery, to play and jest with us as if we were children,
|
|
and to address us in a lofty tragic vein, making believe to be in earnest?
|
|
|
|
How would they address us?
|
|
|
|
After this manner:--A city which is thus constituted can hardly
|
|
be shaken; but, seeing that everything which has a beginning has
|
|
also an end, even a constitution such as yours will not last for ever,
|
|
but will in time be dissolved. And this is the dissolution:--
|
|
In plants that grow in the earth, as well as in animals that move
|
|
on the earth's surface, fertility and sterility of soul and body
|
|
occur when the circumferences of the circles of each are completed,
|
|
which in short-lived existences pass over a short space,
|
|
and in long-lived ones over a long space. But to the knowledge
|
|
of human fecundity and sterility all the wisdom and education
|
|
of your rulers will not attain; the laws which regulate them will
|
|
not be discovered by an intelligence which is alloyed with sense,
|
|
but will escape them, and they will bring children into the world
|
|
when they ought not. Now that which is of divine birth has a period
|
|
which is contained in a perfect number, but the period of human birth
|
|
is comprehended in a number in which first increments by involution
|
|
and evolution (or squared and cubed) obtaining three intervals
|
|
and four terms of like and unlike, waxing and waning numbers,
|
|
make all the terms commensurable and agreeable to one another.
|
|
The base of these (3) with a third added (4) when combined with five
|
|
(20) and raised to the third power furnishes two harmonies;
|
|
the first a square which is a hundred times as great (400 = 4 X
|
|
100), and the other a figure having one side equal to the former,
|
|
but oblong, consisting of a hundred numbers squared upon rational
|
|
diameters of a square (i. e. omitting fractions), the side of which
|
|
is five (7 X 7 = 49 X 100 = 4900), each of them being less by one
|
|
(than the perfect square which includes the fractions, sc. 50) or less
|
|
by two perfect squares of irrational diameters (of a square the side
|
|
of which is five = 50 + 50 = 100); and a hundred cubes of three
|
|
(27 X 100 = 2700 + 4900 + 400 = 8000). Now this number represents
|
|
a geometrical figure which has control over the good and evil of births.
|
|
For when your guardians are ignorant of the law of births,
|
|
and unite bride and bridegroom out of season, the children will not
|
|
be goodly or fortunate. And though only the best of them will be
|
|
appointed by their predecessors, still they will be unworthy to hold
|
|
their fathers' places, and when they come into power as guardians,
|
|
they will soon be found to fall in taking care of us, the Muses,
|
|
first by under-valuing music; which neglect will soon extend to gymnastic;
|
|
and hence the young men of your State will be less cultivated.
|
|
In the succeeding generation rulers will be appointed who have lost
|
|
the guardian power of testing the metal of your different races,
|
|
which, like Hesiod's, are of gold and silver and brass and iron.
|
|
And so iron will be mingled with silver, and brass with gold,
|
|
and hence there will arise dissimilarity and inequality and irregularity,
|
|
which always and in all places are causes of hatred and war.
|
|
This the Muses affirm to be the stock from which discord has sprung,
|
|
wherever arising; and this is their answer to us.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and we may assume that they answer truly.
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, I said, of course they answer truly; how can the Muses
|
|
speak falsely?
|
|
|
|
And what do the Muses say next?
|
|
|
|
When discord arose, then the two races were drawn different ways:
|
|
the iron and brass fell to acquiring money and land and houses
|
|
and gold and silver; but the gold and silver races, not wanting money
|
|
but having the true riches in their own nature, inclined towards virtue
|
|
and the ancient order of things. There was a battle between them,
|
|
and at last they agreed to distribute their land and houses among
|
|
individual owners; and they enslaved their friends and maintainers,
|
|
whom they had formerly protected in the condition of freemen,
|
|
and made of them subjects and servants; and they themselves were
|
|
engaged in war and in keeping a watch against them.
|
|
|
|
I believe that you have rightly conceived the origin of the change.
|
|
|
|
And the new government which thus arises will be of a form
|
|
intermediate between oligarchy and aristocracy?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Such will be the change, and after the change has been made,
|
|
how will they proceed? Clearly, the new State, being in a mean
|
|
between oligarchy and the perfect State, will partly follow one
|
|
and partly the other, and will also have some peculiarities.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the honour given to rulers, in the abstinence of the warrior
|
|
class from agriculture, handicrafts, and trade in general,
|
|
in the institution of common meals, and in the attention paid
|
|
to gymnastics and military training--in all these respects this
|
|
State will resemble the former.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But in the fear of admitting philosophers to power, because they are no
|
|
longer to be had simple and earnest, but are made up of mixed elements;
|
|
and in turning from them to passionate and less complex characters,
|
|
who are by nature fitted for war rather than peace; and in the value set
|
|
by them upon military stratagems and contrivances, and in the waging
|
|
of everlasting wars--this State will be for the most part peculiar.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and men of this stamp will be covetous of money,
|
|
like those who live in oligarchies; they will have, a fierce secret
|
|
longing after gold and silver, which they will hoard in dark places,
|
|
having magazines and treasuries of their own for the deposit and
|
|
concealment of them; also castles which are just nests for their eggs,
|
|
and in which they will spend large sums on their wives, or on any
|
|
others whom they please.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And they are miserly because they have no means of openly acquiring
|
|
the money which they prize; they will spend that which is another
|
|
man's on the gratification of their desires, stealing their pleasures
|
|
and running away like children from the law, their father:
|
|
they have been schooled not by gentle influences but by force,
|
|
for they have neglected her who is the true Muse, the companion of
|
|
reason and philosophy, and have honoured gymnastic more than music.
|
|
|
|
Undoubtedly, he said, the form of government which you describe
|
|
is a mixture of good and evil.
|
|
|
|
Why, there is a mixture, I said; but one thing, and one thing only,
|
|
is predominantly seen,--the spirit of contention and ambition;
|
|
and these are due to the prevalence of the passionate or spirited element.
|
|
|
|
Assuredly, he said.
|
|
|
|
Such is the origin and such the character of this State,
|
|
which has been described in outline only; the more perfect
|
|
execution was not required, for a sketch is enough to show
|
|
the type of the most perfectly just and most perfectly unjust;
|
|
and to go through all the States and all the characters of men,
|
|
omitting none of them, would be an interminable labour.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Now what man answers to this form of government-how did he come
|
|
into being, and what is he like?
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
I think, said Adeimantus, that in the spirit of contention
|
|
which characterises him, he is not unlike our friend Glaucon.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps, I said, he may be like him in that one point; but there
|
|
are other respects in which he is very different.
|
|
|
|
In what respects?
|
|
|
|
He should have more of self-assertion and be less cultivated,
|
|
and yet a friend of culture; and he should be a good listener,
|
|
but no speaker. Such a person is apt to be rough with slaves,
|
|
unlike the educated man, who is too proud for that; and he will
|
|
also be courteous to freemen, and remarkably obedient to authority;
|
|
he is a lover of power and a lover of honour; claiming to be a ruler,
|
|
not because he is eloquent, or on any ground of that sort,
|
|
but because he is a soldier and has performed feats of arms;
|
|
he is also a lover of gymnastic exercises and of the chase.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the type of character which answers to timocracy.
|
|
|
|
Such an one will despise riches only when he is young;
|
|
but as he gets older he will be more and more attracted to them,
|
|
because he has a piece of the avaricious nature in him, and is
|
|
not singleminded towards virtue, having lost his best guardian.
|
|
|
|
Who was that? said Adeimantus.
|
|
|
|
Philosophy, I said, tempered with music, who comes and takes her abode
|
|
in a man, and is the only saviour of his virtue throughout life.
|
|
|
|
Good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Such,
|
|
I said, is the timocratical youth, and he is like the timocratical State.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
His origin is as follows:--He is often the young son of a grave father,
|
|
who dwells in an ill-governed city, of which he declines the honours
|
|
and offices, and will not go to law, or exert himself in any way,
|
|
but is ready to waive his rights in order that he may escape trouble.
|
|
|
|
And how does the son come into being?
|
|
|
|
The character of the son begins to develop when he hears his mother
|
|
complaining that her husband has no place in the government,
|
|
of which the consequence is that she has no precedence among
|
|
other women. Further, when she sees her husband not very eager
|
|
about money, and instead of battling and railing in the law
|
|
courts or assembly, taking whatever happens to him quietly;
|
|
and when she observes that his thoughts always centre in himself,
|
|
while he treats her with very considerable indifference, she is annoyed,
|
|
and says to her son that his father is only half a man and far
|
|
too easy-going: adding all the other complaints about her own
|
|
ill-treatment which women are so fond of rehearsing.
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Adeimantus, they give us plenty of them, and their
|
|
complaints are so like themselves.
|
|
|
|
And you know, I said, that the old servants also, who are supposed to be
|
|
attached to the family, from time to time talk privately in the same
|
|
strain to the son; and if they see any one who owes money to his father,
|
|
or is wronging him in any way, and he falls to prosecute them,
|
|
they tell the youth that when he grows up he must retaliate upon
|
|
people of this sort, and be more of a man than his father. He has
|
|
only to walk abroad and he hears and sees the same sort of thing:
|
|
those who do their own business in the city are called simpletons,
|
|
and held in no esteem, while the busy-bodies are honoured and applauded.
|
|
The result is that the young man, hearing and seeing all these thing--
|
|
hearing too, the words of his father, and having a nearer view of his way
|
|
of life, and making comparisons of him and others--is drawn opposite ways:
|
|
while his father is watering and nourishing the rational principle
|
|
in his soul, the others are encouraging the passionate and appetitive;
|
|
and he being not originally of a bad nature, but having kept bad company,
|
|
is at last brought by their joint influence to a middle point,
|
|
and gives up the kingdom which is within him to the middle
|
|
principle of contentiousness and passion, and becomes arrogant
|
|
and ambitious.
|
|
|
|
You seem to me to have described his origin perfectly.
|
|
|
|
Then we have now, I said, the second form of government and the second
|
|
type of character?
|
|
|
|
We have.
|
|
|
|
Next, let us look at another man who, as Aeschylus says,
|
|
|
|
Is set over against another State;
|
|
|
|
or rather, as our plan requires, begin with the State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
I believe that oligarchy follows next in order.
|
|
|
|
And what manner of government do you term oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
A government resting on a valuation of property, in which the rich
|
|
have power and the poor man is deprived of it.
|
|
|
|
I understand, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Ought I not to begin by describing how the change from timocracy
|
|
to oligarchy arises?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, no eyes are required in order to see how the one
|
|
passes into the other.
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
The accumulation of gold in the treasury of private individuals
|
|
is ruin the of timocracy; they invent illegal modes of expenditure;
|
|
for what do they or their wives care about the law?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
And then one, seeing another grow rich, seeks to rival him,
|
|
and thus the great mass of the citizens become lovers of money.
|
|
|
|
Likely enough.
|
|
|
|
And so they grow richer and richer, and the more they think
|
|
of making a fortune the less they think of virtue; for when riches
|
|
and virtue are placed together in the scales of the balance,
|
|
the one always rises as the other falls.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And in proportion as riches and rich men are honoured in the State,
|
|
virtue and the virtuous are dishonoured.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And what is honoured is cultivated, and that which has no honour
|
|
is neglected.
|
|
|
|
That is obvious.
|
|
|
|
And so at last, instead of loving contention and glory, men become
|
|
lovers of trade and money; they honour and look up to the rich man,
|
|
and make a ruler of him, and dishonour the poor man.
|
|
|
|
They do so.
|
|
|
|
They next proceed to make a law which fixes a sum of money as
|
|
the qualification of citizenship; the sum is higher in one place
|
|
and lower in another, as the oligarchy is more or less exclusive;
|
|
and they allow no one whose property falls below the amount fixed
|
|
to have any share in the government. These changes in the constitution
|
|
they effect by force of arms, if intimidation has not already done
|
|
their work.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And this, speaking generally, is the way in which oligarchy
|
|
is established.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but what are the characteristics of this form
|
|
of government, and what are the defects of which we were speaking?
|
|
|
|
First of all, I said, consider the nature of the qualification
|
|
just think what would happen if pilots were to be chosen according
|
|
to their property, and a poor man were refused permission to steer,
|
|
even though he were a better pilot?
|
|
|
|
You mean that they would shipwreck?
|
|
|
|
Yes; and is not this true of the government of anything?
|
|
|
|
I should imagine so.
|
|
|
|
Except a city?--or would you include a city?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, the case of a city is the strongest of all,
|
|
inasmuch as the rule of a city is the greatest and most difficult
|
|
of all.
|
|
|
|
This, then, will be the first great defect of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And here is another defect which is quite as bad.
|
|
|
|
What defect?
|
|
|
|
The inevitable division: such a State is not one, but two States,
|
|
the one of poor, the other of rich men; and they are living on
|
|
the same spot and always conspiring against one another.
|
|
|
|
That, surely, is at least as bad.
|
|
|
|
Another discreditable feature is, that, for a like reason,
|
|
they are incapable of carrying on any war. Either they arm
|
|
the multitude, and then they are more afraid of them than of
|
|
the enemy; or, if they do not call them out in the hour of battle,
|
|
they are oligarchs indeed, few to fight as they are few to rule.
|
|
And at the same time their fondness for money makes them unwilling
|
|
to pay taxes.
|
|
|
|
How discreditable!
|
|
|
|
And, as we said before, under such a constitution the same persons
|
|
have too many callings--they are husbandmen, tradesmen, warriors,
|
|
all in one. Does that look well?
|
|
|
|
Anything but well.
|
|
|
|
There is another evil which is, perhaps, the greatest of all,
|
|
and to which this State first begins to be liable.
|
|
|
|
What evil?
|
|
|
|
A man may sell all that he has, and another may acquire his property;
|
|
yet after the sale he may dwell in the city of which he is no longer
|
|
a part, being neither trader, nor artisan, nor horseman, nor hoplite,
|
|
but only a poor, helpless creature.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is an evil which also first begins in this State.
|
|
|
|
The evil is certainly not prevented there; for oligarchies have
|
|
both the extremes of great wealth and utter poverty.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But think again: In his wealthy days, while he was spending
|
|
his money, was a man of this sort a whit more good to the State
|
|
for the purposes of citizenship? Or did he only seem to be a member
|
|
of the ruling body, although in truth he was neither ruler nor subject,
|
|
but just a spendthrift?
|
|
|
|
As you say, he seemed to be a ruler, but was only a spendthrift.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that this is the drone in the house who is
|
|
like the drone in the honeycomb, and that the one is the plague
|
|
of the city as the other is of the hive?
|
|
|
|
Just so, Socrates.
|
|
|
|
And God has made the flying drones, Adeimantus, all without stings,
|
|
whereas of the walking drones he has made some without stings but others
|
|
have dreadful stings; of the stingless class are those who in their
|
|
old age end as paupers; of the stingers come all the criminal class,
|
|
as they are termed.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Clearly then, whenever you see paupers in a State, somewhere in
|
|
that neighborhood there are hidden away thieves, and cutpurses
|
|
and robbers of temples, and all sorts of malefactors.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and in oligarchical States do you not find paupers?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; nearly everybody is a pauper who is not a ruler.
|
|
|
|
And may we be so bold as to affirm that there are also many
|
|
criminals to be found in them, rogues who have stings, and whom
|
|
the authorities are careful to restrain by force?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, we may be so bold.
|
|
|
|
The existence of such persons is to be attributed to want of education,
|
|
ill-training, and an evil constitution of the State?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, is the form and such are the evils of oligarchy;
|
|
and there may be many other evils.
|
|
|
|
Very likely.
|
|
|
|
Then oligarchy, or the form of government in which the rulers
|
|
are elected for their wealth, may now be dismissed. Let us
|
|
next proceed to consider the nature and origin of the individual
|
|
who answers to this State.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Does not the timocratical man change into the oligarchical on this wise?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
A time arrives when the representative of timocracy has a son:
|
|
at first he begins by emulating his father and walking in his footsteps,
|
|
but presently he sees him of a sudden foundering against the State
|
|
as upon a sunken reef, and he and all that he has is lost;
|
|
he may have been a general or some other high officer who is brought
|
|
to trial under a prejudice raised by informers, and either put to death,
|
|
or exiled, or deprived of the privileges of a citizen, and all his
|
|
property taken from him.
|
|
|
|
Nothing more likely.
|
|
|
|
And the son has seen and known all this--he is a ruined man,
|
|
and his fear has taught him to knock ambition and passion head-foremost
|
|
from his bosom's throne; humbled by poverty he takes to money-making
|
|
and by mean and miserly savings and hard work gets a fortune together.
|
|
Is not such an one likely to seat the concupiscent and covetous
|
|
element on the vacant throne and to suffer it to play the great king
|
|
within him, girt with tiara and chain and scimitar?
|
|
|
|
Most true, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And when he has made reason and spirit sit down on the ground obediently
|
|
on either side of their sovereign, and taught them to know their place,
|
|
he compels the one to think only of how lesser sums may be turned
|
|
into larger ones, and will not allow the other to worship and admire
|
|
anything but riches and rich men, or to be ambitious of anything
|
|
so much as the acquisition of wealth and the means of acquiring it.
|
|
|
|
Of all changes, he said, there is none so speedy or so sure
|
|
as the conversion of the ambitious youth into the avaricious one.
|
|
|
|
And the avaricious, I said, is the oligarchical youth?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at any rate the individual out of whom he came
|
|
is like the State out of which oligarchy came.
|
|
|
|
Let us then consider whether there is any likeness between them.
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
First, then, they resemble one another in the value which they set
|
|
upon wealth?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Also in their penurious, laborious character; the individual only
|
|
satisfies his necessary appetites, and confines his expenditure
|
|
to them; his other desires he subdues, under the idea that they
|
|
are unprofitable.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
He is a shabby fellow, who saves something out of everything and makes
|
|
a purse for himself; and this is the sort of man whom the vulgar applaud.
|
|
Is he not a true image of the State which he represents?
|
|
|
|
He appears to me to be so; at any rate money is highly valued
|
|
by him as well as by the State.
|
|
|
|
You see that he is not a man of cultivation, I said.
|
|
|
|
I imagine not, he said; had he been educated he would never have
|
|
made a blind god director of his chorus, or given him chief honour.
|
|
|
|
Excellent! I said. Yet consider: Must we not further admit
|
|
that owing to this want of cultivation there will be found in him
|
|
dronelike desires as of pauper and rogue, which are forcibly kept
|
|
down by his general habit of life?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Do you know where you will have to look if you want to discover
|
|
his rogueries?
|
|
|
|
Where must I look?
|
|
|
|
You should see him where he has some great opportunity
|
|
of acting dishonestly, as in the guardianship of an orphan.
|
|
|
|
Aye.
|
|
|
|
It will be clear enough then that in his ordinary dealings which
|
|
give him a reputation for honesty he coerces his bad passions
|
|
by an enforced virtue; not making them see that they are wrong,
|
|
or taming them by reason, but by necessity and fear constraining them,
|
|
and because he trembles for his possessions.
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, my dear friend, but you will find that the natural
|
|
desires of the drone commonly exist in him all the same whenever
|
|
he has to spend what is not his own.
|
|
|
|
Yes, and they will be strong in him too.
|
|
|
|
The man, then, will be at war with himself; he will be two men,
|
|
and not one; but, in general, his better desires will be found
|
|
to prevail over his inferior ones.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
For these reasons such an one will be more respectable than most people;
|
|
yet the true virtue of a unanimous and harmonious soul will flee far
|
|
away and never come near him.
|
|
|
|
I should expect so.
|
|
|
|
And surely, the miser individually will be an ignoble competitor in a
|
|
State for any prize of victory, or other object of honourable ambition;
|
|
he will not spend his money in the contest for glory; so afraid
|
|
is he of awakening his expensive appetites and inviting them to help
|
|
and join in the struggle; in true oligarchical fashion he fights
|
|
with a small part only of his resources, and the result commonly
|
|
is that he loses the prize and saves his money.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Can we any longer doubt, then, that the miser and money-maker
|
|
answers to the oligarchical State?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt.
|
|
|
|
Next comes democracy; of this the origin and nature have still
|
|
to be considered by us; and then we will enquire into the ways
|
|
of the democratic man, and bring him up for judgement.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is our method.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and how does the change from oligarchy into democracy arise?
|
|
Is it not on this wise?--The good at which such a State alms
|
|
is to become as rich as possible, a desire which is insatiable?
|
|
|
|
What then?
|
|
|
|
The rulers, being aware that their power rests upon their wealth,
|
|
refuse to curtail by law the extravagance of the spendthrift youth
|
|
because they gain by their ruin; they take interest from them and buy
|
|
up their estates and thus increase their own wealth and importance?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt that the love of wealth and the spirit
|
|
of moderation cannot exist together in citizens of the same State
|
|
to any considerable extent; one or the other will be disregarded.
|
|
|
|
That is tolerably clear.
|
|
|
|
And in oligarchical States, from the general spread of carelessness
|
|
and extravagance, men of good family have often been reduced
|
|
to beggary?
|
|
|
|
Yes, often.
|
|
|
|
And still they remain in the city; there they are, ready to sting
|
|
and fully armed, and some of them owe money, some have forfeited
|
|
their citizenship; a third class are in both predicaments;
|
|
and they hate and conspire against those who have got their property,
|
|
and against everybody else, and are eager for revolution.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, the men of business, stooping as they walk,
|
|
and pretending not even to see those whom they have already ruined,
|
|
insert their sting--that is, their money--into some one else who is
|
|
not on his guard against them, and recover the parent sum many times
|
|
over multiplied into a family of children: and so they make drone
|
|
and pauper to abound in the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are plenty of them--that is certain.
|
|
|
|
The evil blazes up like a fire; and they will not extinguish it,
|
|
either by restricting a man's use of his own property, or by
|
|
another remedy:
|
|
|
|
What other?
|
|
|
|
One which is the next best, and has the advantage of compelling
|
|
the citizens to look to their characters:--Let there be a general rule
|
|
that every one shall enter into voluntary contracts at his own risk,
|
|
and there will be less of this scandalous money-making, and the evils
|
|
of which we were speaking will be greatly lessened in the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, they will be greatly lessened.
|
|
|
|
At present the governors, induced by the motives which I have named,
|
|
treat their subjects badly; while they and their adherents,
|
|
especially the young men of the governing class, are habituated
|
|
to lead a life of luxury and idleness both of body and mind;
|
|
they do nothing, and are incapable of resisting either pleasure
|
|
or pain.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
They themselves care only for making money, and are as indifferent
|
|
as the pauper to the cultivation of virtue.
|
|
|
|
Yes, quite as indifferent.
|
|
|
|
Such is the state of affairs which prevails among them.
|
|
And often rulers and their subjects may come in one another's way,
|
|
whether on a pilgrimage or a march, as fellow-soldiers
|
|
or fellow-sailors; aye, and they may observe the behaviour
|
|
of each other in the very moment of danger--for where danger is,
|
|
there is no fear that the poor will be despised by the rich--
|
|
and very likely the wiry sunburnt poor man may be placed in battle
|
|
at the side of a wealthy one who has never spoilt his complexion
|
|
and has plenty of superfluous flesh--when he sees such an one puffing
|
|
and at his wit's end, how can he avoid drawing the conclusion
|
|
that men like him are only rich because no one has the courage
|
|
to despoil them? And when they meet in private will not people
|
|
be saying to one another `Our warriors are not good for much'?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I am quite aware that this is their way of talking.
|
|
|
|
And, as in a body which is diseased the addition of a touch from without
|
|
may bring on illness, and sometimes even when there is no external
|
|
provocation a commotion may arise within-in the same way wherever
|
|
there is weakness in the State there is also likely to be illness,
|
|
of which the occasions may be very slight, the one party introducing
|
|
from without their oligarchical, the other their democratical allies,
|
|
and then the State falls sick, and is at war with herself;
|
|
and may be at times distracted, even when there is no external cause.
|
|
|
|
Yes, surely.
|
|
|
|
And then democracy comes into being after the poor have conquered
|
|
their opponents, slaughtering some and banishing some, while to
|
|
the remainder they give an equal share of freedom and power;
|
|
and this is the form of government in which the magistrates are
|
|
commonly elected by lot.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the nature of democracy, whether the revolution
|
|
has been effected by arms, or whether fear has caused the opposite
|
|
party to withdraw.
|
|
|
|
And now what is their manner of life, and what sort of a government
|
|
have they? for as the government is, such will be the man.
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, are they not free; and is not the city full
|
|
of freedom and frankness--a man may say and do what he likes?
|
|
|
|
`Tis said so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And where freedom is, the individual is clearly able to order
|
|
for himself his own life as he pleases?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
Then in this kind of State there will be the greatest variety
|
|
of human natures?
|
|
|
|
There will.
|
|
|
|
This, then, seems likely to be the fairest of States, being an
|
|
embroidered robe which is spangled with every sort of flower.
|
|
And just as women and children think a variety of colours to be of
|
|
all things most charming, so there are many men to whom this State,
|
|
which is spangled with the manners and characters of mankind,
|
|
will appear to be the fairest of States.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Yes, my good Sir, and there will be no better in which to look
|
|
for a government.
|
|
|
|
Why?
|
|
|
|
Because of the liberty which reigns there--they have a complete
|
|
assortment of constitutions; and he who has a mind to establish
|
|
a State, as we have been doing, must go to a democracy as he would
|
|
to a bazaar at which they sell them, and pick out the one that
|
|
suits him; then, when he has made his choice, he may found his State.
|
|
|
|
He will be sure to have patterns enough.
|
|
|
|
And there being no necessity, I said, for you to govern in this State,
|
|
even if you have the capacity, or to be governed, unless you like,
|
|
or go to war when the rest go to war, or to be at peace when others
|
|
are at peace, unless you are so disposed--there being no necessity also,
|
|
because some law forbids you to hold office or be a dicast,
|
|
that you should not hold office or be a dicast, if you have a fancy--
|
|
is not this a way of life which for the moment is supremely
|
|
delightful
|
|
|
|
For the moment, yes.
|
|
|
|
And is not their humanity to the condemned in some cases quite charming?
|
|
Have you not observed how, in a democracy, many persons, although they
|
|
have been sentenced to death or exile, just stay where they
|
|
are and walk about the world--the gentleman parades like a hero,
|
|
and nobody sees or cares?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, many and many a one.
|
|
|
|
See too, I said, the forgiving spirit of democracy, and the `don't care'
|
|
about trifles, and the disregard which she shows of all the fine
|
|
principles which we solemnly laid down at the foundation of the city--
|
|
as when we said that, except in the case of some rarely gifted nature,
|
|
there never will be a good man who has not from his childhood been
|
|
used to play amid things of beauty and make of them a joy and a study--
|
|
how grandly does she trample all these fine notions of ours
|
|
under her feet, never giving a thought to the pursuits which make
|
|
a statesman, and promoting to honour any one who professes to be
|
|
the people's friend.
|
|
|
|
Yes, she is of a noble spirit.
|
|
|
|
These and other kindred characteristics are proper to democracy,
|
|
which is a charming form of government, full of variety and disorder,
|
|
and dispensing a sort of equality to equals and unequals alike.
|
|
|
|
We know her well.
|
|
|
|
Consider now, I said, what manner of man the individual is,
|
|
or rather consider, as in the case of the State, how he comes
|
|
into being.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Is not this the way--he is the son of the miserly and oligarchical
|
|
father who has trained him in his own habits?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And, like his father, he keeps under by force the pleasures
|
|
which are of the spending and not of the getting sort,
|
|
being those which are called unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Obviously.
|
|
|
|
Would you like, for the sake of clearness, to distinguish
|
|
which are the necessary and which are the unnecessary pleasures?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
Are not necessary pleasures those of which we cannot get rid, and of
|
|
which the satisfaction is a benefit to us? And they are rightly so,
|
|
because we are framed by nature to desire both what is beneficial
|
|
and what is necessary, and cannot help it.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
We are not wrong therefore in calling them necessary?
|
|
|
|
We are not.
|
|
|
|
And the desires of which a man may get rid, if he takes pains from
|
|
his youth upwards--of which the presence, moreover, does no good,
|
|
and in some cases the reverse of good--shall we not be right in saying
|
|
that all these are unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly.
|
|
|
|
Suppose we select an example of either kind, in order that we
|
|
may have a general notion of them?
|
|
|
|
Very good.
|
|
|
|
Will not the desire of eating, that is, of simple food and condiments,
|
|
in so far as they are required for health and strength,
|
|
be of the necessary class?
|
|
|
|
That is what I should suppose.
|
|
|
|
The pleasure of eating is necessary in two ways; it does us good
|
|
and it is essential to the continuance of life?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But the condiments are only necessary in so far as they are good
|
|
for health?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And the desire which goes beyond this, or more delicate food,
|
|
or other luxuries, which might generally be got rid of,
|
|
if controlled and trained in youth, and is hurtful to the body,
|
|
and hurtful to the soul in the pursuit of wisdom and virtue,
|
|
may be rightly called unnecessary?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
May we not say that these desires spend, and that the others make
|
|
money because they conduce to production?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And of the pleasures of love, and all other pleasures, the same
|
|
holds good?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the drone of whom we spoke was he who was surfeited in pleasures
|
|
and desires of this sort, and was the slave of the unnecessary desires,
|
|
whereas he who was subject o the necessary only was miserly
|
|
and oligarchical?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Again, let us see how the democratical man grows out of the oligarchical:
|
|
the following, as I suspect, is commonly the process.
|
|
|
|
What is the process?
|
|
|
|
When a young man who has been brought up as we were just
|
|
now describing, in a vulgar and miserly way, has tasted drones'
|
|
honey and has come to associate with fierce and crafty natures
|
|
who are able to provide for him all sorts of refinements
|
|
and varieties of pleasure--then, as you may imagine, the change
|
|
will begin of the oligarchical principle within him into the democratical?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And as in the city like was helping like, and the change was effected
|
|
by an alliance from without assisting one division of the citizens,
|
|
so too the young man is changed by a class of desires coming from
|
|
without to assist the desires within him, that which is and alike
|
|
again helping that which is akin and alike?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if there be any ally which aids the oligarchical principle
|
|
within him, whether the influence of a father or of kindred,
|
|
advising or rebuking him, then there arises in his soul a faction
|
|
and an opposite faction, and he goes to war with himself.
|
|
|
|
It must be so.
|
|
|
|
And there are times when the democratical principle gives way to
|
|
the oligarchical, and some of his desires die, and others are banished;
|
|
a spirit of reverence enters into the young man's soul and order
|
|
is restored.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that sometimes happens.
|
|
|
|
And then, again, after the old desires have been driven out,
|
|
fresh ones spring up, which are akin to them, and because he,
|
|
their father, does not know how to educate them, wax fierce
|
|
and numerous.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is apt to be the way.
|
|
|
|
They draw him to his old associates, and holding secret intercourse
|
|
with them, breed and multiply in him.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
At length they seize upon the citadel of the young man's soul,
|
|
which they perceive to be void of all accomplishments and fair
|
|
pursuits and true words, which make their abode in the minds of men
|
|
who are dear to the gods, and are their best guardians and sentinels.
|
|
|
|
None better.
|
|
|
|
False and boastful conceits and phrases mount upwards and take
|
|
their place.
|
|
|
|
They are certain to do so.
|
|
|
|
And so the young man returns into the country of the lotus-eaters,
|
|
and takes up his dwelling there in the face of all men; and if
|
|
any help be sent by his friends to the oligarchical part of him,
|
|
the aforesaid vain conceits shut the gate of the king's fastness;
|
|
and they will neither allow the embassy itself to enter,
|
|
private if private advisers offer the fatherly counsel of the aged
|
|
will they listen to them or receive them. There is a battle
|
|
and they gain the day, and then modesty, which they call silliness,
|
|
is ignominiously thrust into exile by them, and temperance,
|
|
which they nickname unmanliness, is trampled in the mire and cast forth;
|
|
they persuade men that moderation and orderly expenditure are vulgarity
|
|
and meanness, and so, by the help of a rabble of evil appetites,
|
|
they drive them beyond the border.
|
|
|
|
Yes, with a will.
|
|
|
|
And when they have emptied and swept clean the soul of him who is now
|
|
in their power and who is being initiated by them in great mysteries,
|
|
the next thing is to bring back to their house insolence and
|
|
anarchy and waste and impudence in bright array having garlands
|
|
on their heads, and a great company with them, hymning their praises
|
|
and calling them by sweet names; insolence they term breeding,
|
|
and anarchy liberty, and waste magnificence, and impudence courage.
|
|
And so the young man passes out of his original nature, which was
|
|
trained in the school of necessity, into the freedom and libertinism
|
|
of useless and unnecessary pleasures.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the change in him is visible enough.
|
|
|
|
After this he lives on, spending his money and labour and time
|
|
on unnecessary pleasures quite as much as on necessary ones;
|
|
but if he be fortunate, and is not too much disordered in his wits,
|
|
when years have elapsed, and the heyday of passion is over--
|
|
supposing that he then re-admits into the city some part
|
|
of the exiled virtues, and does not wholly give himself up to
|
|
their successors--in that case he balances his pleasures and lives
|
|
in a sort of equilibrium, putting the government of himself
|
|
into the hands of the one which comes first and wins the turn;
|
|
and when he has had enough of that, then into the hands of another;
|
|
he despises none of them but encourages them all equally.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Neither does he receive or let pass into the fortress any true
|
|
word of advice; if any one says to him that some pleasures are the
|
|
satisfactions of good and noble desires, and others of evil desires,
|
|
and that he ought to use and honour some and chastise and master
|
|
the others--whenever this is repeated to him he shakes his head
|
|
and says that they are all alike, and that one is as good as another.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that is the way with him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, he lives from day to day indulging the appetite of the hour;
|
|
and sometimes he is lapped in drink and strains of the flute;
|
|
then he becomes a water-drinker, and tries to get thin; then he takes
|
|
a turn at gymnastics; sometimes idling and neglecting everything,
|
|
then once more living the life of a philosopher; often he-is busy
|
|
with politics, and starts to his feet and says and does whatever
|
|
comes into his head; and, if he is emulous of any one who is
|
|
a warrior, off he is in that direction, or of men of business,
|
|
once more in that. His life has neither law nor order; and this
|
|
distracted existence he terms joy and bliss and freedom; and so he
|
|
goes on.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, he is all liberty and equality.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; his life is motley and manifold and an epitome of the lives
|
|
of many;--he answers to the State which we described as fair and spangled.
|
|
And many a man and many a woman will take him for their pattern,
|
|
and many a constitution and many an example of manners is contained
|
|
in him.
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Let him then be set over against democracy; he may truly be called
|
|
the democratic man.
|
|
|
|
Let that be his place, he said.
|
|
|
|
Last of all comes the most beautiful of all, man and State alike,
|
|
tyranny and the tyrant; these we have now to consider.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Say then, my friend, in what manner does tyranny arise?--that it
|
|
has a democratic origin is evident.
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And does not tyranny spring from democracy in the same manner
|
|
as democracy from oligarchy--I mean, after a sort?
|
|
|
|
How?
|
|
|
|
The good which oligarchy proposed to itself and the means
|
|
by which it was maintained was excess of wealth--am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the insatiable desire of wealth and the neglect of all other
|
|
things for the sake of money-getting was also the ruin of oligarchy?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And democracy has her own good, of which the insatiable desire
|
|
brings her to dissolution?
|
|
|
|
What good?
|
|
|
|
Freedom, I replied; which, as they tell you in a democracy,
|
|
is the glory of the State--and that therefore in a democracy alone
|
|
will the freeman of nature deign to dwell.
|
|
|
|
Yes; the saying is in everybody's mouth.
|
|
|
|
I was going to observe, that the insatiable desire of this and
|
|
the neglect of other things introduces the change in democracy,
|
|
which occasions a demand for tyranny.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
When a democracy which is thirsting for freedom has evil cupbearers
|
|
presiding over the feast, and has drunk too deeply of the strong
|
|
wine of freedom, then, unless her rulers are very amenable and give
|
|
a plentiful draught, she calls them to account and punishes them,
|
|
and says that they are cursed oligarchs.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied, a very common occurrence.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and loyal citizens are insultingly termed by her
|
|
slaves who hug their chains and men of naught; she would have
|
|
subjects who are like rulers, and rulers who are like subjects:
|
|
these are men after her own heart, whom she praises and honours
|
|
both in private and public. Now, in such a State, can liberty
|
|
have any limit?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
By degrees the anarchy finds a way into private houses, and ends
|
|
by getting among the animals and infecting them.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean that the father grows accustomed to descend to the level of his
|
|
sons and to fear them, and the son is on a level with his father,
|
|
he having no respect or reverence for either of his parents;
|
|
and this is his freedom, and metic is equal with the citizen
|
|
and the citizen with the metic, and the stranger is quite as good
|
|
as either.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the way.
|
|
|
|
And these are not the only evils, I said--there are several lesser ones:
|
|
In such a state of society the master fears and flatters his scholars,
|
|
and the scholars despise their masters and tutors; young and old
|
|
are all alike; and the young man is on a level with the old,
|
|
and is ready to compete with him in word or deed; and old men
|
|
condescend to the young and are full of pleasantry and gaiety;
|
|
they are loth to be thought morose and authoritative, and therefore they
|
|
adopt the manners of the young.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
The last extreme of popular liberty is when the slave bought with money,
|
|
whether male or female, is just as free as his or her purchaser;
|
|
nor must I forget to tell of the liberty and equality of the two sexes
|
|
in relation to each other.
|
|
|
|
Why not, as Aeschylus says, utter the word which rises to our lips?
|
|
|
|
That is what I am doing, I replied; and I must add that no one
|
|
who does not know would believe, how much greater is the liberty
|
|
which the animals who are under the dominion of man have in a democracy
|
|
than in any other State: for truly, the she-dogs, as the proverb says,
|
|
are as good as their she-mistresses, and the horses and asses have
|
|
a way of marching along with all the rights and dignities of freemen;
|
|
and they will run at anybody who comes in their way if he does
|
|
not leave the road clear for them: and all things are just ready
|
|
to burst with liberty.
|
|
|
|
When I take a country walk, he said, I often experience what you describe.
|
|
You and I have dreamed the same thing.
|
|
|
|
And above all, I said, and as the result of all, see how sensitive
|
|
the citizens become; they chafe impatiently at the least touch
|
|
of authority and at length, as you know, they cease to care even
|
|
for the laws, written or unwritten; they will have no one over them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I know it too well.
|
|
|
|
Such, my friend, I said, is the fair and glorious beginning
|
|
out of which springs tyranny.
|
|
|
|
Glorious indeed, he said. But what is the next step?
|
|
|
|
The ruin of oligarchy is the ruin of democracy; the same disease
|
|
magnified and intensified by liberty overmasters democracy--
|
|
the truth being that the excessive increase of anything often
|
|
causes a reaction in the opposite direction; and this is the case
|
|
not only in the seasons and in vegetable and animal life, but above
|
|
all in forms of government.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The excess of liberty, whether in States or individuals,
|
|
seems only to pass into excess of slavery.
|
|
|
|
Yes, the natural order.
|
|
|
|
And so tyranny naturally arises out of democracy, and the most
|
|
aggravated form of tyranny and slavery out of the most extreme
|
|
form of liberty?
|
|
|
|
As we might expect.
|
|
|
|
That, however, was not, as I believe, your question-you rather
|
|
desired to know what is that disorder which is generated alike
|
|
in oligarchy and democracy, and is the ruin of both?
|
|
|
|
Just so, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I meant to refer to the class of idle spendthrifts,
|
|
of whom the more courageous are the-leaders and the more timid
|
|
the followers, the same whom we were comparing to drones, some stingless,
|
|
and others having stings.
|
|
|
|
A very just comparison.
|
|
|
|
These two classes are the plagues of every city in which they
|
|
are generated, being what phlegm and bile are to the body.
|
|
And the good physician and lawgiver of the State ought, like the wise
|
|
bee-master, to keep them at a distance and prevent, if possible,
|
|
their ever coming in; and if they have anyhow found a way in,
|
|
then he should have them and their cells cut out as speedily
|
|
as possible.
|
|
|
|
Yes, by all means, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, in order that we may see clearly what we are doing, let us
|
|
imagine democracy to be divided, as indeed it is, into three classes;
|
|
for in the first place freedom creates rather more drones in
|
|
the democratic than there were in the oligarchical State.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And in the democracy they are certainly more intensified.
|
|
|
|
How so?
|
|
|
|
Because in the oligarchical State they are disqualified and driven
|
|
from office, and therefore they cannot train or gather strength;
|
|
whereas in a democracy they are almost the entire ruling power,
|
|
and while the keener sort speak and act, the rest keep buzzing
|
|
about the bema and do not suffer a word to be said on the other side;
|
|
hence in democracies almost everything is managed by the drones.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then there is another class which is always being severed from
|
|
the mass.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
They are the orderly class, which in a nation of traders sure
|
|
to be the richest.
|
|
|
|
Naturally so.
|
|
|
|
They are the most squeezable persons and yield the largest amount
|
|
of honey to the drones.
|
|
|
|
Why, he said, there is little to be squeezed out of people
|
|
who have little.
|
|
|
|
And this is called the wealthy class, and the drones feed upon them.
|
|
|
|
That is pretty much the case, he said.
|
|
|
|
The people are a third class, consisting of those who work with their
|
|
own hands; they are not politicians, and have not much to live upon.
|
|
This, when assembled, is the largest and most powerful class in a democracy.
|
|
|
|
True, he said; but then the multitude is seldom willing to congregate
|
|
unless they get a little honey.
|
|
|
|
And do they not share? I said. Do not their leaders deprive
|
|
the rich of their estates and distribute them among the people;
|
|
at the same time taking care to reserve the larger part for themselves?
|
|
|
|
Why, yes, he said, to that extent the people do share.
|
|
|
|
And the persons whose property is taken from them are compelled
|
|
to defend themselves before the people as they best can?
|
|
|
|
What else can they do?
|
|
|
|
And then, although they may have no desire of change, the others
|
|
charge them with plotting against the people and being friends
|
|
of oligarchy? True.
|
|
|
|
And the end is that when they see the people, not of their own accord,
|
|
but through ignorance, and because they are deceived by informers,
|
|
seeking to do them wrong, then at last they are forced to become
|
|
oligarchs in reality; they do not wish to be, but the sting of
|
|
the drones torments them and breeds revolution in them.
|
|
|
|
That is exactly the truth.
|
|
|
|
Then come impeachments and judgments and trials of one another.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The people have always some champion whom they set over them
|
|
and nurse into greatness.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is their way.
|
|
|
|
This and no other is the root from which a tyrant springs;
|
|
when he first appears above ground he is a protector.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is quite clear.
|
|
|
|
How then does a protector begin to change into a tyrant?
|
|
Clearly when he does what the man is said to do in the tale
|
|
of the Arcadian temple of Lycaean Zeus.
|
|
|
|
What tale?
|
|
|
|
The tale is that he who has tasted the entrails of a single human
|
|
victim minced up with the entrails of other victims is destined
|
|
to become a wolf. Did you never hear it?
|
|
|
|
Oh, yes.
|
|
|
|
And the protector of the people is like him; having a mob entirely at
|
|
his disposal, he is not restrained from shedding the blood of kinsmen;
|
|
by the favourite method of false accusation he brings them into
|
|
court and murders them, making the life of man to disappear,
|
|
and with unholy tongue and lips tasting the blood of his fellow citizen;
|
|
some he kills and others he banishes, at the same time hinting
|
|
at the abolition of debts and partition of lands: and after this,
|
|
what will be his destiny? Must he not either perish at the hands
|
|
of his enemies, or from being a man become a wolf--that is,
|
|
a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
This, I said, is he who begins to make a party against the rich?
|
|
|
|
The same.
|
|
|
|
After a while he is driven out, but comes back, in spite of his enemies,
|
|
a tyrant full grown.
|
|
|
|
That is clear.
|
|
|
|
And if they are unable to expel him, or to get him condemned
|
|
to death by a public accusation, they conspire to assassinate him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is their usual way.
|
|
|
|
Then comes the famous request for a bodyguard, which is the device
|
|
of all those who have got thus far in their tyrannical career--`Let
|
|
not the people's friend,' as they say, `be lost to them.'
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
The people readily assent; all their fears are for him--
|
|
they have none for themselves.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And when a man who is wealthy and is also accused of being an enemy
|
|
of the people sees this, then, my friend, as the oracle said to Croesus,
|
|
|
|
By pebbly Hermus' shore he flees and rests not and is not
|
|
ashamed to be a coward.
|
|
|
|
And quite right too, said he, for if he were, he would never be
|
|
ashamed again.
|
|
|
|
But if he is caught he dies.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And he, the protector of whom we spoke, is to be seen, not `larding
|
|
the plain' with his bulk, but himself the overthrower of many,
|
|
standing up in the chariot of State with the reins in his hand,
|
|
no longer protector, but tyrant absolute.
|
|
|
|
No doubt, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now let us consider the happiness of the man, and also
|
|
of the State in which a creature like him is generated.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, let us consider that.
|
|
|
|
At first, in the early days of his power, he is full of smiles,
|
|
and he salutes every one whom he meets;--he to be called a tyrant,
|
|
who is making promises in public and also in private! liberating debtors,
|
|
and distributing land to the people and his followers, and wanting
|
|
to be so kind and good to every one!
|
|
|
|
Of course, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when he has disposed of foreign enemies by conquest or treaty,
|
|
and there is nothing to fear from them, then he is always stirring up
|
|
some war or other, in order that the people may require a leader.
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Has he not also another object, which is that they may be impoverished
|
|
by payment of taxes, and thus compelled to devote themselves to their
|
|
daily wants and therefore less likely to conspire against him? Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And if any of them are suspected by him of having notions of freedom,
|
|
and of resistance to his authority, he will have a good pretext
|
|
for destroying them by placing them at the mercy of the enemy;
|
|
and for all these reasons the tyrant must be always getting up
|
|
a war.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
Now he begins to grow unpopular.
|
|
|
|
A necessary result.
|
|
|
|
Then some of those who joined in setting him up, and who are in power,
|
|
speak their minds to him and to one another, and the more courageous
|
|
of them cast in his teeth what is being done.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that may be expected.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrant, if he means to rule, must get rid of them; he cannot
|
|
stop while he has a friend or an enemy who is good for anything.
|
|
|
|
He cannot.
|
|
|
|
And therefore he must look about him and see who is valiant,
|
|
who is high-minded, who is wise, who is wealthy; happy man,
|
|
he is the enemy of them all, and must seek occasion against them
|
|
whether he will or no, until he has made a purgation of the State.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and a rare purgation.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, not the sort of purgation which the physicians make
|
|
of the body; for they take away the worse and leave the better part,
|
|
but he does the reverse.
|
|
|
|
If he is to rule, I suppose that he cannot help himself.
|
|
|
|
What a blessed alternative, I said:--to be compelled to dwell only
|
|
with the many bad, and to be by them hated, or not to live at all!
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the alternative.
|
|
|
|
And the more detestable his actions are to the citizens the more
|
|
satellites and the greater devotion in them will he require?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And who are the devoted band, and where will he procure them?
|
|
|
|
They will flock to him, he said, of their own accord, if lie pays them.
|
|
|
|
By the dog! I said, here are more drones, of every sort and from
|
|
every land.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are.
|
|
|
|
But will he not desire to get them on the spot?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
He will rob the citizens of their slaves; he will then set them
|
|
free and enrol them in his bodyguard.
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said; and he will be able to trust them best of all.
|
|
|
|
What a blessed creature, I said, must this tyrant be; he has put
|
|
to death the others and has these for his trusted friends.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; they are quite of his sort.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, and these are the new citizens whom he has
|
|
called into existence, who admire him and are his companions,
|
|
while the good hate and avoid him.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
Verily, then, tragedy is a wise thing and Euripides a great tragedian.
|
|
|
|
Why so?
|
|
|
|
Why, because he is the author of the pregnant saying,
|
|
|
|
Tyrants are wise by living with the wise;
|
|
|
|
and he clearly meant to say that they are the wise whom the tyrant
|
|
makes his companions.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he also praises tyranny as godlike; and many other
|
|
things of the same kind are said by him and by the other poets.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, I said, the tragic poets being wise men will forgive
|
|
us and any others who live after our manner if we do not receive
|
|
them into our State, because they are the eulogists of tyranny.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, those who have the wit will doubtless forgive us.
|
|
|
|
But they will continue to go to other cities and attract mobs,
|
|
and hire voices fair and loud and persuasive, and draw the cities
|
|
over to tyrannies and democracies.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, they are paid for this and receive honour--the greatest honour,
|
|
as might be expected, from tyrants, and the next greatest
|
|
from democracies; but the higher they ascend our constitution hill,
|
|
the more their reputation fails, and seems unable from shortness
|
|
of breath to proceed further.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But we are wandering from the subject: Let us therefore return
|
|
and enquire how the tyrant will maintain that fair and numerous
|
|
and various and ever-changing army of his.
|
|
|
|
If, he said, there are sacred treasures in the city, he will
|
|
confiscate and spend them; and in so far as the fortunes
|
|
of attainted persons may suffice, he will be able to diminish
|
|
the taxes which he would otherwise have to impose upon the people.
|
|
|
|
And when these fail?
|
|
|
|
Why, clearly, he said, then he and his boon companions, whether male
|
|
or female, will be maintained out of his father's estate.
|
|
|
|
You mean to say that the people, from whom he has derived his being,
|
|
will maintain him and his companions?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; they cannot help themselves.
|
|
|
|
But what if the people fly into a passion, and aver that a grown-up
|
|
son ought not to be supported by his father, but that the father
|
|
should be supported by the son? The father did not bring him
|
|
into being, or settle him in life, in order that when his son
|
|
became a man he should himself be the servant of his own servants
|
|
and should support him and his rabble of slaves and companions;
|
|
but that his son should protect him, and that by his help he might
|
|
be emancipated from the government of the rich and aristocratic,
|
|
as they are termed. And so he bids him and his companions depart,
|
|
just as any other father might drive out of the house a riotous son
|
|
and his undesirable associates.
|
|
|
|
By heaven, he said, then the parent will discover what a monster he
|
|
has been fostering in his bosom; and, when he wants to drive him out,
|
|
he will find that he is weak and his son strong.
|
|
|
|
Why, you do not mean to say that the tyrant will use violence?
|
|
What! beat his father if he opposes him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he will, having first disarmed him.
|
|
|
|
Then he is a parricide, and a cruel guardian of an aged parent;
|
|
and this is real tyranny, about which there can be no longer a mistake:
|
|
as the saying is, the people who would escape the smoke which is
|
|
the slavery of freemen, has fallen into the fire which is the tyranny
|
|
of slaves. Thus liberty, getting out of all order and reason,
|
|
passes into the harshest and bitterest form of slavery.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
Very well; and may we not rightly say that we have sufficiently
|
|
discussed the nature of tyranny, and the manner of the transition
|
|
from democracy to tyranny?
|
|
|
|
Yes, quite enough, he said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK IX
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - ADEIMANTUS
|
|
|
|
LAST of all comes the tyrannical man; about whom we have once more to ask,
|
|
how is he formed out of the democratical? and how does he live,
|
|
in happiness or in misery?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, he is the only one remaining.
|
|
|
|
There is, however, I said, a previous question which remains unanswered.
|
|
|
|
What question?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that we have adequately determined the nature
|
|
and number of the appetites, and until this is accomplished
|
|
the enquiry will always be confused.
|
|
|
|
Well, he said, it is not too late to supply the omission.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said; and observe the point which I want to understand:
|
|
Certain of the unnecessary pleasures and appetites I conceive
|
|
to be unlawful; every one appears to have them, but in some persons
|
|
they are controlled by the laws and by reason, and the better
|
|
desires prevail over them-either they are wholly banished or they
|
|
become few and weak; while in the case of others they are stronger,
|
|
and there are more of them.
|
|
|
|
Which appetites do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean those which are awake when the reasoning and human and ruling
|
|
power is asleep; then the wild beast within us, gorged with meat
|
|
or drink, starts up and having shaken off sleep, goes forth to
|
|
satisfy his desires; and there is no conceivable folly or crime--
|
|
not excepting incest or any other unnatural union, or parricide,
|
|
or the eating of forbidden food--which at such a time, when he has
|
|
parted company with all shame and sense, a man may not be ready
|
|
to commit.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
But when a man's pulse is healthy and temperate, and when before
|
|
going to sleep he has awakened his rational powers, and fed them
|
|
on noble thoughts and enquiries, collecting himself in meditation;
|
|
after having first indulged his appetites neither too much nor
|
|
too little, but just enough to lay them to sleep, and prevent
|
|
them and their enjoyments and pains from interfering with the
|
|
higher principle--which he leaves in the solitude of pure abstraction,
|
|
free to contemplate and aspire to the knowledge of the unknown,
|
|
whether in past, present, or future: when again he has allayed
|
|
the passionate element, if he has a quarrel against any one--
|
|
I say, when, after pacifying the two irrational principles, he rouses up
|
|
the third, which is reason, before he takes his rest, then, as you know,
|
|
he attains truth most nearly, and is least likely to be the sport
|
|
of fantastic and lawless visions.
|
|
|
|
I quite agree.
|
|
|
|
In saying this I have been running into a digression; but the point
|
|
which I desire to note is that in all of us, even in good men,
|
|
there is a lawless wild-beast nature, which peers out in sleep.
|
|
Pray, consider whether I am right, and you agree with me.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I agree.
|
|
|
|
And now remember the character which we attributed to the democratic man.
|
|
He was supposed from his youth upwards to have been trained under
|
|
a miserly parent, who encouraged the saving appetites in him,
|
|
but discountenanced the unnecessary, which aim only at amusement
|
|
and ornament?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And then he got into the company of a more refined, licentious sort
|
|
of people, and taking to all their wanton ways rushed into the opposite
|
|
extreme from an abhorrence of his father's meanness. At last,
|
|
being a better man than his corruptors, he was drawn in both directions
|
|
until he halted midway and led a life, not of vulgar and slavish passion,
|
|
but of what he deemed moderate indulgence in various pleasures.
|
|
After this manner the democrat was generated out of the oligarch?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; that was our view of him, and is so still.
|
|
|
|
And now, I said, years will have passed away, and you must conceive
|
|
this man, such as he is, to have a son, who is brought up in his
|
|
father's principles.
|
|
|
|
I can imagine him.
|
|
|
|
Then you must further imagine the same thing to happen to the son
|
|
which has already happened to the father:--he is drawn into a perfectly
|
|
lawless life, which by his seducers is termed perfect liberty;
|
|
and his father and friends take part with his moderate desires,
|
|
and the opposite party assist the opposite ones. As soon as these dire
|
|
magicians and tyrant-makers find that they are losing their hold on him,
|
|
they contrive to implant in him a master passion, to be lord over
|
|
his idle and spendthrift lusts--a sort of monstrous winged drone--
|
|
that is the only image which will adequately describe him.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the only adequate image of him.
|
|
|
|
And when his other lusts, amid clouds of incense and perfumes
|
|
and garlands and wines, and all the pleasures of a dissolute life,
|
|
now let loose, come buzzing around him, nourishing to the utmost
|
|
the sting of desire which they implant in his drone-like nature,
|
|
then at last this lord of the soul, having Madness for the captain
|
|
of his guard, breaks out into a frenzy: and if he finds in himself
|
|
any good opinions or appetites in process of formation, and there
|
|
is in him any sense of shame remaining, to these better principles he
|
|
puts an end, and casts them forth until he has purged away temperance
|
|
and brought in madness to the full.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the way in which the tyrannical man is generated.
|
|
|
|
And is not this the reason why of old love has been called a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
I should not wonder.
|
|
|
|
Further, I said, has not a drunken man also the spirit of a tyrant?
|
|
|
|
He has.
|
|
|
|
And you know that a man who is deranged and not right in his mind,
|
|
will fancy that he is able to rule, not only over men, but also over
|
|
the gods?
|
|
|
|
That he will.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrannical man in the true sense of the word comes
|
|
into being when, either under the influence of nature, or habit,
|
|
or both, he becomes drunken, lustful, passionate? O my friend,
|
|
is not that so?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Such is the man and such is his origin. And next, how does he live?
|
|
|
|
Suppose, as people facetiously say, you were to tell me.
|
|
|
|
I imagine, I said, at the next step in his progress, that there
|
|
will be feasts and carousals and revellings and courtezans,
|
|
and all that sort of thing; Love is the lord of the house within him,
|
|
and orders all the concerns of his soul.
|
|
|
|
That is certain.
|
|
|
|
Yes; and every day and every night desires grow up many and formidable,
|
|
and their demands are many.
|
|
|
|
They are indeed, he said.
|
|
|
|
His revenues, if he has any, are soon spent.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then comes debt and the cutting down of his property.
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
When he has nothing left, must not his desires, crowding in the nest
|
|
like young ravens, be crying aloud for food; and he, goaded on by them,
|
|
and especially by love himself, who is in a manner the captain
|
|
of them, is in a frenzy, and would fain discover whom he can defraud
|
|
or despoil of his property, in order that he may gratify them?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is sure to be the case.
|
|
|
|
He must have money, no matter how, if he is to escape horrid pains
|
|
and pangs.
|
|
|
|
He must.
|
|
|
|
And as in himself there was a succession of pleasures, and the new
|
|
got the better of the old and took away their rights, so he being
|
|
younger will claim to have more than his father and his mother,
|
|
and if he has spent his own share of the property, he will take
|
|
a slice of theirs.
|
|
|
|
No doubt he will.
|
|
|
|
And if his parents will not give way, then he will try first
|
|
of all to cheat and deceive them.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And if he fails, then he will use force and plunder them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, probably.
|
|
|
|
And if the old man and woman fight for their own, what then, my friend?
|
|
Will the creature feel any compunction at tyrannizing over them?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, I should not feel at all comfortable about his parents.
|
|
|
|
But, O heavens! Adeimantus, on account of some newfangled love
|
|
of a harlot, who is anything but a necessary connection, can you
|
|
believe that he would strike the mother who is his ancient friend
|
|
and necessary to his very existence, and would place her under
|
|
the authority of the other, when she is brought under the same roof
|
|
with her; or that, under like circumstances, he would do the same
|
|
to his withered old father, first and most indispensable of friends,
|
|
for the sake of some newly found blooming youth who is the reverse
|
|
of indispensable?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said; I believe that he would.
|
|
|
|
Truly, then, I said, a tyrannical son is a blessing to his father
|
|
and mother.
|
|
|
|
He is indeed, he replied.
|
|
|
|
He first takes their property, and when that falls, and pleasures
|
|
are beginning to swarm in the hive of his soul, then he breaks
|
|
into a house, or steals the garments of some nightly wayfarer;
|
|
next he proceeds to clear a temple. Meanwhile the old opinions
|
|
which he had when a child, and which gave judgment about good and evil,
|
|
are overthrown by those others which have just been emancipated,
|
|
and are now the bodyguard of love and share his empire.
|
|
These in his democratic days, when he was still subject to the laws
|
|
and to his father, were only let loose in the dreams of sleep.
|
|
But now that he is under the dominion of love, he becomes always
|
|
and in waking reality what he was then very rarely and in a dream only;
|
|
he will commit the foulest murder, or eat forbidden food, or be
|
|
guilty of any other horrid act. Love is his tyrant, and lives
|
|
lordly in him and lawlessly, and being himself a king, leads him on,
|
|
as a tyrant leads a State, to the performance of any reckless deed
|
|
by which he can maintain himself and the rabble of his associates,
|
|
whether those whom evil communications have brought in from without,
|
|
or those whom he himself has allowed to break loose within him by reason
|
|
of a similar evil nature in himself. Have we not here a picture of his way
|
|
of life?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, he said.
|
|
|
|
And if there are only a few of them in the State, the rest of the people
|
|
are well disposed, they go away and become the bodyguard or mercenary
|
|
soldiers of some other tyrant who may probably want them for a war;
|
|
and if there is no war, they stay at home and do many little pieces
|
|
of mischief in the city.
|
|
|
|
What sort of mischief?
|
|
|
|
For example, they are the thieves, burglars, cutpurses, footpads,
|
|
robbers of temples, man-stealers of the community; or if they
|
|
are able to speak they turn informers, and bear false witness,
|
|
and take bribes.
|
|
|
|
A small catalogue of evils, even if the perpetrators of them
|
|
are few in number.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; but small and great are comparative terms,
|
|
and all these things, in the misery and evil which they inflict
|
|
upon a State, do not come within a thousand miles of the tyrant;
|
|
when this noxious class and their followers grow numerous and become
|
|
conscious of their strength, assisted by the infatuation of the people,
|
|
they choose from among themselves the one who has most of the tyrant
|
|
in his own soul, and him they create their tyrant.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and he will be the most fit to be a tyrant.
|
|
|
|
If the people yield, well and good; but if they resist him,
|
|
as he began by beating his own father and mother, so now, if he has
|
|
the power, he beats them, and will keep his dear old fatherland
|
|
or motherland, as the Cretans say, in subjection to his young
|
|
retainers whom he has introduced to be their rulers and masters.
|
|
This is the end of his passions and desires.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
When such men are only private individuals and before they get power,
|
|
this is their character; they associate entirely with their own
|
|
flatterers or ready tools; or if they want anything from anybody,
|
|
they in their turn are equally ready to bow down before them:
|
|
they profess every sort of affection for them; but when they have gained
|
|
their point they know them no more.
|
|
|
|
Yes, truly.
|
|
|
|
They are always either the masters or servants and never the friends
|
|
of anybody; the tyrant never tastes of true freedom or friendship.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And may we not rightly call such men treacherous?
|
|
|
|
No question.
|
|
|
|
Also they are utterly unjust, if we were right in our notion
|
|
of justice?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, and we were perfectly right.
|
|
|
|
Let us then sum up in a word, I said, the character of the worst man:
|
|
he is the waking reality of what we dreamed.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And this is he who being by nature most of a tyrant bears rule,
|
|
and the longer he lives the more of a tyrant he becomes.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
That is certain, said Glaucon, taking his turn to answer.
|
|
|
|
And will not he who has been shown to be the wickedest, be also
|
|
the most miserable? and he who has tyrannized longest and most,
|
|
most continually and truly miserable; although this may not be
|
|
the opinion of men in general?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And must not the tyrannical man be like the tyrannical, State, and the
|
|
democratical man like the democratical State; and the same of the others?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And as State is to State in virtue and happiness, so is man
|
|
in relation to man?
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
Then comparing our original city, which was under a king,
|
|
and the city which is under a tyrant, how do they stand as to virtue?
|
|
|
|
They are the opposite extremes, he said, for one is the very best
|
|
and the other is the very worst.
|
|
|
|
There can be no mistake, I said, as to which is which, and therefore
|
|
I will at once enquire whether you would arrive at a similar decision
|
|
about their relative happiness and misery. And here we must not allow
|
|
ourselves to be panic-stricken at the apparition of the tyrant,
|
|
who is only a unit and may perhaps have a few retainers about him;
|
|
but let us go as we ought into every corner of the city and look
|
|
all about, and then we will give our opinion.
|
|
|
|
A fair invitation, he replied; and I see, as every one must,
|
|
that a tyranny is the wretchedest form of government, and the rule
|
|
of a king the happiest.
|
|
|
|
And in estimating the men too, may I not fairly make a like request,
|
|
that I should have a judge whose mind can enter into and see through
|
|
human nature? He must not be like a child who looks at the outside
|
|
and is dazzled at the pompous aspect which the tyrannical nature
|
|
assumes to the beholder, but let him be one who has a clear insight.
|
|
May I suppose that the judgment is given in the hearing of us all
|
|
by one who is able to judge, and has dwelt in the same place with him,
|
|
and been present at his dally life and known him in his family relations,
|
|
where he may be seen stripped of his tragedy attire, and again
|
|
in the hour of public danger--he shall tell us about the happiness
|
|
and misery of the tyrant when compared with other men?
|
|
|
|
That again, he said, is a very fair proposal.
|
|
|
|
Shall I assume that we ourselves are able and experienced judges
|
|
and have before now met with such a person? We shall then have
|
|
some one who will answer our enquiries.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
Let me ask you not to forget the parallel of the individual and the State;
|
|
bearing this in mind, and glancing in turn from one to the other
|
|
of them, will you tell me their respective conditions?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he asked.
|
|
|
|
Beginning with the State, I replied, would you say that a city
|
|
which is governed by a tyrant is free or enslaved?
|
|
|
|
No city, he said, can be more completely enslaved.
|
|
|
|
And yet, as you see, there are freemen as well as masters in such
|
|
a State?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I see that there are--a few; but the people,
|
|
speaking generally, and the best of them, are miserably degraded
|
|
and enslaved.
|
|
|
|
Then if the man is like the State, I said, must not the same rule
|
|
prevail? his soul is full of meanness and vulgarity--the best
|
|
elements in him are enslaved; and there is a small ruling part,
|
|
which is also the worst and maddest.
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
And would you say that the soul of such an one is the soul of a freeman,
|
|
or of a slave?
|
|
|
|
He has the soul of a slave, in my opinion.
|
|
|
|
And the State which is enslaved under a tyrant is utterly incapable
|
|
of acting voluntarily?
|
|
|
|
Utterly incapable.
|
|
|
|
And also the soul which is under a tyrant (I am speaking of the soul
|
|
taken as a whole) is least capable of doing what she desires;
|
|
there is a gadfly which goads her, and she is full of trouble
|
|
and remorse?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is the city which is under a tyrant rich or poor?
|
|
|
|
Poor.
|
|
|
|
And the tyrannical soul must be always poor and insatiable?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And must not such a State and such a man be always full of fear?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed.
|
|
|
|
Is there any State in which you will find more of lamentation
|
|
and sorrow and groaning and pain?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And is there any man in whom you will find more of this sort of misery
|
|
than in the tyrannical man, who is in a fury of passions and desires?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
Reflecting upon these and similar evils, you held the tyrannical
|
|
State to be the most miserable of States?
|
|
|
|
And I was right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, I said. And when you see the same evils in the tyrannical man,
|
|
what do you say of him?
|
|
|
|
I say that he is by far the most miserable of all men.
|
|
|
|
There, I said, I think that you are beginning to go wrong.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I do not think that he has as yet reached the utmost extreme of misery.
|
|
|
|
Then who is more miserable?
|
|
|
|
One of whom I am about to speak.
|
|
|
|
Who is that?
|
|
|
|
He who is of a tyrannical nature, and instead of leading a private life
|
|
has been cursed with the further misfortune of being a public tyrant.
|
|
|
|
From what has been said, I gather that you are right.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, but in this high argument you should be a little
|
|
more certain, and should not conjecture only; for of all questions,
|
|
this respecting good and evil is the greatest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let me then offer you an illustration, which may, I think,
|
|
throw a light upon this subject.
|
|
|
|
What is your illustration?
|
|
|
|
The case of rich individuals in cities who possess many slaves:
|
|
from them you may form an idea of the tyrant's condition,
|
|
for they both have slaves; the only difference is that he has
|
|
more slaves.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that is the difference.
|
|
|
|
You know that they live securely and have nothing to apprehend
|
|
from their servants?
|
|
|
|
What should they fear?
|
|
|
|
Nothing. But do you observe the reason of this?
|
|
|
|
Yes; the reason is, that the whole city is leagued together
|
|
for the protection of each individual.
|
|
|
|
Very true, I said. But imagine one of these owners, the master
|
|
say of some fifty slaves, together with his family and property
|
|
and slaves, carried off by a god into the wilderness, where there
|
|
are no freemen to help him--will he not be in an agony of fear lest
|
|
he and his wife and children should be put to death by his slaves?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, he will be in the utmost fear.
|
|
|
|
The time has arrived when he will be compelled to flatter divers of
|
|
his slaves, and make many promises to them of freedom and other things,
|
|
much against his will--he will have to cajole his own servants.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that will be the only way of saving himself.
|
|
|
|
And suppose the same god, who carried him away, to surround him with
|
|
neighbours who will not suffer one man to be the master of another,
|
|
and who, if they could catch the offender, would take his life?
|
|
|
|
His case will be still worse, if you suppose him to be everywhere
|
|
surrounded and watched by enemies.
|
|
|
|
And is not this the sort of prison in which the tyrant will be bound--
|
|
he who being by nature such as we have described, is full of all sorts
|
|
of fears and lusts? His soul is dainty and greedy, and yet alone,
|
|
of all men in the city, he is never allowed to go on a journey,
|
|
or to see the things which other freemen desire to see, but he
|
|
lives in his hole like a woman hidden in the house, and is jealous
|
|
of any other citizen who goes into foreign parts and sees anything
|
|
of interest.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And amid evils such as these will not he who is ill-governed
|
|
in his own person--the tyrannical man, I mean--whom you
|
|
just now decided to be the most miserable of all--will not he
|
|
be yet more miserable when, instead of leading a private life,
|
|
he is constrained by fortune to be a public tyrant?
|
|
He has to be master of others when he is not master of himself:
|
|
he is like a diseased or paralytic man who is compelled to pass
|
|
his life, not in retirement, but fighting and combating with other men.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the similitude is most exact.
|
|
|
|
Is not his case utterly miserable? and does not the actual tyrant
|
|
lead a worse life than he whose life you determined to be the worst?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
He who is the real tyrant, whatever men may think, is the real slave,
|
|
and is obliged to practise the greatest adulation and servility,
|
|
and to be the flatterer of the vilest of mankind. He has desires
|
|
which he is utterly unable to satisfy, and has more wants than any one,
|
|
and is truly poor, if you know how to inspect the whole soul of him:
|
|
all his life long he is beset with fear and is full of convulsions,
|
|
and distractions, even as the State which he resembles:
|
|
and surely the resemblance holds?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Moreover, as we were saying before, he grows worse from having power:
|
|
he becomes and is of necessity more jealous, more faithless,
|
|
more unjust, more friendless, more impious, than he was at first;
|
|
he is the purveyor and cherisher of every sort of vice, and the consequence
|
|
is that he is supremely miserable, and that he makes everybody else
|
|
as miserable as himself.
|
|
|
|
No man of any sense will dispute your words.
|
|
|
|
Come then, I said, and as the general umpire in theatrical
|
|
contests proclaims the result, do you also decide who in your
|
|
opinion is first in the scale of happiness, and who second,
|
|
and in what order the others follow: there are five of them in all--
|
|
they are the royal, timocratical, oligarchical, democratical, tyrannical.
|
|
|
|
The decision will be easily given, he replied; they shall be choruses
|
|
coming on the stage, and I must judge them in the order in which
|
|
they enter, by the criterion of virtue and vice, happiness and misery.
|
|
|
|
Need we hire a herald, or shall I announce, that the son of Ariston
|
|
(the best) has decided that the best and justest is also the happiest,
|
|
and that this is he who is the most royal man and king over himself;
|
|
and that the worst and most unjust man is also the most miserable,
|
|
and that this is he who being the greatest tyrant of himself is also the
|
|
greatest tyrant of his State?
|
|
|
|
Make the proclamation yourself, he said.
|
|
|
|
And shall I add, `whether seen or unseen by gods and men'?
|
|
|
|
Let the words be added.
|
|
|
|
Then this, I said, will be our first proof; and there is another,
|
|
which may also have some weight.
|
|
|
|
What is that?
|
|
|
|
The second proof is derived from the nature of the soul:
|
|
seeing that the individual soul, like the State, has been
|
|
divided by us into three principles, the division may, I think,
|
|
furnish a new demonstration.
|
|
|
|
Of what nature?
|
|
|
|
It seems to me that to these three principles three pleasures correspond;
|
|
also three desires and governing powers.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
There is one principle with which, as we were saying, a man learns,
|
|
another with which he is angry; the third, having many forms,
|
|
has no special name, but is denoted by the general term appetitive,
|
|
from the extraordinary strength and vehemence of the desires of eating
|
|
and drinking and the other sensual appetites which are the main
|
|
elements of it; also money-loving, because such desires are generally
|
|
satisfied by the help of money.
|
|
|
|
That is true, he said.
|
|
|
|
If we were to say that the loves and pleasures of this third part
|
|
were concerned with gain, we should then be able to fall back
|
|
on a single notion; and might truly and intelligibly describe
|
|
this part of the soul as loving gain or money.
|
|
|
|
I agree with you.
|
|
|
|
Again, is not the passionate element wholly set on ruling
|
|
and conquering and getting fame?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Suppose we call it the contentious or ambitious--would the term
|
|
be suitable?
|
|
|
|
Extremely suitable.
|
|
|
|
On the other hand, every one sees that the principle of knowledge
|
|
is wholly directed to the truth, and cares less than either
|
|
of the others for gain or fame.
|
|
|
|
Far less.
|
|
|
|
`Lover of wisdom,' `lover of knowledge,' are titles which we
|
|
may fitly apply to that part of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
One principle prevails in the souls of one class of men,
|
|
another in others, as may happen?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then we may begin by assuming that there are three classes of men--
|
|
lovers of wisdom, lovers of honour, lovers of gain?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
And there are three kinds of pleasure, which are their several objects?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Now, if you examine the three classes of men, and ask of them
|
|
in turn which of their lives is pleasantest, each will be found
|
|
praising his own and depreciating that of others: the money-maker
|
|
will contrast the vanity of honour or of learning if they bring
|
|
no money with the solid advantages of gold and silver?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the lover of honour--what will be his opinion? Will he not think
|
|
that the pleasure of riches is vulgar, while the pleasure of learning,
|
|
if it brings no distinction, is all smoke and nonsense to him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And are we to suppose, I said, that the philosopher sets any value on
|
|
other pleasures in comparison with the pleasure of knowing the truth,
|
|
and in that pursuit abiding, ever learning, not so far indeed from the heaven
|
|
of pleasure? Does he not call the other pleasures necessary, under the
|
|
idea that if there were no necessity for them, he would rather not have them?
|
|
|
|
There can be no doubt of that, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Since, then, the pleasures of each class and the life of each are
|
|
in dispute, and the question is not which life is more or less honourable,
|
|
or better or worse, but which is the more pleasant or painless--
|
|
how shall we know who speaks truly?
|
|
|
|
I cannot myself tell, he said.
|
|
|
|
Well, but what ought to be the criterion? Is any better than
|
|
experience and wisdom and reason?
|
|
|
|
There cannot be a better, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, reflect. Of the three individuals, which has
|
|
the greatest experience of all the pleasures which we enumerated?
|
|
Has the lover of gain, in learning the nature of essential truth,
|
|
greater experience of the pleasure of knowledge than the philosopher has
|
|
of the pleasure of gain?
|
|
|
|
The philosopher, he replied, has greatly the advantage; for he has
|
|
of necessity always known the taste of the other pleasures from his
|
|
childhood upwards: but the lover of gain in all his experience has
|
|
not of necessity tasted--or, I should rather say, even had he desired,
|
|
could hardly have tasted--the sweetness of learning and knowing truth.
|
|
|
|
Then the lover of wisdom has a great advantage over the lover of gain,
|
|
for he has a double experience?
|
|
|
|
Yes, very great.
|
|
|
|
Again, has he greater experience of the pleasures of honour,
|
|
or the lover of honour of the pleasures of wisdom?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, all three are honoured in proportion as they attain
|
|
their object; for the rich man and the brave man and the wise
|
|
man alike have their crowd of admirers, and as they all receive
|
|
honour they all have experience of the pleasures of honour;
|
|
but the delight which is to be found in the knowledge of true being
|
|
is known to the philosopher only.
|
|
|
|
His experience, then, will enable him to judge better than any one?
|
|
|
|
Far better.
|
|
|
|
And he is the only one who has wisdom as well as experience?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Further, the very faculty which is the instrument of judgment is not
|
|
possessed by the covetous or ambitious man, but only by the philosopher?
|
|
|
|
What faculty?
|
|
|
|
Reason, with whom, as we were saying, the decision ought to rest.
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And reasoning is peculiarly his instrument?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
If wealth and gain were the criterion, then the praise or blame
|
|
of the lover of gain would surely be the most trustworthy?
|
|
|
|
Assuredly.
|
|
|
|
Or if honour or victory or courage, in that case the judgement
|
|
of the ambitious or pugnacious would be the truest?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
But since experience and wisdom and reason are the judges--
|
|
|
|
The only inference possible, he replied, is that pleasures which
|
|
are approved by the lover of wisdom and reason are the truest.
|
|
|
|
And so we arrive at the result, that the pleasure of the intelligent
|
|
part of the soul is the pleasantest of the three, and that he of us
|
|
in whom this is the ruling principle has the pleasantest life.
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably, he said, the wise man speaks with authority when he
|
|
approves of his own life.
|
|
|
|
And what does the judge affirm to be the life which is next,
|
|
and the pleasure which is next?
|
|
|
|
Clearly that of the soldier and lover of honour; who is nearer
|
|
to himself than the money-maker.
|
|
|
|
Last comes the lover of gain?
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Twice in succession, then, has the just man overthrown the unjust
|
|
in this conflict; and now comes the third trial, which is
|
|
dedicated to Olympian Zeus the saviour: a sage whispers in my ear
|
|
that no pleasure except that of the wise is quite true and pure--
|
|
all others are a shadow only; and surely this will prove the greatest
|
|
and most decisive of falls?
|
|
|
|
Yes, the greatest; but will you explain yourself?
|
|
|
|
I will work out the subject and you shall answer my questions.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Say, then, is not pleasure opposed to pain?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And there is a neutral state which is neither pleasure nor pain?
|
|
|
|
There is.
|
|
|
|
A state which is intermediate, and a sort of repose of the soul
|
|
about either--that is what you mean?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
You remember what people say when they are sick?
|
|
|
|
What do they say?
|
|
|
|
That after all nothing is pleasanter than health. But then they
|
|
never knew this to be the greatest of pleasures until they were ill.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I know, he said.
|
|
|
|
And when persons are suffering from acute pain, you must.
|
|
have heard them say that there is nothing pleasanter than to get rid
|
|
of their pain?
|
|
|
|
I have.
|
|
|
|
And there are many other cases of suffering in which the mere rest
|
|
and cessation of pain, and not any positive enjoyment, is extolled
|
|
by them as the greatest pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; at the time they are pleased and well content to be
|
|
at rest.
|
|
|
|
Again, when pleasure ceases, that sort of rest or cessation will
|
|
be painful?
|
|
|
|
Doubtless, he said.
|
|
|
|
Then the intermediate state of rest will be pleasure and will
|
|
also be pain?
|
|
|
|
So it would seem.
|
|
|
|
But can that which is neither become both?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
And both pleasure and pain are motions of the soul, are they not?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But that which is neither was just now shown to be rest and not motion,
|
|
and in a mean between them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
How, then, can we be right in supposing that the absence of pain
|
|
is pleasure, or that the absence of pleasure is pain?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
This then is an appearance only and not a reality; that is tc say,
|
|
the rest is pleasure at the moment and in comparison of what
|
|
is painful, and painful in comparison of what is pleasant;
|
|
but all these representations, when tried by the test of true pleasure,
|
|
are not real but a sort of imposition?
|
|
|
|
That is the inference.
|
|
|
|
Look at the other class of pleasures which have no antecedent pains
|
|
and you will no longer suppose, as you perhaps may at present,
|
|
that pleasure is only the cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
|
|
|
|
What are they, he said, and where shall I find them?
|
|
|
|
There are many of them: take as an example the pleasures, of smell,
|
|
which are very great and have no antecedent pains; they come in a moment,
|
|
and when they depart leave no pain behind them.
|
|
|
|
Most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Let us not, then, be induced to believe that pure pleasure
|
|
is the cessation of pain, or pain of pleasure.
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
Still, the more numerous and violent pleasures which reach the soul
|
|
through the body are generally of this sort--they are reliefs
|
|
of pain.
|
|
|
|
That is true.
|
|
|
|
And the anticipations of future pleasures and pains are of a like nature?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Shall I give you an illustration of them?
|
|
|
|
Let me hear.
|
|
|
|
You would allow, I said, that there is in nature an upper and lower
|
|
and middle region?
|
|
|
|
I should.
|
|
|
|
And if a person were to go from the lower to the middle region,
|
|
would he not imagine that he is going up; and he who is standing
|
|
in the middle and sees whence he has come, would imagine that he
|
|
is already in the upper region, if he has never seen the true
|
|
upper world?
|
|
|
|
To be sure, he said; how can he think otherwise?
|
|
|
|
But if he were taken back again he would imagine, and truly imagine,
|
|
that he was descending?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
All that would arise out of his ignorance of the true upper
|
|
and middle and lower regions?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then can you wonder that persons who are inexperienced in the truth,
|
|
as they have wrong ideas about many other things, should also have
|
|
wrong ideas about pleasure and pain and the intermediate state;
|
|
so that when they are only being drawn towards the painful they
|
|
feel pain and think the pain which they experience to be real,
|
|
and in like manner, when drawn away from pain to the neutral
|
|
or intermediate state, they firmly believe that they have reached
|
|
the goal of satiety and pleasure; they, not knowing pleasure,
|
|
err in contrasting pain with the absence of pain. which is like
|
|
contrasting black with grey instead of white--can you wonder, I say,
|
|
at this?
|
|
|
|
No, indeed; I should be much more disposed to wonder at the opposite.
|
|
|
|
Look at the matter thus:--Hunger, thirst, and the like, are inanitions
|
|
of the bodily state?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And ignorance and folly are inanitions of the soul?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And food and wisdom are the corresponding satisfactions of either?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And is the satisfaction derived from that which has less or from
|
|
that which has more existence the truer?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, from that which has more.
|
|
|
|
What classes of things have a greater share of pure existence in
|
|
your judgment--those of which food and drink and condiments and all
|
|
kinds of sustenance are examples, or the class which contains true
|
|
opinion and knowledge and mind and all the different kinds of virtue?
|
|
Put the question in this way:--Which has a more pure being--
|
|
that which is concerned with the invariable, the immortal,
|
|
and the true, and is of such a nature, and is found in such natures;
|
|
or that which is concerned with and found in the variable and mortal,
|
|
and is itself variable and mortal?
|
|
|
|
Far purer, he replied, is the being of that which is concerned
|
|
with the invariable.
|
|
|
|
And does the essence of the invariable partake of knowledge
|
|
in the same degree as of essence?
|
|
|
|
Yes, of knowledge in the same degree.
|
|
|
|
And of truth in the same degree?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And, conversely, that which has less of truth will also have less
|
|
of essence?
|
|
|
|
Necessarily.
|
|
|
|
Then, in general, those kinds of things which are in the service
|
|
of the body have less of truth and essence than those which are
|
|
in the service of the soul?
|
|
|
|
Far less.
|
|
|
|
And has not the body itself less of truth and essence than the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
What is filled with more real existence, and actually has a more
|
|
real existence, is more really filled than that which is filled
|
|
with less real existence and is less real?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
And if there be a pleasure in being filled with that which is
|
|
according to nature, that which is more really filled with more
|
|
real being will more really and truly enjoy true pleasure;
|
|
whereas that which participates in less real being will be less
|
|
truly and surely satisfied, and will participate in an illusory
|
|
and less real pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Unquestionably.
|
|
|
|
Those then who know not wisdom and virtue, and are always busy with
|
|
gluttony and sensuality, go down and up again as far as the mean;
|
|
and in this region they move at random throughout life, but they
|
|
never pass into the true upper world; thither they neither look,
|
|
nor do they ever find their way, neither are they truly filled
|
|
with true being, nor do they taste of pure and abiding pleasure.
|
|
Like cattle, with their eyes always looking down and their heads
|
|
stooping to the earth, that is, to the dining-table, they fatten
|
|
and feed and breed, and, in their excessive love of these delights,
|
|
they kick and butt at one another with horns and hoofs which are made
|
|
of iron; and they kill one another by reason of their insatiable lust.
|
|
For they fill themselves with that which is not substantial,
|
|
and the part of themselves which they fill is also unsubstantial
|
|
and incontinent.
|
|
|
|
Verily, Socrates, said Glaucon, you describe the life of the many
|
|
like an oracle.
|
|
|
|
Their pleasures are mixed with pains--how can they be otherwise?
|
|
For they are mere shadows and pictures of the true, and are coloured
|
|
by contrast, which exaggerates both light and shade, and so they
|
|
implant in the minds of fools insane desires of themselves; and they
|
|
are fought about as Stesichorus says that the Greeks fought about
|
|
the shadow of Helen at Troy in ignorance of the truth.
|
|
|
|
Something of that sort must inevitably happen.
|
|
|
|
And must not the like happen with the spirited or passionate
|
|
element of the soul? Will not the passionate man who carries his
|
|
passion into action, be in the like case, whether he is envious
|
|
and ambitious, or violent and contentious, or angry and discontented,
|
|
if he be seeking to attain honour and victory and the satisfaction
|
|
of his anger without reason or sense?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the same will happen with the spirited element also.
|
|
|
|
Then may we not confidently assert that the lovers of money and honour,
|
|
when they seek their pleasures under the guidance and in the company
|
|
of reason and knowledge, and pursue after and win the pleasures which
|
|
wisdom shows them, will also have the truest pleasures in the highest
|
|
degree which is attainable to them, inasmuch as they follow truth;
|
|
and they will have the pleasures which are natural to them,
|
|
if that which is best for each one is also most natural to him?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly; the best is the most natural.
|
|
|
|
And when the whole soul follows the philosophical principle,
|
|
and there is no division, the several parts are just, and do each
|
|
of them their own business, and enjoy severally the best and truest
|
|
pleasures of which they are capable?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But when either of the two other principles prevails, it fails
|
|
in attaining its own pleasure, and compels the rest to pursue
|
|
after a pleasure which is a shadow only and which is not their own?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the greater the interval which separates them from philosophy
|
|
and reason, the more strange and illusive will be the pleasure?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And is not that farthest from reason which is at the greatest
|
|
distance from law and order?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the lustful and tyrannical desires are, as we saw,
|
|
at the greatest distance? Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the royal and orderly desires are nearest?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then the tyrant will live at the greatest distance from true
|
|
or natural pleasure, and the king at the least?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But if so, the tyrant will live most unpleasantly, and the king
|
|
most pleasantly?
|
|
|
|
Inevitably.
|
|
|
|
Would you know the measure of the interval which separates them?
|
|
|
|
Will you tell me?
|
|
|
|
There appear to be three pleasures, one genuine and two spurious:
|
|
now the transgression of the tyrant reaches a point beyond the spurious;
|
|
he has run away from the region of law and reason, and taken up
|
|
his abode with certain slave pleasures which are his satellites,
|
|
and the measure of his inferiority can only be expressed in
|
|
a figure.
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I assume, I said, that the tyrant is in the third place from the oligarch;
|
|
the democrat was in the middle?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And if there is truth in what has preceded, he will be wedded
|
|
to an image of pleasure which is thrice removed as to truth
|
|
from the pleasure of the oligarch?
|
|
|
|
He will.
|
|
|
|
And the oligarch is third from the royal; since we count as one
|
|
royal and aristocratical?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he is third.
|
|
|
|
Then the tyrant is removed from true pleasure by the space
|
|
of a number which is three times three?
|
|
|
|
Manifestly.
|
|
|
|
The shadow then of tyrannical pleasure determined by the number
|
|
of length will be a plane figure.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And if you raise the power and make the plane a solid, there is no
|
|
difficulty in seeing how vast is the interval by which the tyrant
|
|
is parted from the king.
|
|
|
|
Yes; the arithmetician will easily do the sum.
|
|
|
|
Or if some person begins at the other end and measures the interval
|
|
by which the king is parted from the tyrant in truth of pleasure,
|
|
he will find him, when the multiplication is complete, living 729
|
|
times more pleasantly, and the tyrant more painfully by this
|
|
same interval.
|
|
|
|
What a wonderful calculation! And how enormous is the distance
|
|
which separates the just from the unjust in regard to pleasure
|
|
and pain!
|
|
|
|
Yet a true calculation, I said, and a number which nearly concerns
|
|
human life, if human beings are concerned with days and nights
|
|
and months and years.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, human life is certainly concerned with them.
|
|
|
|
Then if the good and just man be thus superior in pleasure
|
|
to the evil and unjust, his superiority will be infinitely
|
|
greater in propriety of life and in beauty and virtue?
|
|
|
|
Immeasurably greater.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and now having arrived at this stage of the argument,
|
|
we may revert to the words which brought us hither: Was not some
|
|
one saying that injustice was a gain to the perfectly unjust who was
|
|
reputed to be just?
|
|
|
|
Yes, that was said.
|
|
|
|
Now then, having determined the power and quality of justice
|
|
and injustice, let us have a little conversation with him.
|
|
|
|
What shall we say to him?
|
|
|
|
Let us make an image of the soul, that he may have his own words
|
|
presented before his eyes.
|
|
|
|
Of what sort?
|
|
|
|
An ideal image of the soul, like the composite creations of
|
|
ancient mythology, such as the Chimera or Scylla or Cerberus,
|
|
and there are many others in which two or more different natures
|
|
are said to grow into one.
|
|
|
|
There are said of have been such unions.
|
|
|
|
Then do you now model the form of a multitudinous, many-headed monster,
|
|
having a ring of heads of all manner of beasts, tame and wild,
|
|
which he is able to generate and metamorphose at will.
|
|
|
|
You suppose marvellous powers in the artist; but, as language
|
|
is more pliable than wax or any similar substance, let there
|
|
be such a model as you propose.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that you make a second form as of a lion, and a third
|
|
of a man, the second smaller than the first, and the third smaller
|
|
than the second.
|
|
|
|
That, he said, is an easier task; and I have made them as you say.
|
|
|
|
And now join them, and let the three grow into one.
|
|
|
|
That has been accomplished.
|
|
|
|
Next fashion the outside of them into a single image, as of a man,
|
|
so that he who is not able to look within, and sees only the outer hull,
|
|
may believe the beast to be a single human creature. I have done so,
|
|
he said.
|
|
|
|
And now, to him who maintains that it is profitable for the human
|
|
creature to be unjust, and unprofitable to be just, let us reply that,
|
|
if he be right, it is profitable for this creature to feast the
|
|
multitudinous monster and strengthen the lion and the lion-like qualities,
|
|
but to starve and weaken the man, who is consequently liable to be
|
|
dragged about at the mercy of either of the other two; and he is
|
|
not to attempt to familiarize or harmonize them with one another--
|
|
he ought rather to suffer them to fight and bite and devour one another.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said; that is what the approver of injustice says.
|
|
|
|
To him the supporter of justice makes answer that he should ever
|
|
so speak and act as to give the man within him in some way or other
|
|
the most complete mastery over the entire human creature.
|
|
|
|
He should watch over the many-headed monster like a good husbandman,
|
|
fostering and cultivating the gentle qualities, and preventing the wild
|
|
ones from growing; he should be making the lion-heart his ally,
|
|
and in common care of them all should be uniting the several parts
|
|
with one another and with himself.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is quite what the maintainer of justice say.
|
|
|
|
And so from every point of view, whether of pleasure, honour,
|
|
or advantage, the approver of justice is right and speaks the truth,
|
|
and the disapprover is wrong and false and ignorant.
|
|
|
|
Yes, from every point of view.
|
|
|
|
Come, now, and let us gently reason with the unjust, who is not
|
|
intentionally in error. `Sweet Sir,' we will say to him, what think
|
|
you of things esteemed noble and ignoble? Is not the noble that
|
|
which subjects the beast to the man, or rather to the god in man;
|
|
and the ignoble that which subjects the man to the beast?'
|
|
He can hardly avoid saying yes--can he now?
|
|
|
|
Not if he has any regard for my opinion.
|
|
|
|
But, if he agree so far, we may ask him to answer another question:
|
|
`Then how would a man profit if he received gold and silver
|
|
on the condition that he was to enslave the noblest part of him
|
|
to the worst? Who can imagine that a man who sold his son
|
|
or daughter into slavery for money, especially if he sold them
|
|
into the hands of fierce and evil men, would be the gainer,
|
|
however large might be the sum which he received? And will any
|
|
one say that he is not a miserable caitiff who remorselessly sells
|
|
his own divine being to that which is most godless and detestable?
|
|
Eriphyle took the necklace as the price of her husband's life,
|
|
but he is taking a bribe in order to compass a worse ruin.'
|
|
|
|
Yes, said Glaucon, far worse--I will answer for him.
|
|
|
|
Has not the intemperate been censured of old, because in him
|
|
the huge multiform monster is allowed to be too much at large?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And men are blamed for pride and bad temper when the lion and serpent
|
|
element in them disproportionately grows and gains strength?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And luxury and softness are blamed, because they relax and weaken
|
|
this same creature, and make a coward of him?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is not a man reproached for flattery and meanness who subordinates
|
|
the spirited animal to the unruly monster, and, for the sake of money,
|
|
of which he can never have enough, habituates him in the days
|
|
of his youth to be trampled in the mire, and from being a lion
|
|
to become a monkey?
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And why are mean employments and manual arts a reproach Only
|
|
because they imply a natural weakness of the higher principle;
|
|
the individual is unable to control the creatures within him,
|
|
but has to court them, and his great study is how to flatter them.
|
|
|
|
Such appears to be the reason.
|
|
|
|
And therefore, being desirous of placing him under a rule like that
|
|
of the best, we say that he ought to be the servant of the best,
|
|
in whom the Divine rules; not, as Thrasymachus supposed, to the
|
|
injury of the servant, but because every one had better be ruled
|
|
by divine wisdom dwelling within him; or, if this be impossible,
|
|
then by an external authority, in order that we may be all,
|
|
as far as possible, under the same government, friends and equals.
|
|
|
|
True, he said.
|
|
|
|
And this is clearly seen to be the intention of the law, which is
|
|
the ally of the whole city; and is seen also in the authority
|
|
which we exercise over children, and the refusal to let them
|
|
be free until we have established in them a principle analogous
|
|
to the constitution of a state, and by cultivation of this higher
|
|
element have set up in their hearts a guardian and ruler like our own,
|
|
and when this is done they may go their ways.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the purpose of the law is manifest.
|
|
|
|
From what point of view, then, and on what ground can we say that
|
|
a man is profited by injustice or intemperance or other baseness,
|
|
which will make him a worse man, even though he acquire money
|
|
or power by his wickedness?
|
|
|
|
From no point of view at all.
|
|
|
|
What shall he profit, if his injustice be undetected and unpunished?
|
|
He who is undetected only gets worse, whereas he who is detected
|
|
and punished has the brutal part of his nature silenced and humanized;
|
|
the gentler element in him is liberated, and his whole soul is
|
|
perfected and ennobled by the acquirement of justice and temperance
|
|
and wisdom, more than the body ever is by receiving gifts of beauty,
|
|
strength and health, in proportion as the soul is more honourable than
|
|
the body.
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
To this nobler purpose the man of understanding will devote
|
|
the energies of his life. And in the first place, he will honour
|
|
studies which impress these qualities on his soul and disregard others?
|
|
|
|
Clearly, he said.
|
|
|
|
In the next place, he will regulate his bodily habit and training,
|
|
and so far will he be from yielding to brutal and irrational pleasures,
|
|
that he will regard even health as quite a secondary matter;
|
|
his first object will be not that he may be fair or strong or well,
|
|
unless he is likely thereby to gain temperance, but he will always
|
|
desire so to attemper the body as to preserve the harmony of
|
|
the soul?
|
|
|
|
Certainly he will, if he has true music in him.
|
|
|
|
And in the acquisition of wealth there is a principle of order
|
|
and harmony which he will also observe; he will not allow himself
|
|
to be dazzled by the foolish applause of the world, and heap up
|
|
riches to his own infinite harm?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
He will look at the city which is within him, and take heed that no
|
|
disorder occur in it, such as might arise either from superfluity
|
|
or from want; and upon this principle he will regulate his property
|
|
and gain or spend according to his means.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, for the same reason, he will gladly accept and enjoy such
|
|
honours as he deems likely to make him a better man; but those,
|
|
whether private or public, which are likely to disorder his life,
|
|
he will avoid?
|
|
|
|
Then, if that is his motive, he will not be a statesman.
|
|
|
|
By the dog of Egypt, he will! in the city which is his own he
|
|
certainly will, though in the land of his birth perhaps not,
|
|
unless he have a divine call.
|
|
|
|
I understand; you mean that he will be a ruler in the city
|
|
of which we are the founders, and which exists in idea only;
|
|
for I do not believe that there is such an one anywhere on earth?
|
|
|
|
In heaven, I replied, there is laid up a pattern of it, methinks, which he
|
|
who desires may behold, and beholding, may set his own house in order.
|
|
But whether such an one exists, or ever will exist in fact,
|
|
is no matter; for he will live after the manner of that city,
|
|
having nothing to do with any other.
|
|
|
|
I think so, he said.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
BOOK X
|
|
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES - GLAUCON
|
|
|
|
OF THE many excellences which I perceive in the order of our State,
|
|
there is none which upon reflection pleases me better than the rule
|
|
about poetry.
|
|
|
|
To what do you refer?
|
|
|
|
To the rejection of imitative poetry, which certainly ought
|
|
not to be received; as I see far more clearly now that the parts
|
|
of the soul have been distinguished.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
Speaking in confidence, for I should not like to have my words
|
|
repeated to the tragedians and the rest of the imitative tribe--
|
|
but I do not mind saying to you, that all poetical imitations are
|
|
ruinous to the understanding of the hearers, and that the knowledge
|
|
of their true nature is the only antidote to them.
|
|
|
|
Explain the purport of your remark.
|
|
|
|
Well, I will tell you, although I have always from my earliest youth
|
|
had an awe and love of Homer, which even now makes the words falter
|
|
on my lips, for he is the great captain and teacher of the whole
|
|
of that charming tragic company; but a man is not to be reverenced
|
|
more than the truth, and therefore I will speak out.
|
|
|
|
Very good, he said.
|
|
|
|
Listen to me then, or rather, answer me.
|
|
|
|
Put your question.
|
|
|
|
Can you tell me what imitation is? for I really do not know.
|
|
|
|
A likely thing, then, that I should know.
|
|
|
|
Why not? for the duller eye may often see a thing sooner than
|
|
the keener.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said; but in your presence, even if I had any faint notion,
|
|
I could not muster courage to utter it. Will you enquire yourself?
|
|
|
|
Well then, shall we begin the enquiry in our usual manner:
|
|
Whenever a number of individuals have a common name, we assume them
|
|
to have also a corresponding idea or form. Do you understand me?
|
|
|
|
I do.
|
|
|
|
Let us take any common instance; there are beds and tables in the world--
|
|
plenty of them, are there not?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But there are only two ideas or forms of them--one the idea of a bed,
|
|
the other of a table.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the maker of either of them makes a bed or he makes a table for our use,
|
|
in accordance with the idea--that is our way of speaking in this
|
|
and similar instances--but no artificer makes the ideas themselves:
|
|
how could he?
|
|
|
|
Impossible.
|
|
|
|
And there is another artist,--I should like to know what you would
|
|
say of him.
|
|
|
|
Who is he?
|
|
|
|
One who is the maker of all the works of all other workmen.
|
|
|
|
What an extraordinary man!
|
|
|
|
Wait a little, and there will be more reason for your saying so.
|
|
For this is he who is able to make not only vessels of every kind,
|
|
but plants and animals, himself and all other things--the earth
|
|
and heaven, and the things which are in heaven or under the earth;
|
|
he makes the gods also.
|
|
|
|
He must be a wizard and no mistake.
|
|
|
|
Oh! you are incredulous, are you? Do you mean that there is no
|
|
such maker or creator, or that in one sense there might be a maker
|
|
of all these things but in another not? Do you see that there
|
|
is a way in which you could make them all yourself?
|
|
|
|
What way?
|
|
|
|
An easy way enough; or rather, there are many ways in which the feat
|
|
might be quickly and easily accomplished, none quicker than that of
|
|
turning a mirror round and round--you would soon enough make the sun
|
|
and the heavens, and the earth and yourself, and other animals and plants,
|
|
and all the, other things of which we were just now speaking, in the mirror.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; but they would be appearances only.
|
|
|
|
Very good, I said, you are coming to the point now. And the painter
|
|
too is, as I conceive, just such another--a creator of appearances,
|
|
is he not?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
But then I suppose you will say that what he creates is untrue.
|
|
And yet there is a sense in which the painter also creates a bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, but not a real bed.
|
|
|
|
And what of the maker of the bed? Were you not saying that he too makes,
|
|
not the idea which, according to our view, is the essence of the bed,
|
|
but only a particular bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I did.
|
|
|
|
Then if he does not make that which exists he cannot make true existence,
|
|
but only some semblance of existence; and if any one were to say
|
|
that the work of the maker of the bed, or of any other workman,
|
|
has real existence, he could hardly be supposed to be speaking
|
|
the truth.
|
|
|
|
At any rate, he replied, philosophers would say that he was not
|
|
speaking the truth.
|
|
|
|
No wonder, then, that his work too is an indistinct expression
|
|
of truth.
|
|
|
|
No wonder.
|
|
|
|
Suppose now that by the light of the examples just offered we
|
|
enquire who this imitator is?
|
|
|
|
If you please.
|
|
|
|
Well then, here are three beds: one existing in nature, which is made
|
|
by God, as I think that we may say--for no one else can be the maker?
|
|
|
|
No.
|
|
|
|
There is another which is the work of the carpenter?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the work of the painter is a third?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Beds, then, are of three kinds, and there are three artists
|
|
who superintend them: God, the maker of the bed, and the painter?
|
|
|
|
Yes, there are three of them.
|
|
|
|
God, whether from choice or from necessity, made one bed in nature
|
|
and one only; two or more such ideal beds neither ever have been
|
|
nor ever will be made by God.
|
|
|
|
Why is that?
|
|
|
|
Because even if He had made but two, a third would still appear
|
|
behind them which both of them would have for their idea,
|
|
and that would be the ideal bed and the two others.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
God knew this, and He desired to be the real maker of a real bed,
|
|
not a particular maker of a particular bed, and therefore He created
|
|
a bed which is essentially and by nature one only.
|
|
|
|
So we believe.
|
|
|
|
Shall we, then, speak of Him as the natural author or maker of the bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied; inasmuch as by the natural process of creation He
|
|
is the author of this and of all other things.
|
|
|
|
And what shall we say of the carpenter--is not he also the maker
|
|
of the bed?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But would you call the painter a creator and maker?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Yet if he is not the maker, what is he in relation to the bed?
|
|
|
|
I think, he said, that we may fairly designate him as the imitator
|
|
of that which the others make.
|
|
|
|
Good, I said; then you call him who is third in the descent from
|
|
nature an imitator?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the tragic poet is an imitator, and therefore, like all
|
|
other imitators, he is thrice removed from the king and from the truth?
|
|
|
|
That appears to be so.
|
|
|
|
Then about the imitator we are agreed. And what about the painter?--
|
|
I would like to know whether he may be thought to imitate that which
|
|
originally exists in nature, or only the creations of artists?
|
|
|
|
The latter.
|
|
|
|
As they are or as they appear? You have still to determine this.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I mean, that you may look at a bed from different points of view,
|
|
obliquely or directly or from any other point of view, and the bed
|
|
will appear different, but there is no difference in reality.
|
|
And the same of all things.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, the difference is only apparent.
|
|
|
|
Now let me ask you another question: Which is the art of painting
|
|
designed to be--an imitation of things as they are, or as they appear--
|
|
of appearance or of reality?
|
|
|
|
Of appearance.
|
|
|
|
Then the imitator, I said, is a long way off the truth, and can
|
|
do all things because he lightly touches on a small part of them,
|
|
and that part an image. For example: A painter will paint a cobbler,
|
|
carpenter, or any other artist, though he knows nothing of their arts;
|
|
and, if he is a good artist, he may deceive children or simple persons,
|
|
when he shows them his picture of a carpenter from a distance,
|
|
and they will fancy that they are looking at a real carpenter.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And whenever any one informs us that he has found a man knows
|
|
all the arts, and all things else that anybody knows, and every
|
|
single thing with a higher degree of accuracy than any other man--
|
|
whoever tells us this, I think that we can only imagine to be a
|
|
simple creature who is likely to have been deceived by some wizard
|
|
or actor whom he met, and whom he thought all-knowing, because he
|
|
himself was unable to analyse the nature of knowledge and ignorance
|
|
and imitation.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And so, when we hear persons saying that the tragedians, and Homer,
|
|
who is at their head, know all the arts and all things human,
|
|
virtue as well as vice, and divine things too, for that the good
|
|
poet cannot compose well unless he knows his subject, and that he
|
|
who has not this knowledge can never be a poet, we ought to
|
|
consider whether here also there may not be a similar illusion.
|
|
Perhaps they may have come across imitators and been deceived by them;
|
|
they may not have remembered when they saw their works that these were
|
|
but imitations thrice removed from the truth, and could easily be made
|
|
without any knowledge of the truth, because they are appearances
|
|
only and not realities? Or, after all, they may be in the right,
|
|
and poets do really know the things about which they seem to the many
|
|
to speak so well?
|
|
|
|
The question, he said, should by all means be considered.
|
|
|
|
Now do you suppose that if a person were able to make the original
|
|
as well as the image, he would seriously devote himself to the
|
|
image-making branch? Would he allow imitation to be the ruling
|
|
principle of his life, as if he had nothing higher in him?
|
|
|
|
I should say not.
|
|
|
|
The real artist, who knew what he was imitating, would be interested
|
|
in realities and not in imitations; and would desire to leave
|
|
as memorials of himself works many and fair; and, instead of being
|
|
the author of encomiums, he would prefer to be the theme of them.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that would be to him a source of much greater honour
|
|
and profit.
|
|
|
|
Then, I said, we must put a question to Homer; not about medicine,
|
|
or any of the arts to which his poems only incidentally refer:
|
|
we are not going to ask him, or any other poet, whether he has cured
|
|
patients like Asclepius, or left behind him a school of medicine
|
|
such as the Asclepiads were, or whether he only talks about medicine
|
|
and other arts at second hand; but we have a right to know respecting
|
|
military tactics, politics, education, which are the chiefest and
|
|
noblest subjects of his poems, and we may fairly ask him about them.
|
|
`Friend Homer,' then we say to him, `if you are only in the second
|
|
remove from truth in what you say of virtue, and not in the third--
|
|
not an image maker or imitator--and if you are able to discern
|
|
what pursuits make men better or worse in private or public life,
|
|
tell us what State was ever better governed by your help?
|
|
The good order of Lacedaemon is due to Lycurgus, and many other
|
|
cities great and small have been similarly benefited by others;
|
|
but who says that you have been a good legislator to them and
|
|
have done them any good? Italy and Sicily boast of Charondas,
|
|
and there is Solon who is renowned among us; but what city
|
|
has anything to say about you?' Is there any city which he
|
|
might name?
|
|
|
|
I think not, said Glaucon; not even the Homerids themselves pretend
|
|
that he was a legislator.
|
|
|
|
Well, but is there any war on record which was carried on successfully
|
|
by him, or aided by his counsels, when he was alive?
|
|
|
|
There is not.
|
|
|
|
Or is there any invention of his, applicable to the arts or to
|
|
human life, such as Thales the Milesian or Anacharsis the Scythian,
|
|
and other ingenious men have conceived, which is attributed to him?
|
|
|
|
There is absolutely nothing of the kind.
|
|
|
|
But, if Homer never did any public service, was he privately
|
|
a guide or teacher of any? Had he in his lifetime friends
|
|
who loved to associate with him, and who handed down to posterity
|
|
an Homeric way of life, such as was established by Pythagoras
|
|
who was so greatly beloved for his wisdom, and whose followers
|
|
are to this day quite celebrated for the order which was named after him?
|
|
|
|
Nothing of the kind is recorded of him. For surely, Socrates, Creophylus,
|
|
the companion of Homer, that child of flesh, whose name always makes us laugh,
|
|
might be more justly ridiculed for his stupidity, if, as is said, Homer
|
|
was greatly neglected by him and others in his own day when he was alive?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I replied, that is the tradition. But can you imagine, Glaucon,
|
|
that if Homer had really been able to educate and improve mankind--
|
|
if he had possessed knowledge and not been a mere imitator--can you imagine,
|
|
I say, that he would not have had many followers, and been honoured
|
|
and loved by them? Protagoras of Abdera, and Prodicus of Ceos,
|
|
and a host of others, have only to whisper to their contemporaries:
|
|
`You will never be able to manage either your own house or your own
|
|
State until you appoint us to be your ministers of education'--
|
|
and this ingenious device of theirs has such an effect in making
|
|
them love them that their companions all but carry them about on
|
|
their shoulders. And is it conceivable that the contemporaries
|
|
of Homer, or again of Hesiod, would have allowed either of them
|
|
to go about as rhapsodists, if they had really been able to make
|
|
mankind virtuous? Would they not have been as unwilling to part
|
|
with them as with gold, and have compelled them to stay at home
|
|
with them? Or, if the master would not stay, then the disciples
|
|
would have followed him about everywhere, until they had got
|
|
education enough?
|
|
|
|
Yes, Socrates, that, I think, is quite true.
|
|
|
|
Then must we not infer that all these poetical individuals,
|
|
beginning with Homer, are only imitators; they copy images
|
|
of virtue and the like, but the truth they never reach? The poet
|
|
is like a painter who, as we have already observed, will make
|
|
a likeness of a cobbler though he understands nothing of cobbling;
|
|
and his picture is good enough for those who know no more than he does,
|
|
and judge only by colours and figures.
|
|
|
|
Quite so.
|
|
|
|
In like manner the poet with his words and phrases may be said
|
|
to lay on the colours of the several arts, himself understanding
|
|
their nature only enough to imitate them; and other people,
|
|
who are as ignorant as he is, and judge only from his words,
|
|
imagine that if he speaks of cobbling, or of military tactics,
|
|
or of anything else, in metre and harmony and rhythm, he speaks very well--
|
|
such is the sweet influence which melody and rhythm by nature have.
|
|
And I think that you must have observed again and again what a poor
|
|
appearance the tales of poets make when stripped of the colours which
|
|
music puts upon them, and recited in simple prose.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
They are like faces which were never really beautiful, but only blooming;
|
|
and now the bloom of youth has passed away from them?
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
Here is another point: The imitator or maker of the image
|
|
knows nothing of true existence; he knows appearances only.
|
|
Am I not right?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Then let us have a clear understanding, and not be satisfied
|
|
with half an explanation.
|
|
|
|
Proceed.
|
|
|
|
Of the painter we say that he will paint reins, and he will paint
|
|
a bit?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the worker in leather and brass will make them?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
But does the painter know the right form of the bit and reins?
|
|
Nay, hardly even the workers in brass and leather who make them;
|
|
only the horseman who knows how to use them--he knows their
|
|
right form.
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And may we not say the same of all things?
|
|
|
|
What?
|
|
|
|
That there are three arts which are concerned with all things:
|
|
one which uses, another which makes, a third which imitates them?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And the excellence or beauty or truth of every structure,
|
|
animate or inanimate, and of every action of man, is relative
|
|
to the use for which nature or the artist has intended them.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
Then the user of them must have the greatest experience of them,
|
|
and he must indicate to the maker the good or bad qualities which
|
|
develop themselves in use; for example, the flute-player will tell
|
|
the flute-maker which of his flutes is satisfactory to the performer;
|
|
he will tell him how he ought to make them, and the other will attend
|
|
to his instructions?
|
|
|
|
Of course.
|
|
|
|
The one knows and therefore speaks with authority about the goodness
|
|
and badness of flutes, while the other, confiding in him,
|
|
will do what he is told by him?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The instrument is the same, but about the excellence or badness
|
|
of it the maker will only attain to a correct belief; and this he
|
|
will gain from him who knows, by talking to him and being compelled
|
|
to hear what he has to say, whereas the user will have knowledge?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But will the imitator have either? Will he know from use whether
|
|
or no his drawing is correct or beautiful? Or will he have right
|
|
opinion from being compelled to associate with another who knows
|
|
and gives him instructions about what he should draw?
|
|
|
|
Neither.
|
|
|
|
Then he will no more have true opinion than he will have knowledge
|
|
about the goodness or badness of his imitations?
|
|
|
|
I suppose not.
|
|
|
|
The imitative artist will be in a brilliant state of intelligence
|
|
about his own creations?
|
|
|
|
Nay, very much the reverse.
|
|
|
|
And still he will go on imitating without knowing what makes
|
|
a thing good or bad, and may be expected therefore to imitate
|
|
only that which appears to be good to the ignorant multitude?
|
|
|
|
Just so.
|
|
|
|
Thus far then we are pretty well agreed that the imitator has no
|
|
knowledge worth mentioning of what he imitates. Imitation is only
|
|
a kind of play or sport, and the tragic poets, whether they write
|
|
in iambic or in Heroic verse, are imitators in the highest degree?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And now tell me, I conjure you, has not imitation been shown by us
|
|
to be concerned with that which is thrice removed from the truth?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And what is the faculty in man to which imitation is addressed?
|
|
|
|
What do you mean?
|
|
|
|
I will explain: The body which is large when seen near,
|
|
appears small when seen at a distance?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the same object appears straight when looked at out of the water,
|
|
and crooked when in the water; and the concave becomes convex,
|
|
owing to the illusion about colours to which the sight is liable.
|
|
Thus every sort of confusion is revealed within us; and this is
|
|
that weakness of the human mind on which the art of conjuring and of
|
|
deceiving by light and shadow and other ingenious devices imposes,
|
|
having an effect upon us like magic.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the arts of measuring and numbering and weighing come to
|
|
the rescue of the human understanding-there is the beauty of them--
|
|
and the apparent greater or less, or more or heavier, no longer
|
|
have the mastery over us, but give way before calculation and measure
|
|
and weight?
|
|
|
|
Most true.
|
|
|
|
And this, surely, must be the work of the calculating and rational
|
|
principle in the soul
|
|
|
|
To be sure.
|
|
|
|
And when this principle measures and certifies that some things
|
|
are equal, or that some are greater or less than others, there occurs
|
|
an apparent contradiction?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But were we not saying that such a contradiction is the same faculty
|
|
cannot have contrary opinions at the same time about the same thing?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
Then that part of the soul which has an opinion contrary to measure
|
|
is not the same with that which has an opinion in accordance
|
|
with measure?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the better part of the soul is likely to be that which trusts
|
|
to measure and calculation?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And that which is opposed to them is one of the inferior principles
|
|
of the soul?
|
|
|
|
No doubt.
|
|
|
|
This was the conclusion at which I was seeking to arrive when I
|
|
said that painting or drawing, and imitation in general, when doing
|
|
their own proper work, are far removed from truth, and the companions
|
|
and friends and associates of a principle within us which is equally
|
|
removed from reason, and that they have no true or healthy aim.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
The imitative art is an inferior who marries an inferior, and has
|
|
inferior offspring.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And is this confined to the sight only, or does it extend
|
|
to the hearing also, relating in fact to what we term poetry?
|
|
|
|
Probably the same would be true of poetry.
|
|
|
|
Do not rely, I said, on a probability derived from the analogy
|
|
of painting; but let us examine further and see whether the faculty
|
|
with which poetical imitation is concerned is good or bad.
|
|
|
|
By all means.
|
|
|
|
We may state the question thus:--Imitation imitates the actions of men,
|
|
whether voluntary or involuntary, on which, as they imagine, a good
|
|
or bad result has ensued, and they rejoice or sorrow accordingly.
|
|
Is there anything more?
|
|
|
|
No, there is nothing else.
|
|
|
|
But in all this variety of circumstances is the man at unity
|
|
with himself--or rather, as in the instance of sight there was
|
|
confusion and opposition in his opinions about the same things,
|
|
so here also is there not strife and inconsistency in his life?
|
|
Though I need hardly raise the question again, for I remember that all
|
|
this has been already admitted; and the soul has been acknowledged
|
|
by us to be full of these and ten thousand similar oppositions
|
|
occurring at the same moment?
|
|
|
|
And we were right, he said.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, thus far we were right; but there was an omission
|
|
which must now be supplied.
|
|
|
|
What was the omission?
|
|
|
|
Were we not saying that a good man, who has the misfortune to lose
|
|
his son or anything else which is most dear to him, will bear
|
|
the loss with more equanimity than another?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
But will he have no sorrow, or shall we say that although he cannot
|
|
help sorrowing, he will moderate his sorrow?
|
|
|
|
The latter, he said, is the truer statement.
|
|
|
|
Tell me: will he be more likely to struggle and hold out against
|
|
his sorrow when he is seen by his equals, or when he is alone?
|
|
|
|
It will make a great difference whether he is seen or not.
|
|
|
|
When he is by himself he will not mind saying or doing many things
|
|
which he would be ashamed of any one hearing or seeing him do?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
There is a principle of law and reason in him which bids him resist,
|
|
as well as a feeling of his misfortune which is forcing him to indulge
|
|
his sorrow?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
But when a man is drawn in two opposite directions, to and
|
|
from the same object, this, as we affirm, necessarily implies
|
|
two distinct principles in him?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
One of them is ready to follow the guidance of the law?
|
|
|
|
How do you mean?
|
|
|
|
The law would say that to be patient under suffering is best,
|
|
and that we should not give way to impatience, as there is no
|
|
knowing whether such things are good or evil; and nothing is gained
|
|
by impatience; also, because no human thing is of serious importance,
|
|
and grief stands in the way of that which at the moment is most required.
|
|
|
|
What is most required? he asked.
|
|
|
|
That we should take counsel about what has happened, and when
|
|
the dice have been thrown order our affairs in the way which reason
|
|
deems best; not, like children who have had a fall, keeping hold
|
|
of the part struck and wasting time in setting up a howl, but always
|
|
accustoming the soul forthwith to apply a remedy, raising up that
|
|
which is sickly and fallen, banishing the cry of sorrow by the healing art.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, that is the true way of meeting the attacks of fortune.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said; and the higher principle is ready to follow this
|
|
suggestion of reason?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And the other principle, which inclines us to recollection of our
|
|
troubles and to lamentation, and can never have enough of them,
|
|
we may call irrational, useless, and cowardly?
|
|
|
|
Indeed, we may.
|
|
|
|
And does not the latter--I mean the rebellious principle--
|
|
furnish a great variety of materials for imitation? Whereas the wise
|
|
and calm temperament, being always nearly equable, is not easy
|
|
to imitate or to appreciate when imitated, especially at a public
|
|
festival when a promiscuous crowd is assembled in a theatre.
|
|
For the feeling represented is one to which they are strangers.
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then the imitative poet who aims at being popular is not by nature made,
|
|
nor is his art intended, to please or to affect the principle
|
|
in the soul; but he will prefer the passionate and fitful temper,
|
|
which is easily imitated?
|
|
|
|
Clearly.
|
|
|
|
And now we may fairly take him and place him by the side of the painter,
|
|
for he is like him in two ways: first, inasmuch as his creations
|
|
have an inferior degree of truth--in this, I say, he is like him;
|
|
and he is also like him in being concerned with an inferior
|
|
part of the soul; and therefore we shall be right in refusing
|
|
to admit him into a well-ordered State, because he awakens and
|
|
nourishes and strengthens the feelings and impairs the reason.
|
|
As in a city when the evil are permitted to have authority
|
|
and the good are put out of the way, so in the soul of man,
|
|
as we maintain, the imitative poet implants an evil constitution,
|
|
for he indulges the irrational nature which has no discernment
|
|
of greater and less, but thinks the same thing at one time great
|
|
and at another small-he is a manufacturer of images and is very far
|
|
removed from the truth.
|
|
|
|
Exactly.
|
|
|
|
But we have not yet brought forward the heaviest count in our accusation:--
|
|
the power which poetry has of harming even the good (and there
|
|
are very few who are not harmed), is surely an awful thing?
|
|
|
|
Yes, certainly, if the effect is what you say.
|
|
|
|
Hear and judge: The best of us, as I conceive, when we listen
|
|
to a passage of Homer, or one of the tragedians, in which he
|
|
represents some pitiful hero who is drawling out his sorrows in a
|
|
long oration, or weeping, and smiting his breast--the best of us,
|
|
you know, delight in giving way to sympathy, and are in raptures
|
|
at the excellence of the poet who stirs our feelings most.
|
|
|
|
Yes, of course I know.
|
|
|
|
But when any sorrow of our own happens to us, then you may observe
|
|
that we pride ourselves on the opposite quality--we would fain be quiet
|
|
and patient; this is the manly part, and the other which delighted
|
|
us in the recitation is now deemed to be the part of a woman.
|
|
|
|
Very true, he said.
|
|
|
|
Now can we be right in praising and admiring another who is doing
|
|
that which any one of us would abominate and be ashamed of in his
|
|
own person?
|
|
|
|
No, he said, that is certainly not reasonable.
|
|
|
|
Nay, I said, quite reasonable from one point of view.
|
|
|
|
What point of view?
|
|
|
|
If you consider, I said, that when in misfortune we feel a natural
|
|
hunger and desire to relieve our sorrow by weeping and lamentation,
|
|
and that this feeling which is kept under control in our own
|
|
calamities is satisfied and delighted by the poets;-the better
|
|
nature in each of us, not having been sufficiently trained
|
|
by reason or habit, allows the sympathetic element to break
|
|
loose because the sorrow is another's; and the spectator fancies
|
|
that there can be no disgrace to himself in praising and pitying
|
|
any one who comes telling him what a good man he is, and making
|
|
a fuss about his troubles; he thinks that the pleasure is a gain,
|
|
and why should he be supercilious and lose this and the poem too?
|
|
Few persons ever reflect, as I should imagine, that from the evil
|
|
of other men something of evil is communicated to themselves.
|
|
And so the feeling of sorrow which has gathered strength at the sight
|
|
of the misfortunes of others is with difficulty repressed in
|
|
our own.
|
|
|
|
How very true!
|
|
|
|
And does not the same hold also of the ridiculous? There are jests
|
|
which you would be ashamed to make yourself, and yet on the comic stage,
|
|
or indeed in private, when you hear them, you are greatly amused
|
|
by them, and are not at all disgusted at their unseemliness;--
|
|
the case of pity is repeated;--there is a principle in human nature
|
|
which is disposed to raise a laugh, and this which you once restrained
|
|
by reason, because you were afraid of being thought a buffoon,
|
|
is now let out again; and having stimulated the risible faculty
|
|
at the theatre, you are betrayed unconsciously to yourself into
|
|
playing the comic poet at home.
|
|
|
|
Quite true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And the same may be said of lust and anger and all the other affections,
|
|
of desire and pain and pleasure, which are held to be inseparable
|
|
from every action--in all of them poetry feeds and waters the passions
|
|
instead of drying them up; she lets them rule, although they ought
|
|
to be controlled, if mankind are ever to increase in happiness and virtue.
|
|
|
|
I cannot deny it.
|
|
|
|
Therefore, Glaucon, I said, whenever you meet with any of the eulogists
|
|
of Homer declaring that he has been the educator of Hellas, and that he
|
|
is profitable for education and for the ordering of human things,
|
|
and that you should take him up again and again and get to know him
|
|
and regulate your whole life according to him, we may love and honour
|
|
those who say these things--they are excellent people, as far as
|
|
their lights extend; and we are ready to acknowledge that Homer is
|
|
the greatest of poets and first of tragedy writers; but we must remain
|
|
firm in our conviction that hymns to the gods and praises of famous
|
|
men are the only poetry which ought to be admitted into our State.
|
|
For if you go beyond this and allow the honeyed muse to enter,
|
|
either in epic or lyric verse, not law and the reason of mankind,
|
|
which by common consent have ever been deemed best, but pleasure
|
|
and pain will be the rulers in our State.
|
|
|
|
That is most true, he said.
|
|
|
|
And now since we have reverted to the subject of poetry, let this
|
|
our defence serve to show the reasonableness of our former judgment
|
|
in sending away out of our State an art having the tendencies
|
|
which we have described; for reason constrained us. But that she
|
|
may impute to us any harshness or want of politeness, let us tell
|
|
her that there is an ancient quarrel between philosophy and poetry;
|
|
of which there are many proofs, such as the saying of `the yelping
|
|
hound howling at her lord,' or of one `mighty in the vain talk
|
|
of fools,' and `the mob of sages circumventing Zeus,' and the `subtle
|
|
thinkers who are beggars after all'; and there are innumerable
|
|
other signs of ancient enmity between them. Notwithstanding this,
|
|
let us assure our sweet friend and the sister arts of imitation
|
|
that if she will only prove her title to exist in a well-ordered
|
|
State we shall be delighted to receive her--we are very conscious
|
|
of her charms; but we may not on that account betray the truth.
|
|
I dare say, Glaucon, that you are as much charmed by her as I am,
|
|
especially when she appears in Homer?
|
|
|
|
Yes, indeed, I am greatly charmed.
|
|
|
|
Shall I propose, then, that she be allowed to return from exile,
|
|
but upon this condition only--that she make a defence of herself
|
|
in lyrical or some other metre?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
And we may further grant to those of her defenders who are lovers of poetry
|
|
and yet not poets the permission to speak in prose on her behalf:
|
|
let them show not only that she is pleasant but also useful to
|
|
States and to human life, and we will listen in a kindly spirit;
|
|
for if this can be proved we shall surely be the gainers--I mean,
|
|
if there is a use in poetry as well as a delight?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, we shall the gainers.
|
|
|
|
If her defence fails, then, my dear friend, like other persons
|
|
who are enamoured of something, but put a restraint upon themselves
|
|
when they think their desires are opposed to their interests,
|
|
so too must we after the manner of lovers give her up,
|
|
though not without a struggle. We too are inspired by that love
|
|
of poetry which the education of noble States has implanted in us,
|
|
and therefore we would have her appear at her best and truest;
|
|
but so long as she is unable to make good her defence,
|
|
this argument of ours shall be a charm to us, which we will repeat
|
|
to ourselves while we listen to her strains; that we may not fall
|
|
away into the childish love of her which captivates the many.
|
|
At all events we are well aware that poetry being such as we have
|
|
described is not to be regarded seriously as attaining to the truth;
|
|
and he who listens to her, fearing for the safety of the city which is
|
|
within him, should be on his guard against her seductions and make
|
|
our words his law.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, I quite agree with you.
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, my dear Glaucon, for great is the issue at stake,
|
|
greater than appears, whether a man is to be good or bad.
|
|
And what will any one be profited if under the influence of honour
|
|
or money or power, aye, or under the excitement of poetry, he neglect
|
|
justice and virtue?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; I have been convinced by the argument, as I believe
|
|
that any one else would have been.
|
|
|
|
And yet no mention has been made of the greatest prizes and rewards
|
|
which await virtue.
|
|
|
|
What, are there any greater still? If there are, they must
|
|
be of an inconceivable greatness.
|
|
|
|
Why, I said, what was ever great in a short time? The whole
|
|
period of threescore years and ten is surely but a little thing
|
|
in comparison with eternity?
|
|
|
|
Say rather `nothing,' he replied.
|
|
|
|
And should an immortal being seriously think of this little space
|
|
rather than of the whole?
|
|
|
|
Of the whole, certainly. But why do you ask?
|
|
|
|
Are you not aware, I said, that the soul of man is immortal
|
|
and imperishable?
|
|
|
|
He looked at me in astonishment, and said: No, by heaven:
|
|
And are you really prepared to maintain this?
|
|
|
|
Yes, I said, I ought to be, and you too--there is no difficulty
|
|
in proving it.
|
|
|
|
I see a great difficulty; but I should like to hear you state this
|
|
argument of which you make so light.
|
|
|
|
Listen then.
|
|
|
|
I am attending.
|
|
|
|
There is a thing which you call good and another which you call evil?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Would you agree with me in thinking that the corrupting and destroying
|
|
element is the evil, and the saving and improving element the good?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
And you admit that every thing has a good and also an evil;
|
|
as ophthalmia is the evil of the eyes and disease of the whole body;
|
|
as mildew is of corn, and rot of timber, or rust of copper and iron:
|
|
in everything, or in almost everything, there is an inherent evil
|
|
and disease?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said.
|
|
|
|
And anything which is infected by any of these evils is made evil,
|
|
and at last wholly dissolves and dies?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
The vice and evil which is inherent in each is the destruction of each;
|
|
and if this does not destroy them there is nothing else that will;
|
|
for good certainly will not destroy them, nor again, that which is
|
|
neither good nor evil.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
If, then, we find any nature which having this inherent corruption
|
|
cannot be dissolved or destroyed, we may be certain that of such
|
|
a nature there is no destruction?
|
|
|
|
That may be assumed.
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, and is there no evil which corrupts the soul?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there are all the evils which we were just now passing
|
|
in review: unrighteousness, intemperance, cowardice, ignorance.
|
|
|
|
But does any of these dissolve or destroy her?--and here do not let
|
|
us fall into the error of supposing that the unjust and foolish man,
|
|
when he is detected, perishes through his own injustice,
|
|
which is an evil of the soul. Take the analogy of the body:
|
|
The evil of the body is a disease which wastes and reduces and
|
|
annihilates the body; and all the things of which we were just
|
|
now speaking come to annihilation through their own corruption
|
|
attaching to them and inhering in them and so destroying them.
|
|
Is not this true?
|
|
|
|
Yes.
|
|
|
|
Consider the soul in like manner. Does the injustice or other evil
|
|
which exists in the soul waste and consume her? Do they by attaching
|
|
to the soul and inhering in her at last bring her to death,
|
|
and so separate her from the body ?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, it is unreasonable to suppose that anything can
|
|
perish from without through affection of external evil which could
|
|
not be destroyed from within by a corruption of its own?
|
|
|
|
It is, he replied.
|
|
|
|
Consider, I said, Glaucon, that even the badness of food,
|
|
whether staleness, decomposition, or any other bad quality,
|
|
when confined to the actual food, is not supposed to destroy the body;
|
|
although, if the badness of food communicates corruption to the body,
|
|
then we should say that the body has been destroyed by a corruption
|
|
of itself, which is disease, brought on by this; but that the body,
|
|
being one thing, can be destroyed by the badness of food,
|
|
which is another, and which does not engender any natural infection--
|
|
this we shall absolutely deny?
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And, on the same principle, unless some bodily evil can produce an evil
|
|
of the soul, we must not suppose that the soul, which is one thing,
|
|
can be dissolved by any merely external evil which belongs to another?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said, there is reason in that.
|
|
|
|
Either then, let us refute this conclusion, or, while it
|
|
remains unrefuted, let us never say that fever, or any other disease,
|
|
or the knife put to the throat, or even the cutting up of
|
|
the whole body into the minutest pieces, can destroy the soul,
|
|
until she herself is proved to become more unholy or unrighteous
|
|
in consequence of these things being done to the body; but that
|
|
the soul, or anything else if not destroyed by an internal evil,
|
|
can be destroyed by an external one, is not to. be affirmed by any man.
|
|
|
|
And surely, he replied, no one will ever prove that the souls
|
|
of men become more unjust in consequence of death.
|
|
|
|
But if some one who would rather not admit the immortality of the soul
|
|
boldly denies this, and says that the dying do really become more
|
|
evil and unrighteous, then, if the speaker is right, I suppose
|
|
that injustice, like disease, must be assumed to be fatal to the unjust,
|
|
and that those who take this disorder die by the natural inherent
|
|
power of destruction which evil has, and which kills them sooner
|
|
or later, but in quite another way from that in which, at present,
|
|
the wicked receive death at the hands of others as the penalty
|
|
of their deeds?
|
|
|
|
Nay, he said, in that case injustice, if fatal to the unjust,
|
|
will not be so very terrible to him, for he will be delivered
|
|
from evil. But I rather suspect the opposite to be the truth,
|
|
and that injustice which, if it have the power, will murder others,
|
|
keeps the murderer alive--aye, and well awake too; so far removed is
|
|
her dwelling-place from being a house of death.
|
|
|
|
True, I said; if the inherent natural vice or evil of the soul is
|
|
unable to kill or destroy her, hardly will that which is appointed
|
|
to be the destruction of some other body, destroy a soul or anything
|
|
else except that of which it was appointed to be the destruction.
|
|
|
|
Yes, that can hardly be.
|
|
|
|
But the soul which cannot be destroyed by an evil, whether inherent
|
|
or external, must exist for ever, and if existing for ever,
|
|
must be immortal?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
That is the conclusion, I said; and, if a true conclusion,
|
|
then the souls must always be the same, for if none be destroyed
|
|
they will not diminish in number. Neither will they increase,
|
|
for the increase of the immortal natures must come from something mortal,
|
|
and all things would thus end in immortality.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
But this we cannot believe--reason will not allow us--
|
|
any more than we can believe the soul, in her truest nature,
|
|
to be full of variety and difference and dissimilarity.
|
|
|
|
What do you mean? he said.
|
|
|
|
The soul, I said, being, as is now proven, immortal, must be
|
|
the fairest of compositions and cannot be compounded of many elements?
|
|
|
|
Certainly not.
|
|
|
|
Her immortality is demonstrated by the previous argument, and there
|
|
are many other proofs; but to see her as she really is, not as we
|
|
now behold her, marred by communion with the body and other miseries,
|
|
you must contemplate her with the eye of reason, in her original purity;
|
|
and then her beauty will be revealed, and justice and injustice and all
|
|
the things which we have described will be manifested more clearly.
|
|
Thus far, we have spoken the truth concerning her as she appears
|
|
at present, but we must remember also that we have seen her only
|
|
in a condition which may be compared to that of the sea-god Glaucus,
|
|
whose original image can hardly be discerned because his natural
|
|
members are broken off and crushed and damaged by the waves in all
|
|
sorts of ways, and incrustations have grown over them of seaweed
|
|
and shells and stones, so that he is more like some monster
|
|
than he is to his own natural form. And the soul which we behold
|
|
is in a similar condition, disfigured by ten thousand ills.
|
|
But not there, Glaucon, not there must we look.
|
|
|
|
Where then?
|
|
|
|
At her love of wisdom. Let us see whom she affects, and what
|
|
society and converse she seeks in virtue of her near kindred
|
|
with the immortal and eternal and divine; also how different
|
|
she would become if wholly following this superior principle,
|
|
and borne by a divine impulse out of the ocean in which she now is,
|
|
and disengaged from the stones and shells and things of earth
|
|
and rock which in wild variety spring up around her because she
|
|
feeds upon earth, and is overgrown by the good things of this life
|
|
as they are termed: then you would see her as she is, and know
|
|
whether she has one shape only or many, or what her nature is.
|
|
Of her affections and of the forms which she takes in this present
|
|
life I think that we have now said enough.
|
|
|
|
True, he replied.
|
|
|
|
And thus, I said, we have fulfilled the conditions of the argument;
|
|
we have not introduced the rewards and glories of justice, which, as you
|
|
were saying, are to be found in Homer and Hesiod; but justice in her
|
|
own nature has been shown to be best for the soul in her own nature.
|
|
Let a man do what is just, whether he have the ring of Gyges or not,
|
|
and even if in addition to the ring of Gyges he put on the helmet
|
|
of Hades.
|
|
|
|
Very true.
|
|
|
|
And now, Glaucon, there will be no harm in further enumerating how many
|
|
and how great are the rewards which justice and the other virtues
|
|
procure to the soul from gods and men, both in life and after death.
|
|
|
|
Certainly not, he said.
|
|
|
|
Will you repay me, then, what you borrowed in the argument?
|
|
|
|
What did I borrow?
|
|
|
|
The assumption that the just man should appear unjust and the
|
|
unjust just: for you were of opinion that even if the true state
|
|
of the case could not possibly escape the eyes of gods and men,
|
|
still this admission ought to be made for the sake of the argument,
|
|
in order that pure justice might be weighed against pure injustice.
|
|
Do you remember?
|
|
|
|
I should be much to blame if I had forgotten.
|
|
|
|
Then, as the cause is decided, I demand on behalf of justice that
|
|
the estimation in which she is held by gods and men and which we
|
|
acknowledge to be her due should now be restored to her by us;
|
|
since she has been shown to confer reality, and not to deceive those
|
|
who truly possess her, let what has been taken from her be given back,
|
|
that so she may win that palm of appearance which is hers also,
|
|
and which she gives to her own.
|
|
|
|
The demand, he said, is just.
|
|
|
|
In the first place, I said--and this is the first thing which you
|
|
will have to give back--the nature both of the just and unjust
|
|
is truly known to the gods.
|
|
|
|
Granted.
|
|
|
|
And if they are both known to them, one must be the friend and
|
|
the other the enemy of the gods, as we admitted from the beginning?
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And the friend of the gods may be supposed to receive from them all
|
|
things at their best, excepting only such evil as is the necessary
|
|
consequence of former sins?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Then this must be our notion of the just man, that even when he is
|
|
in poverty or sickness, or any other seeming misfortune, all things
|
|
will in the end work together for good to him in life and death:
|
|
for the gods have a care of any one whose desire is to become just
|
|
and to be like God, as far as man can attain the divine likeness,
|
|
by the pursuit of virtue?
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; if he is like God he will surely not be neglected
|
|
by him.
|
|
|
|
And of the unjust may not the opposite be supposed?
|
|
|
|
Certainly.
|
|
|
|
Such, then, are the palms of victory which the gods give the just?
|
|
|
|
That is my conviction.
|
|
|
|
And what do they receive of men? Look at things as they really are,
|
|
and you will see that the clever unjust are in the case of runners,
|
|
who run well from the starting-place to the goal but not back again
|
|
from the goal: they go off at a great pace, but in the end only
|
|
look foolish, slinking away with their ears draggling on their shoulders,
|
|
and without a crown; but the true runner comes to the finish and
|
|
receives the prize and is crowned. And this is the way with the just;
|
|
he who endures to the end of every action and occasion of his entire
|
|
life has a good report and carries off the prize which men have
|
|
to bestow.
|
|
|
|
True.
|
|
|
|
And now you must allow me to repeat of the just the blessings which
|
|
you were attributing to the fortunate unjust. I shall say of them,
|
|
what you were saying of the others, that as they grow older,
|
|
they become rulers in their own city if they care to be; they marry
|
|
whom they like and give in marriage to whom they will; all that you
|
|
said of the others I now say of these. And, on the other hand,
|
|
of the unjust I say that the greater number, even though they escape
|
|
in their youth, are found out at last and look foolish at the end
|
|
of their course, and when they come to be old and miserable are
|
|
flouted alike by stranger and citizen; they are beaten and then
|
|
come those things unfit for ears polite, as you truly term them;
|
|
they will be racked and have their eyes burned out, as you were saying.
|
|
And you may suppose that I have repeated the remainder of your tale
|
|
of horrors. But will you let me assume, without reciting them,
|
|
that these things are true?
|
|
|
|
Certainly, he said, what you say is true.
|
|
|
|
These, then, are the prizes and rewards and gifts which are bestowed
|
|
upon the just by gods and men in this present life, in addition
|
|
to the other good things which justice of herself provides.
|
|
|
|
Yes, he said; and they are fair and lasting.
|
|
|
|
And yet, I said, all these are as nothing, either in number or
|
|
greatness in comparison with those other recompenses which await
|
|
both just and unjust after death. And you ought to hear them,
|
|
and then both just and unjust will have received from us a full
|
|
payment of the debt which the argument owes to them.
|
|
|
|
Speak, he said; there are few things which I would more gladly hear.
|
|
|
|
SOCRATES
|
|
|
|
Well, I said, I will tell you a tale; not one of the tales
|
|
which Odysseus tells to the hero Alcinous, yet this too is a tale
|
|
of a hero, Er the son of Armenius, a Pamphylian by birth.
|
|
He was slain in battle, and ten days afterwards, when the bodies
|
|
of the dead were taken up already in a state of corruption, his body
|
|
was found unaffected by decay, and carried away home to be buried.
|
|
And on the twelfth day, as he was lying on the funeral pile,
|
|
he returned to life and told them what he had seen in the other world.
|
|
He said that when his soul left the body he went on a journey
|
|
with a great company, and that they came to a mysterious place at
|
|
which there were two openings in the earth; they were near together,
|
|
and over against them were two other openings in the heaven above.
|
|
In the intermediate space there were judges seated, who commanded
|
|
the just, after they had given judgment on them and had bound
|
|
their sentences in front of them, to ascend by the heavenly way
|
|
on the right hand; and in like manner the unjust were bidden
|
|
by them to descend by the lower way on the left hand; these also
|
|
bore the symbols of their deeds, but fastened on their backs.
|
|
He drew near, and they told him that he was to be the messenger
|
|
who would carry the report of the other world to men, and they bade
|
|
him hear and see all that was to be heard and seen in that place.
|
|
Then he beheld and saw on one side the souls departing at either
|
|
opening of heaven and earth when sentence had been given on them;
|
|
and at the two other openings other souls, some ascending
|
|
out of the earth dusty and worn with travel, some descending
|
|
out of heaven clean and bright. And arriving ever and anon they
|
|
seemed to have come from a long journey, and they went forth with
|
|
gladness into the meadow, where they encamped as at a festival;
|
|
and those who knew one another embraced and conversed, the souls
|
|
which came from earth curiously enquiring about the things above,
|
|
and the souls which came from heaven about the things beneath.
|
|
And they told one another of what had happened by the way,
|
|
those from below weeping and sorrowing at the remembrance of the things
|
|
which they had endured and seen in their journey beneath the earth
|
|
(now the journey lasted a thousand years), while those from above
|
|
were describing heavenly delights and visions of inconceivable beauty.
|
|
The Story, Glaucon, would take too long to tell; but the sum was this:--
|
|
He said that for every wrong which they had done to any one they
|
|
suffered tenfold; or once in a hundred years--such being reckoned
|
|
to be the length of man's life, and the penalty being thus paid ten
|
|
times in a thousand years. If, for example, there were any who had been
|
|
the cause of many deaths, or had betrayed or enslaved cities or armies,
|
|
or been guilty of any other evil behaviour, for each and all of their
|
|
offences they received punishment ten times over, and the rewards
|
|
of beneficence and justice and holiness were in the same proportion.
|
|
I need hardly repeat what he said concerning young children dying
|
|
almost as soon as they were born. Of piety and impiety to gods
|
|
and parents, and of murderers, there were retributions other and
|
|
greater far which he described. He mentioned that he was present
|
|
when one of the spirits asked another, `Where is Ardiaeus the Great?'
|
|
(Now this Ardiaeus lived a thousand years before the time of Er:
|
|
he had been the tyrant of some city of Pamphylia, and had murdered
|
|
his aged father and his elder brother, and was said to have committed
|
|
many other abominable crimes.) The answer of the other spirit was:
|
|
`He comes not hither and will never come. And this,' said he,
|
|
`was one of the dreadful sights which we ourselves witnessed.
|
|
We were at the mouth of the cavern, and, having completed all
|
|
our experiences, were about to reascend, when of a sudden Ardiaeus
|
|
appeared and several others, most of whom were tyrants; and there
|
|
were also besides the tyrants private individuals who had been
|
|
great criminals: they were just, as they fancied, about to return
|
|
into the upper world, but the mouth, instead of admitting them,
|
|
gave a roar, whenever any of these incurable sinners or some one
|
|
who had not been sufficiently punished tried to ascend; and then
|
|
wild men of fiery aspect, who were standing by and heard the sound,
|
|
seized and carried them off; and Ardiaeus and others they bound head
|
|
and foot and hand, and threw them down and flayed them with scourges,
|
|
and dragged them along the road at the side, carding them on thorns
|
|
like wool, and declaring to the passers-by what were their crimes,
|
|
and that they were being taken away to be cast into hell.'
|
|
And of all the many terrors which they had endured, he said that there
|
|
was none like the terror which each of them felt at that moment,
|
|
lest they should hear the voice; and when there was silence,
|
|
one by one they ascended with exceeding joy. These, said Er,
|
|
were the penalties and retributions, and there were blessings as
|
|
great.
|
|
|
|
Now when the spirits which were in the meadow had tarried seven days,
|
|
on the eighth they were obliged to proceed on their journey, and,
|
|
on the fourth day after, he said that they came to a place where
|
|
they could see from above a line of light, straight as a column,
|
|
extending right through the whole heaven and through the earth,
|
|
in colour resembling the rainbow, only brighter and purer;
|
|
another day's journey brought them to the place, and there,
|
|
in the midst of the light, they saw the ends of the chains of heaven
|
|
let down from above: for this light is the belt of heaven,
|
|
and holds together the circle of the universe, like the under-girders
|
|
of a trireme. From these ends is extended the spindle of Necessity,
|
|
on which all the revolutions turn. The shaft and hook of this
|
|
spindle are made of steel, and the whorl is made partly of steel
|
|
and also partly of other materials. Now the whorl is in form
|
|
like the whorl used on earth; and the description of it implied
|
|
that there is one large hollow whorl which is quite scooped out,
|
|
and into this is fitted another lesser one, and another, and another,
|
|
and four others, making eight in all, like vessels which fit
|
|
into one another; the whorls show their edges on the upper side,
|
|
and on their lower side all together form one continuous whorl.
|
|
This is pierced by the spindle, which is driven home through the centre
|
|
of the eighth. The first and outermost whorl has the rim broadest,
|
|
and the seven inner whorls are narrower, in the following proportions--
|
|
the sixth is next to the first in size, the fourth next to the sixth;
|
|
then comes the eighth; the seventh is fifth, the fifth is sixth,
|
|
the third is seventh, last and eighth comes the second.
|
|
The largest (of fixed stars) is spangled, and the seventh (or sun)
|
|
is brightest; the eighth (or moon) coloured by the reflected
|
|
light of the seventh; the second and fifth (Saturn and Mercury)
|
|
are in colour like one another, and yellower than the preceding;
|
|
the third (Venus) has the whitest light; the fourth (Mars) is reddish;
|
|
the sixth (Jupiter) is in whiteness second. Now the whole spindle
|
|
has the same motion; but, as the whole revolves in one direction,
|
|
the seven inner circles move slowly in the other, and of these
|
|
the swiftest is the eighth; next in swiftness are the seventh,
|
|
sixth, and fifth, which move together; third in swiftness appeared
|
|
to move according to the law of this reversed motion the fourth;
|
|
the third appeared fourth and the second fifth. The spindle turns
|
|
on the knees of Necessity; and on the upper surface of each circle
|
|
is a siren, who goes round with them, hymning a single tone or note.
|
|
The eight together form one harmony; and round about, at equal intervals,
|
|
there is another band, three in number, each sitting upon her throne:
|
|
these are the Fates, daughters of Necessity, who are clothed in white
|
|
robes and have chaplets upon their heads, Lachesis and Clotho
|
|
and Atropos, who accompany with their voices the harmony of the sirens--
|
|
Lachesis singing of the past, Clotho of the present, Atropos of the future;
|
|
Clotho from time to time assisting with a touch of her right hand
|
|
the revolution of the outer circle of the whorl or spindle, and Atropos
|
|
with her left hand touching and guiding the inner ones, and Lachesis
|
|
laying hold of either in turn, first with one hand and then with the
|
|
other.
|
|
|
|
When Er and the spirits arrived, their duty was to go at once to Lachesis;
|
|
but first of all there came a prophet who arranged them in order;
|
|
then he took from the knees of Lachesis lots and samples
|
|
of lives, and having mounted a high pulpit, spoke as follows:
|
|
`Hear the word of Lachesis, the daughter of Necessity.
|
|
Mortal souls, behold a new cycle of life and mortality.
|
|
Your genius will not be allotted to you, but you choose your genius;
|
|
and let him who draws the first lot have the first choice,
|
|
and the life which he chooses shall be his destiny. Virtue is free,
|
|
and as a man honours or dishonours her he will have more or less
|
|
of her; the responsibility is with the chooser--God is justified.'
|
|
When the Interpreter had thus spoken he scattered lots indifferently
|
|
among them all, and each of them took up the lot which fell near him,
|
|
all but Er himself (he was not allowed), and each as he took his lot
|
|
perceived the number which he had obtained. Then the Interpreter
|
|
placed on the ground before them the samples of lives; and there were
|
|
many more lives than the souls present, and they were of all sorts.
|
|
There were lives of every animal and of man in every condition.
|
|
And there were tyrannies among them, some lasting out the tyrant's life,
|
|
others which broke off in the middle and came to an end in poverty
|
|
and exile and beggary; and there were lives of famous men,
|
|
some who were famous for their form and beauty as well as for
|
|
their strength and success in games, or, again, for their birth
|
|
and the qualities of their ancestors; and some who were the reverse
|
|
of famous for the opposite qualities. And of women likewise;
|
|
there was not, however, any definite character them, because the soul,
|
|
when choosing a new life, must of necessity become different.
|
|
But there was every other quality, and the all mingled with one another,
|
|
and also with elements of wealth and poverty, and disease and health;
|
|
and there were mean states also. And here, my dear Glaucon,
|
|
is the supreme peril of our human state; and therefore the utmost
|
|
care should be taken. Let each one of us leave every other kind
|
|
of knowledge and seek and follow one thing only, if peradventure
|
|
he may be able to learn and may find some one who will make him
|
|
able to learn and discern between good and evil, and so to choose
|
|
always and everywhere the better life as he has opportunity.
|
|
He should consider the bearing of all these things which have been
|
|
mentioned severally and collectively upon virtue; he should know
|
|
what the effect of beauty is when combined with poverty or wealth
|
|
in a particular soul, and what are the good and evil consequences
|
|
of noble and humble birth, of private and public station, of strength
|
|
and weakness, of cleverness and dullness, and of all the soul,
|
|
and the operation of them when conjoined; he will then look at the nature
|
|
of the soul, and from the consideration of all these qualities he
|
|
will be able to determine which is the better and which is the worse;
|
|
and so he will choose, giving the name of evil to the life which will
|
|
make his soul more unjust, and good to the life which will make
|
|
his soul more just; all else he will disregard. For we have seen
|
|
and know that this is the best choice both in life and after death.
|
|
A man must take with him into the world below an adamantine faith
|
|
in truth and right, that there too he may be undazzled by the desire
|
|
of wealth or the other allurements of evil, lest, coming upon tyrannies
|
|
and similar villainies, he do irremediable wrongs to others and suffer
|
|
yet worse himself; but let him know how to choose the mean and avoid
|
|
the extremes on either side, as far as possible, not only in this
|
|
life but in all that which is to come. For this is the way of
|
|
happiness.
|
|
|
|
And according to the report of the messenger from the other world this
|
|
was what the prophet said at the time: `Even for the last comer,
|
|
if he chooses wisely and will live diligently, there is appointed
|
|
a happy and not undesirable existence. Let not him who chooses first
|
|
be careless, and let not the last despair.' And when he had spoken,
|
|
he who had the first choice came forward and in a moment chose the
|
|
greatest tyranny; his mind having been darkened by folly and sensuality,
|
|
he had not thought out the whole matter before he chose, and did
|
|
not at first sight perceive that he was fated, among other evils,
|
|
to devour his own children. But when he had time to reflect,
|
|
and saw what was in the lot, he began to beat his breast and lament
|
|
over his choice, forgetting the proclamation of the prophet;
|
|
for, instead of throwing the blame of his misfortune on himself,
|
|
he accused chance and the gods, and everything rather than himself.
|
|
Now he was one of those who came from heaven, and in a former life
|
|
had dwelt in a well-ordered State, but his virtue was a matter
|
|
of habit only, and he had no philosophy. And it was true of others
|
|
who were similarly overtaken, that the greater number of them came
|
|
from heaven and therefore they had never been schooled by trial,
|
|
whereas the pilgrims who came from earth, having themselves
|
|
suffered and seen others suffer, were not in a hurry to choose.
|
|
And owing to this inexperience of theirs, and also because the lot
|
|
was a chance, many of the souls exchanged a good destiny for an evil
|
|
or an evil for a good. For if a man had always on his arrival
|
|
in this world dedicated himself from the first to sound philosophy,
|
|
and had been moderately fortunate in the number of the lot,
|
|
he might, as the messenger reported, be happy here, and also his
|
|
journey to another life and return to this, instead of being rough
|
|
and underground, would be smooth and heavenly. Most curious,
|
|
he said, was the spectacle--sad and laughable and strange;
|
|
for the choice of the souls was in most cases based on their experience
|
|
of a previous life. There he saw the soul which had once been Orpheus
|
|
choosing the life of a swan out of enmity to the race of women,
|
|
hating to be born of a woman because they had been his murderers;
|
|
he beheld also the soul of Thamyras choosing the life of a nightingale;
|
|
birds, on the other hand, like the swan and other musicians,
|
|
wanting to be men. The soul which obtained the twentieth lot chose
|
|
the life of a lion, and this was the soul of Ajax the son of Telamon,
|
|
who would not be a man, remembering the injustice which was
|
|
done him the judgment about the arms. The next was Agamemnon,
|
|
who took the life of an eagle, because, like Ajax, he hated
|
|
human nature by reason of his sufferings. About the middle came
|
|
the lot of Atalanta; she, seeing the great fame of an athlete,
|
|
was unable to resist the temptation: and after her there followed
|
|
the soul of Epeus the son of Panopeus passing into the nature of a
|
|
woman cunning in the arts; and far away among the last who chose,
|
|
the soul of the jester Thersites was putting on the form of a monkey.
|
|
There came also the soul of Odysseus having yet to make a choice,
|
|
and his lot happened to be the last of them all. Now the recollection
|
|
of former tolls had disenchanted him of ambition, and he went
|
|
about for a considerable time in search of the life of a private
|
|
man who had no cares; he had some difficulty in finding this,
|
|
which was lying about and had been neglected by everybody else;
|
|
and when he saw it, he said that he would have done the had
|
|
his lot been first instead of last, and that he was delighted
|
|
to have it. And not only did men pass into animals, but I
|
|
must also mention that there were animals tame and wild who
|
|
changed into one another and into corresponding human natures--
|
|
the good into the gentle and the evil into the savage, in all sorts
|
|
of combinations.
|
|
|
|
All the souls had now chosen their lives, and they went in the order
|
|
of their choice to Lachesis, who sent with them the genius whom
|
|
they had severally chosen, to be the guardian of their lives
|
|
and the fulfiller of the choice: this genius led the souls first
|
|
to Clotho, and drew them within the revolution of the spindle
|
|
impelled by her hand, thus ratifying the destiny of each;
|
|
and then, when they were fastened to this, carried them to Atropos,
|
|
who spun the threads and made them irreversible, whence without
|
|
turning round they passed beneath the throne of Necessity;
|
|
and when they had all passed, they marched on in a scorching heat
|
|
to the plain of Forgetfulness, which was a barren waste destitute
|
|
of trees and verdure; and then towards evening they encamped
|
|
by the river of Unmindfulness, whose water no vessel can hold;
|
|
of this they were all obliged to drink a certain quantity,
|
|
and those who were not saved by wisdom drank more than was necessary;
|
|
and each one as he drank forgot all things. Now after they had gone
|
|
to rest, about the middle of the night there was a thunderstorm
|
|
and earthquake, and then in an instant they were driven upwards
|
|
in all manner of ways to their birth, like stars shooting.
|
|
He himself was hindered from drinking the water. But in what
|
|
manner or by what means he returned to the body he could not say;
|
|
only, in the morning, awaking suddenly, he found himself lying on
|
|
the pyre.
|
|
|
|
And thus, Glaucon, the tale has been saved and has not perished,
|
|
and will save us if we are obedient to the word spoken; and we
|
|
shall pass safely over the river of Forgetfulness and our soul
|
|
will not be defiled. Wherefore my counsel is that we hold fast ever
|
|
to the heavenly way and follow after justice and virtue always,
|
|
considering that the soul is immortal and able to endure every sort
|
|
of good and every sort of evil. Thus shall we live dear to one another
|
|
and to the gods, both while remaining here and when, like conquerors
|
|
in the games who go round to gather gifts, we receive our reward.
|
|
And it shall be well with us both in this life and in the pilgrimage
|
|
of a thousand years which we have been describing.
|
|
|
|
|
|
End of the Project Gutenberg Edition of The Republic, by Plato***
|
|
|